Selected quad for the lemma: lord_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
lord_n aaron_n apply_v great_a 25 3 2.7319 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A50253 The figures or types of the Old Testament by which Christ and the heavenly things of the Gospel were preached and shadowed to the people of God of old : explained and improved in sundry sermons / by Mr. Samuel Mather ... Mather, Samuel, 1626-1671.; Mather, Nathanael, 1631-1697. 1683 (1683) Wing M1279; ESTC R7563 489,095 683

There are 70 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

same_o space_n matth._n 12.40_o 3._o in_o his_o resurrection_n for_o look_v as_o jonah_n overcome_v all_o the_o danger_n he_o be_v in_o and_o come_v forth_o again_o alive_a out_o of_o the_o whale_n belly_n so_o do_v christ_n out_o of_o the_o grave_a within_o three_o day_n he_o overcome_v great_a enemy_n even_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n death_n and_o hell_n and_o upon_o this_o sing_v praise_n to_o god_n cap._n 2._o so_o do_v christ_n triumph_v oh_o death_n where_o be_v thy_o sting_n oh_o grave_a where_o be_v thy_o victory_n hos_fw-la 13.14_o and_o psal_n 22.22_o 23_o 25._o and_o psal_n 18.48_o 49._o 4._o in_o his_o preach_n after_o his_o resurrection_n for_o look_v as_o jonah_n after_o his_o resurrection_n preach_v repentance_n to_o the_o ninevite_n and_o that_o with_o great_a success_n and_o efficacy_n for_o they_o do_v repent_v upon_o his_o preach_n the_o whole_a body_n of_o they_o with_o a_o outward_a repentance_n and_o many_o of_o they_o doubtless_o with_o a_o true_a and_o save_a repentance_n and_o so_o be_v save_v both_o from_o that_o present_a temporal_a destruction_n and_o from_o eternal_a damnation_n and_o jonah_n do_v preach_v to_o the_o israelite_n also_o as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o ninevite_n 2_o king_n 14.25_o but_o which_o be_v first_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o express_v so_o christ_n when_o rise_v from_o the_o dead_a send_v his_o spirit_n and_o preach_v by_o his_o spirit_n in_o his_o apostle_n and_o minister_n and_o not_o only_o to_o the_o jew_n but_o to_o the_o gentile_n such_o as_o those_o ninevite_n to_o the_o conversion_n and_o salvation_n of_o multitude_n of_o they_o as_o be_v foretell_v of_o he_o psal_n 22.22_o and_o to_o the_o deep_a condemnation_n of_o unbeliever_n matth_n 12.41_o because_o a_o great_a than_o ionas_n be_v here_o 4._o the_o four_o and_o last_o conjunction_n that_o i_o shall_v speak_v unto_o of_o typical_a person_n under_o the_o law_n be_v zerubbabel_n and_o jehoshuah_n of_o who_o the_o one_o be_v the_o chief_a magistrate_n the_o other_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o both_o of_o they_o rebuilder_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o restorer_n of_o the_o collapse_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o those_o time_n in_o all_o which_o there_o be_v a_o eminent_a praefiguration_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o what_o of_o christ_n be_v shadow_v forth_o by_o these_o two_o for_o i_o shall_v put_v they_o both_o together_o they_o be_v contemporary_n and_o joint_a instrument_n in_o the_o work_n and_o service_n of_o god_n in_o that_o generation_n there_o be_v three_o thing_n of_o christ_n type_v and_o shadow_v forth_o by_o they_o 1._o both_o his_o office_n of_o king_n and_o priest_n zerubbabel_n be_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n in_o those_o day_n and_o the_o chief_a person_n of_o the_o line_n of_o david_n and_o jehoshuah_n be_v at_o the_o same_o time_n high_a priest_n and_o that_o there_o be_v something_o of_o peculiar_a glory_n in_o his_o priesthood_n relate_v to_o jesus_n christ_n our_o great_a high_a priest_n be_v not_o improbable_a in_o zach._n 3._o he_o be_v present_v in_o vision_n to_o the_o prophet_n as_o stand_v before_o the_o lord_n and_o resist_v by_o satan_n but_o satan_n do_v not_o prevail_v against_o he_o ver_fw-la 1_o 2._o for_o he_o be_v clothe_v with_o change_n of_o raiment_n ver_fw-la 4_o and_o have_v a_o fair_a mitre_n set_v on_o his_o head_n ver_fw-la 5._o so_o christ_n though_o oppose_v and_o resist_v by_o satan_n yet_o go_v through_o with_o his_o work_n and_o have_v bless_a acceptance_n with_o god_n and_o success_n therein_o 2._o his_o building_n the_o temple_n the_o church_n of_o god_n for_o these_o two_o do_v build_v the_o temple_n ezra_n 4._o conjunct_o each_o of_o they_o in_o their_o several_a capacity_n be_v stir_v up_o to_o it_o by_o the_o prophet_n haggai_n as_o you_o may_v see_v hagg._n 1.12_o 14._o and_o it_o be_v say_v of_o zerubbabel_n that_o as_o his_o hand_n lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o temple_n so_o his_o hand_n shall_v also_o finish_v it_o zach._n 4.9_o and_o the_o build_n of_o the_o altar_n be_v ascribe_v to_o they_o both_o conjunct_o ezra_n 3.2_o so_o do_v christ_n spiritual_o as_o the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o in_o that_o very_a metaphor_n of_o build_v the_o house_n of_o god_n heb._n 3.3_o 4._o 3._o his_o bring_v back_o the_o captivity_n of_o his_o people_n out_o of_o spiritual_a bondage_n under_o sin_n and_o satan_n in_o their_o natural_a estate_n and_o out_o of_o antichristian_a bondage_n under_o rome_n which_o be_v mystical_a babylon_n thus_o zerubbabel_n and_o jehoshuah_n be_v the_o conductor_n and_o captain_n of_o the_o salvation_n of_o that_o people_n from_o literal_a babylon_n ezra_n 1.5_o 8._o and_o 2.2_o and_o 5.14_o but_o there_o will_v be_v occasion_n to_o speak_v further_o to_o these_o thing_n when_o we_o come_v to_o the_o real_a type_n beside_o the_o personal_a type_n that_o have_v be_v speak_v to_o there_o be_v divers_a other_o also_o that_o be_v note_v by_o learned_a man_n as_o of_o the_o first_o classis_fw-la before_o the_o law_n some_o have_v note_v abel_n the_o proto-martyr_n as_o also_o seth_n methuselah_n and_o lamech_v noaks_n father_n and_o heber_n the_o seven_o from_o enoch_n as_o enoch_n be_v the_o seven_o from_o adam_n he_o be_v a_o pious_a man_n in_o his_o seed_n the_o primitive_a language_n and_o the_o true_a religion_n and_o church_n of_o god_n be_v preserve_v when_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n be_v lose_v and_o fall_v into_o idolatry_n and_o from_o he_o the_o church_n have_v their_o denomination_n hebrew_n as_o christian_n have_v from_o jesus_n christ_n and_o it_o be_v prophesy_v that_o chittim_n shall_v afflict_v heber_n numb_a 24.24_o chittim_n be_v the_o roman_n christ_n be_v the_o chief_a of_o heber_n who_o italy_n or_o chittim_n afflict_v as_o in_o other_o respect_n so_o chief_o at_o his_o death_n for_o he_o be_v crucify_v under_o tiberius_n the_o roman_a emperor_n judah_n the_o son_n of_o jacob_n to_o who_o it_o be_v say_v thy_o father_n son_n shall_v bow_v down_o unto_o thou_o gen._n 49.8_o also_o job_n in_o his_o suffering_n and_o patience_n both_o unparalleled_a and_o his_o prevail_a intercession_n for_o his_o offend_a friend_n be_v by_o some_o look_v on_o as_o type_n of_o christ_n and_o as_o to_o the_o second_o classis_fw-la viz._n those_o under_o the_o law_n some_o have_v add_v aaron_n the_o priest_n of_o the_o lord_n but_o what_o may_v be_v say_v of_o he_o will_v come_v in_o when_o we_o come_v to_o handle_v the_o office_n of_o the_o priesthood_n also_o gideon_n and_o jephtah_n judge_n of_o israel_n of_o old_a and_o samuel_n the_o prophet_n who_o be_v a_o judge_n also_o and_o a_o nazarite_n hezekiah_n and_o josiah_n those_o great_a reform_a king_n eliakim_n isai_n 22.20_o for_o the_o like_a phrase_n which_o be_v there_o use_v ver_fw-la 22._o of_o eliakim_n be_v apply_v to_o christ_n isai_n 9.5_o revel_v 3.7_o some_o have_v set_v cyrus_n also_o among_o the_o type_n of_o christ_n the_o founder_n of_o the_o persian_a monarchy_n who_o may_v be_v think_v to_o have_v be_v a_o godly_a man_n much_o good_a and_o no_o evil_a be_v record_v of_o he_o in_o the_o scripture_n and_o he_o do_v a_o very_a good_a work_n and_o a_o great_a and_o glorious_a work_n it_o be_v the_o break_v the_o yoke_n of_o babylon_n and_o set_v the_o israel_n of_o god_n at_o liberty_n and_o rebuild_v the_o temple_n and_o indeed_o the_o eulogy_n and_o expression_n of_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n concern_v he_o be_v very_o high_a and_o excellent_a isai_n cap._n 45._o beginning_n and_o cap._n 46.11_o daniel_n also_o a_o person_n of_o extraordinary_a eminency_n in_o his_o generation_n i_o do_v not_o omit_v these_o person_n as_o conclude_v they_o have_v no_o typical_a relation_n to_o jesus_n christ_n for_o indeed_o i_o think_v divers_a of_o they_o have_v but_o in_o some_o the_o analogy_n be_v but_o weak_a and_o dark_a and_o in_o some_o few_o particular_n and_o though_o in_o other_o it_o be_v more_o clear_a yet_o it_o will_v have_v be_v too_o large_a to_o go_v through_o every_o person_n i_o have_v think_v it_o sufficient_a to_o my_o intend_a scope_n to_o instance_n only_o in_o some_o of_o the_o clear_a and_o most_o eminent_a refer_v the_o rest_n to_o your_o own_o meditation_n in_o the_o scripture_n to_o observe_v and_o improve_v what_o you_o find_v write_v concern_v they_o use_v 1_o see_v the_o glory_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o antitype_n in_o that_o so_o many_o excellent_a person_n do_v but_o weak_o and_o imperfect_o represent_v he_o as_o if_o all_o the_o candle_n in_o the_o world_n be_v put_v together_o it_o will_v not_o equalise_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o sun_n but_o how_o bright_a then_o be_v the_o sun_n itself_o which_o shine_v bright_a than_o all_o the_o candle_n of_o the_o world_n yea_o than_o all_o the_o star_n in_o the_o firmament_n so_o
ten_o commandment_n exod._n 19.9_o that_o the_o people_n may_v hear_v and_o cap._n 20.22_o he_o talk_v with_o you_o from_o heaven_n and_o he_o write_v they_o in_o two_o table_n of_o stone_n and_o in_o the_o five_o book_n of_o moses_n the_o ceremonial_a and_o judicial_a law_n be_v deliver_v in_o this_o last_o way_n viz._n by_o write_v be_v leave_v upon_o record_n in_o the_o book_n of_o moses_n this_o be_v celebrate_v as_o a_o choice_a mercy_n psal_n 103.7_o he_o make_v know_v his_o way_n unto_o moses_n his_o act_n unto_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n yea_o as_o a_o peculiar_a and_o distinguish_a mercy_n psal_n 147.2_o last_n v._o he_o show_v his_o word_n unto_o jacob_n his_o statute_n and_o judgement_n unto_o israel_n he_o have_v not_o deal_v so_o with_o any_o nation_n and_o now_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v the_o first_o invention_n of_o the_o art_n of_o write_v the_o first_o mention_n we_o find_v of_o it_o be_v in_o moses_n his_o time_n in_o jacob_n time_n it_o may_v seem_v they_o have_v no_o knowledge_n of_o it_o because_o in_o the_o covenant_n between_o he_o and_o laban_n instead_o of_o any_o article_n in_o write_v between_o they_o or_o sign_v or_o seal_v of_o it_o they_o only_o erect_v a_o heap_n of_o stone_n as_o monument_n of_o remembrance_n of_o it_o gen._n 31.45_o &_o seq_n and_o the_o invention_n be_v so_o admirable_a that_o it_o seem_v to_o transcend_v all_o humane_a wit_n and_o industry_n the_o reduce_n of_o all_o audible_a and_o articulate_a sound_n unto_o visible_a mark_n and_o that_o in_o so_o familiar_a and_o short_a a_o way_n by_o twenty_o or_o thirty_o letter_n without_o any_o further_a load_n to_o the_o memory_n that_o we_o may_v well_o ascribe_v it_o unto_o god_n himself_o as_o the_o bless_a author_n and_o inventor_n of_o it_o to_o help_v his_o poor_a people_n to_o and_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o himself_o according_a to_o that_o in_o prov._n 8.12_o i_o wisdom_n dwell_v with_o prudence_n and_o find_v out_o knowledge_n of_o witty_a invention_n 3._o the_o lord_n accept_v the_o whole_a nation_n to_o be_v his_o own_o peculiar_a people_n erect_v a_o glorious_a frame_n and_o fabric_n of_o church_n and_o commonwealth_n among_o they_o wherein_o the_o lord_n himself_o be_v king_n and_o do_v immediate_o preside_v and_o therefore_o it_o have_v be_v fit_o call_v a_o theocracy_n so_o gideon_n judg._n 8.23_o the_o lord_n shall_v rule_v over_o you_o isai_n 51.16_o that_o i_o may_v plant_v the_o heaven_n and_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o say_v unto_o zion_n thou_o be_v my_o people_n 4._o he_o give_v they_o glorious_a and_o visible_a symbol_n and_o token_n of_o his_o presence_n among_o they_o walk_v before_o they_o in_o a_o pillar_n of_o cloud_n and_o fire_n exod._n 13.21_o 22._o which_o pillar_n rest_v upon_o the_o tabernacle_n after_o that_o the_o tabernacle_n be_v build_v exod._a ult_n ult_n which_o also_o be_v a_o symbol_n of_o his_o presence_n with_o they_o and_o so_o be_v the_o ark_n and_o the_o manna_n from_o heaven_n exod._n 16.14_o 15._o with_o the_o rock_n that_o follow_v they_o exod._n 17.6_o 1_o cor._n 10.4_o 5._o the_o lord_n himself_o conduct_v and_o lead_v they_o through_o the_o desert_n of_o arabia_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o moses_n and_o into_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o joshuah_n dry_v up_o jordan_n for_o they_o subdue_a the_o inhabitant_n before_o they_o raise_v up_o judge_n and_o ruler_n for_o they_o and_o final_o train_v they_o up_o by_o many_o instruct_v providence_n to_o fit_v they_o for_o the_o further_a mercy_n he_o have_v yet_o in_o store_n for_o they_o one_o will_v think_v all_o thing_n be_v now_o well_o settle_v but_o there_o be_v two_o or_o three_o thing_n partly_o defect_n in_o this_o dispensation_n itself_o and_o partly_o some_o provoke_a evil_n on_o their_o part_n under_o it_o by_o reason_n whereof_o the_o lord_n bring_v in_o a_o further_o and_o a_o high_a dispensation_n afterward_o 1._o there_o have_v be_v strange_a rebellion_n and_o provocation_n in_o the_o wilderness_n which_o have_v have_v a_o influence_n into_o all_o the_o sorrow_n and_o trouble_n that_o have_v befall_v they_o ever_o since_o murmur_a against_o god_n mutine_a against_o moses_n and_o aaron_n which_o the_o lord_n take_v very_o heinous_o and_o therefore_o destroy_v corah_n dathan_n and_o abiram_n by_o miracle_n for_o to_o disobey_v the_o just_a command_n of_o a_o lawful_a magistrate_n be_v to_o rebel_v against_o god_n himself_o and_o above_o all_o idolatry_n exod._n 32.34_o 35_o in_o the_o day_n when_o i_o visit_v i_o will_v visit_v their_o sin_n upon_o they_o and_o the_o lord_n plague_v the_o people_n because_o they_o make_v the_o calf_n which_o aaron_n make_v from_o whence_o the_o jew_n have_v a_o proverb_n that_o in_o every_o affliction_n in_o every_o calamity_n that_o come_v upon_o they_o there_o be_v some_o grain_n of_o the_o molten_n calf_n in_o it_o 2._o there_o be_v frequent_a degeneracy_n and_o oppression_n under_o the_o judge_n 3._o the_o tabernacle_n be_v unfixed_a upon_o all_o which_o account_v the_o lord_n have_v not_o yet_o satisfy_v himself_o in_o the_o expression_n of_o his_o own_o love_n towards_o they_o but_o his_o heart_n be_v full_a and_o he_o be_v resolve_v to_o do_v yet_o more_o for_o they_o and_o so_o to_o try_v they_o to_o the_o utmost_a therefore_o he_o be_v please_v to_o put_v a_o period_n unto_o this_o dispensation_n which_o begin_v about_o the_o year_n of_o the_o world_n two_o thousand_o five_o hundred_o and_o thirteen_o and_o last_v about_o four_o hundred_o eighty_o seven_o or_o eighty_o eight_o year_n 1_o king_n 6.1_o 2._o the_o lord_n second_o dispensation_n under_o the_o law_n be_v from_o the_o temple_n to_o the_o captivity_n in_o babylon_n in_o this_o period_n the_o glory_n of_o the_o legal_a dispensation_n rise_v up_o to_o the_o great_a height_n and_o splendour_n and_o that_o chief_o in_o two_o particular_n the_o glory_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o temple_n 1._o the_o kingdom_n be_v settle_v in_o the_o house_n of_o david_n as_o the_o type_n and_o progenitor_n of_o the_o messiah_n and_o in_o his_o day_n and_o solomon_n it_o extend_v to_o the_o utmost_a bound_n that_o god_n have_v speak_v of_o to_o abraham_n though_o afterward_o for_o their_o own_o sin_n they_o be_v cut_v short_a the_o neighbour_n nation_n shake_v off_o the_o yoke_n and_o the_o kingdom_n itself_o divide_v into_o two_o part_n two_o tribe_n only_o leave_v to_o solomon_n posterity_n the_o lord_n have_v promise_v abraham_n that_o his_o seed_n shall_v possess_v all_o the_o land_n to_o the_o river_n euphrates_n gen._n 15.18_o and_o it_o be_v perform_v in_o david_n time_n and_o in_o solomon_n 1_o king_n 4.21_o 24._o 2_o chron._n 9.26_o and_o this_o kingdom_n be_v a_o type_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n 2._o the_o other_o piece_n of_o their_o glory_n be_v the_o temple_n before_o god_n have_v dwell_v in_o tent_n but_o now_o he_o have_v a_o house_n build_v unto_o his_o name_n the_o lord_n turn_v his_o flit_a tabernacle_n into_o a_o fix_a temple_n for_o which_o david_n make_v plentiful_a preparation_n solomon_n do_v erect_v and_o set_v it_o up_o he_o do_v it_o in_o seven_o or_o eight_o year_n time_n or_o more_o precise_o seven_o year_n and_o a_o half_a for_o he_o begin_v it_o in_o the_o second_o month_n and_o finish_v it_o in_o the_o eight_o 1_o king_n 6.1_o and_o ult_n and_o he_o begin_v it_o in_o the_o four_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n and_o finish_v it_o in_o the_o eleven_o moreover_o he_o begin_v it_o in_o the_o 480th_o year_n after_o the_o come_n out_o of_o egypt_n and_o dedicate_v it_o seven_o or_o eight_o year_n after_o which_o fall_v into_o the_o year_n of_o the_o world_n three_o thousand_o or_o three_o thousand_o and_o one_o as_o you_o will_v find_v if_o you_o take_v the_o pain_n to_o compute_v and_o put_v all_o the_o former_a period_n together_o and_o their_o kingdom_n and_o temple_n stand_v in_o some_o degree_n of_o outward_a glory_n about_o four_o hundred_o year_n from_o the_o finish_n and_o dedicate_a of_o it_o to_o the_o begin_n of_o their_o bondage_n under_o the_o yoke_n of_o babylon_n and_o now_o one_o will_v think_v they_o have_v be_v settle_v in_o such_o a_o condition_n as_o may_v have_v stand_v for_o ever_o but_o the_o apostasy_n be_v very_o great_a which_o bring_v this_o high_a and_o prosperous_a dispensation_n to_o a_o end_n to_o a_o sad_a end_n for_o 1._o the_o people_n heart_n be_v not_o so_o with_o god_n as_o become_v a_o people_n crown_v with_o such_o glory_n god_n leave_v they_o and_o their_o prince_n the_o first_o and_o wise_a of_o they_o the_o very_a founder_n of_o their_o kingdom_n and_o temple_n unto_o very_o great_a and_o enormous_a transgression_n david_n commit_v adultery_n and_o murder_n a_o very_a unparalleled_a case_n for_o which_o the_o lord_n threaten_v the_o
sword_n shall_v never_o depart_v from_o his_o house_n solomon_n be_v leave_v to_o the_o toleration_n of_o the_o public_a exercise_n of_o idolatry_n for_o which_o god_n rend_v away_o the_o ten_o tribe_n from_o his_o posterity_n all_o which_o come_v to_o pass_v as_o for_o other_o cause_n so_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n as_o it_o say_v in_o a_o lesser_a transgression_n of_o david_n 2_o sam._n 24.1_o and_o the_o anger_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v kindle_v against_o israel_n and_o he_o move_v david_n against_o they_o to_o say_v go_v number_n israel_n and_o judah_n 2._o the_o ten_o tribe_n under_o jeroboam_n forsake_v the_o temple_n and_o the_o house_n of_o david_n which_o though_o as_o to_o god_n providence_n it_o be_v a_o righteous_a judgement_n yet_o on_o their_o part_n it_o be_v a_o grievous_a sin_n it_o be_v a_o complicate_v sin_n many_o sin_n involve_v in_o the_o bowel_n of_o it_o for_o it_o be_v both_o rebellion_n and_o schism_n and_o heresy_n rebellion_n against_o their_o lawful_a prince_n schism_n from_o the_o true_a church_n and_o worship_n yea_o fundamental_a heresy_n for_o as_o they_o say_v look_v to_o thy_o house_n o_o david_n so_o in_o reject_v david_n house_n they_o reject_v the_o messiah_n who_o be_v to_o come_v of_o he_o 2_o chron._n 10.16_o 3._o there_o be_v continual_a backslide_n to_o idolatry_n even_o in_o judah_n as_o well_o as_o israel_n yea_o when_o they_o see_v the_o ten_o tribe_n carry_v away_o before_o their_o eye_n for_o this_o sin_n yet_o the_o other_o will_v not_o take_v warning_n and_o reform_v ezek._n 23.10_o 11_o aholah_n signify_v a_o tent_n this_o be_v the_o house_n of_o israel_n who_o be_v a_o corrupt_a church_n aholibah_n signify_v my_o tent_n be_v in_o she_o this_o be_v judah_n which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n but_o they_o decline_v and_o depart_v from_o god_n so_o far_o that_o he_o send_v they_o away_o to_o babylon_n 3._o and_o so_o we_o come_v to_o the_o three_o dispensation_n under_o the_o law_n namely_o the_o time_n of_o their_o captivity_n and_o bondage_n under_o the_o yoke_n of_o babylon_n there_o be_v three_o deportation_n 1._o jehoiakim_v in_o who_o time_n daniel_n be_v carry_v captive_a 2._o jechoniahs_n in_o who_o time_n ezekiel_n be_v carry_v captive_a 3._o zedekiahs_n in_o who_o time_n jeremiah_n be_v carry_v captive_a they_o have_v now_o a_o experimental_a knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o all_o god_n threaten_n yet_o during_o the_o time_n of_o this_o affliction_n the_o lord_n do_v not_o cast_v off_o his_o care_n of_o they_o but_o give_v forth_o many_o evidence_n of_o his_o unchangeable_a love_n and_o faithfulness_n towards_o they_o under_o this_o sad_a dispensation_n 1._o in_o that_o he_o do_v preserve_v they_o from_o utter_a destruction_n yet_o not_o leave_v they_o altogether_o unpunished_a not_o make_v a_o full_a end_n of_o they_o jer._n 30.10_o 11._o he_o restrain_v the_o enemy_n from_o whole_o root_n out_o the_o nation_n psal_n 106.46_o give_v they_o favour_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o they_o that_o carry_v they_o captive_a 2._o in_o that_o he_o do_v convince_v they_o and_o leave_v a_o everlasting_a conviction_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o that_o people_n against_o the_o grosser_n sort_n of_o idolatry_n such_o a_o indelible_a conviction_n as_o have_v never_o be_v blot_v out_o to_o this_o day_n insomuch_o that_o their_o great_a stumble_a block_n at_o this_o day_n against_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v the_o idolatry_n of_o the_o popish_a christian_n for_o the_o poor_a blind_a jew_n consider_v the_o christian_a religion_n no_o otherwise_o but_o as_o corrupt_v with_o those_o antichristian_a abomination_n and_o idolatry_n and_o therefore_o their_o conversion_n and_o return_n be_v not_o to_o be_v expect_v till_o antichrist_n that_o great_a stumble_a block_n be_v remove_v out_o of_o the_o way_n yea_o 3._o the_o lord_n give_v they_o further_o and_o glorious_a discovery_n by_o raise_v up_o excellent_a prophet_n to_o they_o as_o ezekiel_n daniel_n jeremy_n some_o part_n of_o his_o prophecy_n be_v after_o the_o begin_n of_o their_o captivity_n and_o bondage_n to_o the_o babylonian_n this_o sad_a afflictive_a dispensation_n continue_v about_o seventy_o year_n jer._n 29.10_o 4._o the_o four_o and_o last_o of_o all_o the_o old_a testament_n dispensation_n be_v that_o of_o the_o second_o temple_n from_o the_o time_n of_o their_o return_n out_o of_o babylon_n till_o the_o messiah_n come_v and_o herein_o there_o be_v these_o remarkable_a passage_n 1._o the_o lord_n break_v the_o yoke_n of_o babylon_n that_o his_o people_n may_v be_v deliver_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o cyrus_n prophesy_v of_o by_o name_n some_o hundred_o year_n before_o his_o birth_n isai_n 44.28_o and_o as_o they_o be_v carry_v away_o at_o several_a time_n so_o they_o return_v also_o at_o several_a time_n and_o by_o degree_n first_o zerubbabel_n ezra_n 1._o and_o a_o great_a company_n with_o he_o afterward_o ezra_n ezr._n 7.1_o after_o these_o thing_n last_o nehemiah_n 2._o they_o build_v the_o temple_n and_o the_o city_n of_o god_n again_o ezr._n 3_o nehem._n 1_o and_o 2._o they_o meet_v with_o many_o difficulty_n and_o obstruction_n in_o the_o work_n but_o yet_o at_o last_o it_o be_v do_v both_o begin_v and_o finish_v by_o zerubbabel_n zach._n 4._o in_o forty_o six_o year_n joh._n 2.20_o dan._n 9.25_o seven_o week_n that_o be_v forty_o nine_o year_n viz._n from_o the_o edict_n of_o cyrus_n after_o which_o we_o may_v well_o allow_v one_o year_n of_o preparation_n for_o their_o journey_n another_o year_n for_o their_o journey_n and_o a_o three_o year_n for_o prepare_v material_n for_o the_o temple_n wherein_o david_n and_o solomon_n spend_v so_o many_o year_n and_o if_o we_o deduct_v three_o out_o of_o forty_o nine_o the_o remainder_n will_v be_v but_o forty_o six_o as_o joh._n 2.20_o it_o want_v somewhat_o of_o its_o former_a glory_n as_o to_o the_o structure_n thereof_o the_o old_a man_n weep_v to_o see_v how_o much_o zerubbabel_n temple_n fall_v short_a of_o solomon_n temple_n in_o ezr._n 3.12_o as_o to_o the_o utensil_n belong_v to_o it_o the_o ark_n be_v want_v with_o the_o thing_n contain_v in_o it_o the_o two_o table_n of_o stone_n the_o rod_n of_o aaron_n the_o pot_n of_o manna_n also_o the_o extraordinary_a and_o miraculous_a token_n of_o god_n presence_n as_o fire_n from_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n the_o lord_n will_v have_v they_o now_o to_o be_v more_o spiritual_a to_o see_v his_o presence_n by_o faith_n when_o they_o can_v not_o see_v it_o with_o their_o eye_n yet_o haggai_n say_v it_o have_v a_o great_a glory_n that_o be_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o messiah_n bodily_a presence_n in_o it_o which_o solomon_n temple_n never_o have_v 3._o they_o renew_v their_o covenant_n with_o god_n nehem._n 9_o ult_n and_o cap._n 10._o you_o have_v the_o article_n of_o this_o solemn_a league_n and_o covenant_n 4._o the_o lord_n guide_v they_o to_o the_o reform_v of_o sundry_a corruption_n which_o have_v creep_v in_o among_o they_o and_o raise_v they_o up_o to_o a_o high_a pitch_n of_o reformation_n than_o ever_o gross_a idolatry_n they_o forsake_v that_o for_o ever_o of_o which_o we_o speak_v before_o the_o preach_v of_o the_o word_n be_v restore_v and_o renew_v among_o they_o neh._n 8_o 1-8_a strengthen_v by_o the_o prophesy_a of_o haggai_n and_o zachary_n ezr._n 5.1_o and_o the_o history_n of_o the_o church_n in_o those_o time_n report_v also_o how_o there_o be_v great_a care_n to_o get_v true_a and_o perfect_a copy_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o to_o review_v the_o copy_n they_o have_v and_o hither_o as_o i_o suppose_v belong_v that_o famous_a work_n of_o the_o punctation_n of_o the_o hebrew_n consonant_n much_o dispute_v there_o be_v among_o learned_a man_n about_o it_o that_o it_o be_v of_o a_o divine_a original_a and_o authority_n be_v unquestionable_a if_o we_o do_v but_o grant_v the_o divine_a authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o otherwise_o the_o sense_n will_v be_v vagus_fw-la &_o incertus_fw-la wander_v and_o uncertain_a some_o think_v it_o be_v as_o ancient_a as_o the_o first_o invention_n of_o letter_n which_o be_v refer_v to_o moses_n but_o if_o we_o suppose_v that_o write_n as_o all_o other_o useful_a art_n be_v usual_o be_v bring_v to_o perfection_n by_o degree_n and_o that_o the_o consonant_n may_v suffice_v while_o it_o be_v a_o mother_n tongue_n of_o so_o great_a a_o people_n and_o they_o in_o such_o a_o flourish_a condition_n not_o oppress_v nor_o mingle_v with_o other_o people_n and_o language_n yet_o possible_o the_o point_n may_v be_v add_v afterward_o for_o when_o they_o fall_v under_o the_o yoke_n of_o stranger_n this_o help_n become_v necessary_a to_o be_v add_v the_o lord_n therefore_o do_v by_o ezra_n and_o other_o who_o be_v divine_o inspire_v now_o at_o least_o add_v they_o for_o to_o refer_v it_o to_o a_o humane_a original_a be_v to_o overthrow_v
that_o be_v a_o essential_a property_n of_o god_n novitas_fw-la essendi_fw-la est_fw-la de_fw-la essentia_fw-la creaturae_fw-la and_o that_o melchizedek_n be_v a_o creature_n and_o not_o god_n be_v prove_v before_o because_o he_o be_v priest_n and_o king_n of_o salem_n and_o every_o priest_n be_v take_v from_o among_o man_n de_fw-fr ratione_fw-la sacerdotis_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la sit_fw-la verus_fw-la homo_fw-la it_o be_v a_o essential_a requisite_a in_o a_o priest_n that_o he_o be_v indeed_o a_o man_n melchizedek_n therefore_o be_v a_o man_n but_o yet_o eternal_a typical_o and_o in_o a_o figure_n christ_n be_v call_v a_o priest_n for_o ever_o psal_n 110.4_o and_o of_o melchizedek_n the_o apostle_n say_v he_o abide_v a_o priest_n continual_o heb._n 7.3_o you_o shall_v never_o have_v cause_n to_o say_v my_o friend_n alas_o my_o best_a friend_n be_v dead_a for_o he_o have_v a_o everlasting_a priesthood_n and_o life_n for_o ever_o to_o intercede_v and_o make_v mention_n of_o you_o to_o the_o lord_n heb._n 7.25_o 4._o in_o regard_n of_o his_o pre-eminence_n and_o excellency_n above_o all_o other_o man_n aaron_n vide_fw-la my_o note_n of_o christ_n priestly_a office_n wherein_o great_a than_o aaron_n behold_v how_o great_a this_o man_n be_v heb._n 7.4_o he_o be_v great_a than_o aaron_n the_o priest_n of_o the_o lord_n yea_o great_a than_o abraham_n the_o forefather_n of_o aaron_n he_o be_v great_a than_o abraham_n as_o in_o other_o respect_n so_o in_o these_o three_o 1._o in_o that_o he_o bless_a abraham_n gen._n 14.19_o heb._n 7.7_o and_o without_o contradiction_n the_o less_o be_v bless_v of_o the_o great_a so_o christ_n bless_v we_o luke_n 24_o 50_o 51._o all_o our_o blessing_n be_v through_o he_o he_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o blessing_n 2._o in_o that_o melchizedek_n do_v refresh_v abraham_n and_o his_o army_n gen._n 14.18_o and_o melchizedek_n king_n of_o salem_n bring_v forth_o bread_n and_o wine_n that_o be_v as_o the_o old_a note_n well_o explain_v it_o for_o abraham_n and_o his_o soldier_n refreshment_n and_o not_o to_o offer_v sacrifice_n so_o christ_n refresh_v his_o church_n with_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n matth._n 11._o i_o will_v give_v you_o rest_n or_o i_o will_v refresh_v you_o ego_fw-la reficiam_fw-la vos_fw-la 3._o in_o that_o melchizedek_n do_v receive_v a_o homage_n and_o acknowledgement_n of_o tithe_n from_o abraham_n and_o from_o levi_n and_o aaron_n in_o his_o loin_n thus_o they_o pay_v their_o respect_n to_o he_o gen._n 14.20_o heb._n 7.9_o whether_o of_o his_o spoil_n or_o of_o his_o good_n it_o be_v the_o ten_o part_n some_o have_v go_v so_o far_o from_o this_o as_o to_o infer_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o give_v unto_o christ_n the_o ten_o part_n of_o our_o good_n as_o well_o as_o the_o seven_o part_n of_o our_o time_n but_o to_o let_v that_o pass_v certain_a it_o be_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o give_v some_o fit_a proportion_n of_o our_o estate_n unto_o god_n for_o his_o use_n and_o service_n and_o as_o he_o be_v herein_o great_a than_o abraham_n so_o likewise_o great_a than_o aaron_n and_o the_o aaronical_a order_n melchizedek_n be_v a_o high_a order_n in_o many_o respect_n large_o open_v in_o that_o seven_o to_o the_o hebrew_n use_v this_o that_o have_v be_v say_v concern_v melchizedek_n as_o a_o shadow_n of_o jesus_n christ_n afford_v the_o great_a encouragement_n to_o believe_v and_o comfort_n to_o they_o that_o do_v believe_v in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n encouragement_n have_v such_o a_o high_a priest_n thou_o may_v safe_o venture_v thy_o soul_n upon_o he_o comfort_n that_o so_o great_a a_o person_n be_v thy_o saviour_n true_o thou_o be_v unworthy_a but_o his_o worth_n and_o excellency_n be_v enough_o to_o preponderate_v and_o overballance_v all_o thy_o unworthiness_n he_o be_v both_o a_o king_n and_o a_o priest_n for_o ever_o after_o the_o order_n of_o melchizedek_n and_o if_o thou_o do_v accept_v of_o he_o as_o thy_o king_n to_o rule_v thou_o thou_o may_v safe_o rely_v and_o rest_v upon_o he_o as_o thy_o high_a priest_n to_o justify_v and_o reconcile_v thou_o to_o his_o father_n 1667._o aug_n 15._o 1667._o of_o the_o individual_a personal_a type_n that_o be_v before_o the_o law_n there_o be_v four_o yet_o remain_v to_o be_v speak_v to_o you_o have_v hear_v of_o adam_n enoch_n noah_n melchizedek_n how_o they_o be_v type_n and_o figure_n of_o he_o that_o be_v to_o come_v it_o remain_v to_o speak_v of_o abraham_n isaac_n jacob_n and_o joseph_n 1._o abraham_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v of_o melchizedek_n in_o other_o respect_n heb._n 7.4_o so_o we_o may_v say_v of_o abraham_n consider_v how_o great_a this_o man_n be_v in_o that_o so_o many_o patriarch_n so_o many_o righteous_a man_n so_o many_o prophet_n priest_n and_o king_n yea_o jesus_n christ_n himself_o be_v once_o in_o abraham_n loin_n i_o confess_v he_o be_v omit_v by_o divers_a that_o have_v handle_v this_o subject_a for_o what_o reason_n i_o know_v not_o unless_o it_o be_v from_o a_o aptness_n to_o restrain_v all_o the_o type_n to_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n wherein_o perhaps_o they_o find_v the_o accommodation_n not_o so_o clear_a in_o respect_n of_o abraham_n in_o who_o nevertheless_o you_o will_v see_v some_o clearness_n i_o hope_v by_o and_o by_o even_o as_o to_o that_o though_o it_o be_v not_o always_o necessary_a in_o a_o type_n that_o it_o point_v direct_o at_o the_o messiahs_n person_n but_o it_o be_v sufficient_a if_o there_o be_v a_o adumbration_n or_o shadow_v a_o forth_o of_o any_o gospel_n truth_n or_o mystery_n any_o way_n belong_v to_o he_o but_o there_o be_v many_o of_o they_o shadow_v forth_o in_o abraham_n and_o the_o scripture_n own_v he_o for_o a_o typical_a person_n as_o you_o will_v see_v in_o the_o particular_n i_o shall_v but_o instance_n in_o five_o or_o six_o thing_n 1._o if_o we_o consider_v he_o together_o with_o isaac_n and_o jacob_n that_o proceed_v from_o he_o we_o may_v observe_v that_o in_o these_o three_o person_n abraham_n isaac_n and_o jacob_n there_o be_v a_o weak_a and_o dark_a shadow_n of_o a_o very_a great_a mystery_n even_o of_o those_o three_o glorious_a person_n god_n the_o father_n son_n and_o spirit_n in_o the_o order_n of_o their_o subsistence_n and_o influence_n to_o our_o salvation_n for_o abraham_n be_v the_o father_n and_o original_a of_o both_o the_o other_o and_o in_o his_o love_n to_o god_n he_o spare_v not_o his_o only_a son_n isaac_n but_o offer_v he_o up_o to_o death_n for_o a_o burnt-offering_a so_o god_n in_o his_o love_n to_o man_n spare_v not_o his_o only_o beget_v son_n but_o deliver_v he_o up_o for_o we_o rom._n 8.32_o isaac_n be_v sacrifice_v in_o a_o figure_n 22._o vide_fw-la my_o expos_n on_o gen._n 22._o so_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n in_o our_o nature_n slay_v and_o sacrifice_v for_o we_o and_o jacob_n you_o know_v come_v both_o of_o abraham_n and_o isaac_n and_o he_o be_v renown_v for_o the_o spirit_n of_o prayer_n by_o which_o he_o have_v power_n with_o god_n and_o prevail_v gen._n 32.28_o he_o do_v not_o prevail_v by_o his_o own_o strength_n but_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o do_v appear_v in_o he_o and_o act_v he_o as_o a_o spirit_n of_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n unto_o such_o invincible_a wrestle_n with_o the_o lord_n from_o all_o which_o you_o see_v that_o there_o be_v some_o glimpse_n and_o shadow_n of_o the_o father_n love_n of_o the_o son_n death_n and_o suffering_n and_o of_o the_o spirit_n his_o breathe_n and_o working_n in_o we_o here_o be_v something_o of_o a_o low_a and_o weak_a representation_n of_o that_o glorious_a mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o the_o influence_n thereof_o to_o our_o eternal_a peace_n though_o it_o be_v but_o a_o low_a and_o weak_a and_o dark_a shadow_n of_o it_o as_o all_o type_n be_v in_o comparison_n of_o the_o antitype_n 2._o if_o we_o consider_v abraham_n with_o his_o two_o wife_n hagar_n and_o sarah_n and_o their_o posterity_n ishmael_n and_o isaac_n here_o the_o two_o covenant_n of_o work_n and_o grace_n legal_a and_o evangelical_a professor_n be_v shadow_v forth_o for_o this_o we_o have_v the_o apostle_n authority_n and_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n himself_o the_o best_a interpreter_n of_o his_o own_o meaning_n gal._n 4.22_o 23_o 24._o 1._o the_o difference_n and_o property_n of_o the_o two_o covenant_n be_v here_o hold_v forth_o hagar_n by_o the_o strength_n of_o nature_n have_v a_o child_n but_o sarah_n by_o the_o faith_n in_o the_o promise_n gal._n 4.23_o so_o work_v and_o fruit_n bring_v forth_o in_o a_o man_n own_o strength_n these_o be_v legal_a if_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n this_o be_v evangelical_a the_o first_o covenant-spirit_n be_v a_o spirit_n of_o bondage_n gal._n 4.24_o 25._o bondage_n unto_o sin_n and_o death_n the_o
do_v the_o morrow_n after_o the_o sabbath_n of_o the_o passover_n and_o fifty_o day_n after_o at_o the_o feast_n of_o pentecost_n they_o be_v to_o offer_v two_o wave-loave_n vers_fw-la 17_o 20._o thus_o you_o see_v the_o matter_n of_o these_o offering_n the_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n with_o which_o they_o be_v offer_v be_v wave_a and_o heave_a from_o whence_o they_o have_v their_o name_n of_o wave-offering_a and_o heave-offering_a wave_a that_o be_v move_v it_o to_o and_o fro_o round_o about_o towards_o the_o east_n west_n south_n and_o north._n tenuphah_n agitatio_fw-la from_o the_o verb_n nuph_n which_o in_o hiphil_n be_v agitavit_fw-la ventilavit_fw-la heave_a that_o be_v lift_v it_o up_o towards_o heaven_n terumah_o from_o rum_o elevari_fw-la extolli_fw-la these_o be_v gesture_n some_o may_v think_v somewhat_o strange_a and_o hardly_o grave_a enough_o in_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n but_o what_o be_v the_o mystery_n and_o meaning_n of_o they_o you_o will_v find_v that_o clear_o express_v in_o numb_a 8.11_o and_o aaron_n shall_v offer_v the_o levite_n before_o the_o lord_n for_o a_o offer_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n that_o they_o may_v execute_v the_o service_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o hebrew_n read_v it_o as_o your_o margin_n tell_v you_o thus_o and_o aaron_n shall_v wave_v the_o levite_n before_o the_o lord_n for_o a_o wave-offering_a of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n this_o than_o be_v the_o end_n and_o the_o meaning_n of_o these_o gesture_n to_o present_v and_o dedicate_v the_o thing_n to_o the_o lord_n who_o if_o he_o will_v have_v it_o do_v by_o such_o or_o such_o a_o gesture_n who_o or_o what_o be_v vain_a man_n that_o he_o shall_v control_v or_o find_v fault_n with_o the_o unsearchable_a wisdom_n and_o sovereign_a authority_n of_o the_o lord_n god_n almighty_n these_o word_n be_v use_v general_o concern_v all_o thing_n give_v or_o dedicate_v to_o god_n as_o exod._n 35.22_o and_o every_o one_o that_o offer_v offer_v a_o offer_n of_o gold_n unto_o the_o lord_n heniph_n tenuphath_n agitavit_fw-la agitationem_fw-la he_o wave_v a_o wave-offering_a of_o gold_n unto_o the_o lord_n even_o land_n itself_o ezek._n 48.8_o 9_o 10_o 20._o person_n also_o be_v say_v to_o be_v wave_v as_o a_o wave-offering_a when_o dedicate_v to_o the_o lord_n numb_a 8.11_o for_o wave_n the_o greek_a translate_v separate_v which_o word_n paul_n use_v speak_v of_o his_o designation_n to_o the_o ministry_n rom._n 1.1_o some_o have_v observe_v something_o more_o in_o these_o gesture_n especial_o that_o of_o wave_a to_o and_o fro_o round_o about_o the_o original_a word_n be_v sometime_o use_v for_o sift_v in_o a_o sieve_n isai_n 30.28_o that_o signify_v trial_n and_o affliction_n luk._n 22.31_o and_o so_o the_o prophet_n apply_v this_o word_n unto_o trouble_n isai_n 10.32_o and_o 13.2_o and_o 30.28_o the_o sense_n than_o will_v amount_v to_o thus_o much_o that_o the_o saint_n and_o minister_n be_v spiritual_a priest_n be_v consecrate_v to_o the_o lord_n through_o suffering_n as_o it_o be_v say_v of_o christ_n the_o captain_n of_o our_o salvation_n heb._n 2.10_o so_o the_o saint_n 2_o cor._n 6.4_o 10._o as_o the_o wave-offering_a be_v toss_v and_o wave_v to_o and_o fro_o and_o thereby_o dedicate_v to_o the_o lord_n there_o be_v some_o controversy_n upon_o these_o 384._o mede_n disc_n 49._o pag._n 384._o start_v by_o a_o learned_a man_n and_o one_o of_o much_o light_n in_o other_o thing_n however_o he_o miss_v it_o in_o this_o there_o be_v aliquid_fw-la humanum_fw-la in_o the_o best_a of_o man_n and_o humanum_fw-la est_fw-la errare_fw-la no_o man_n but_o be_v subject_n to_o error_n and_o mistake_n the_o question_n be_v whether_o they_o be_v ceremonial_a and_o cease_v or_o moral_a and_o perpetual_a but_o the_o case_n be_v clear_a and_o easy_a concern_v they_o both_o both_o the_o heave-offering_n and_o the_o wave-offering_n they_o be_v ceremonial_a and_o they_o be_v abolish_v object_n they_o be_v not_o type_n of_o christ_n ans_fw-fr if_o they_o be_v type_n or_o legal_a adumbration_n of_o christian_a duty_n or_o of_o any_o of_o the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n this_o suffice_v and_o be_v enough_o to_o make_v they_o ceremonial_a and_o consequent_o abolish_v for_o the_o type_n as_o have_v be_v often_o say_v and_o prove_v and_o must_v be_v now_o again_o repeat_v do_v not_o relate_v only_o to_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n but_o to_o all_o gospel_n truth_n and_o mystery_n object_n they_o may_v be_v eat_v by_o other_o beside_o the_o priest_n and_o in_o other_o place_n not_o in_o the_o holy_a place_n only_o therefore_o can_v not_o be_v typical_a unless_o all_o the_o people_n and_o every_o corner_n of_o the_o land_n be_v typical_a ans_fw-fr so_o may_v the_o peace-offering_n in_o this_o chapter_n leu._n 7.15_o 16._o the_o offerer_n have_v a_o share_n in_o they_o and_o yet_o they_o be_v ceremonial_a and_o not_o moral_a moreover_o not_o only_o the_o temple_n and_o the_o priest_n there_o but_o the_o whole_a land_n of_o canaan_n and_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n be_v a_o typical_a land_n and_o a_o typical_a people_n and_o as_o have_v be_v former_o and_o shall_v be_v further_o show_v all_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o land_n have_v a_o typical_a holiness_n the_o first_o fruit_n be_v virtual_o the_o whole_a they_o be_v a_o typical_a dedication_n of_o the_o whole_a object_n the_o scripture_n express_o reject_v other_o sacrifice_n and_o offering_n and_o do_v not_o mention_v these_o ans_fw-fr yet_o these_o be_v include_v by_o a_o parity_n of_o reason_n if_o the_o chief_a be_v reject_v much_o more_o the_o lesser_a and_o inferior_a object_n but_o christian_n under_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v bind_v to_o give_v part_n of_o their_o substance_n to_o the_o lord_n and_o to_o his_o use_n and_o service_n therefore_o these_o be_v moral_a ans_fw-fr i_o answer_v it_o follow_v not_o for_o this_o be_v a_o moral_a duty_n to_o give_v part_n of_o our_o substance_n to_o the_o lord_n but_o yet_o the_o heave-offering_n and_o wave_v offering_n be_v cease_v that_o be_v the_o ceremony_n be_v cease_v but_o the_o substance_n or_o thing_n signify_v remain_v the_o formalis_fw-la ratio_fw-la of_o these_o offering_n do_v not_o consist_v as_o some_o have_v think_v in_o prayer_n and_o thanksgiving_n for_o there_o be_v prayer_n and_o thanksgiving_n in_o other_o offering_n also_o as_o well_o as_o these_o yea_o in_o all_o their_o offering_n be_v they_o not_o command_v to_o lay_v their_o hand_n upon_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o atonement_n by_o way_n of_o prayer_n and_o confession_n cap._n 1.4_o but_o the_o formalis_fw-la ratio_fw-la of_o this_o and_o other_o offering_n do_v consist_v chief_o in_o the_o ceremony_n ordain_v to_o be_v use_v about_o they_o which_o be_v a_o great_a part_n of_o that_o which_o distinguish_v one_o offer_v from_o another_o as_o you_o have_v former_o hear_v therefore_o if_o wave_a and_o heave_v be_v not_o to_o be_v use_v under_o the_o gospel_n as_o sacred_a and_o significant_a ceremony_n in_o the_o present_n and_o dedicate_a of_o our_o substance_n to_o the_o lord_n the_o wave_n and_o the_o heave_v offer_v be_v cease_v but_o the_o gesture_n of_o wave_v and_o heave_n be_v not_o to_o be_v use_v as_o sacred_a and_o significant_a ceremony_n under_o the_o gospel_n therefore_o the_o wave_n and_o heave_v offer_v be_v cease_v use_v 1_o remember_v those_o great_a gospel_n mystery_n which_o be_v the_o scope_n of_o all_o sacrifice_n which_o as_o you_o have_v hear_v be_v chief_o these_o two_o atonement_n and_o thanksgiving_n 1._o atonement_n and_o reconciliation_n this_o be_v the_o great_a mystery_n teach_v and_o hold_v forth_o in_o all_o the_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n that_o we_o be_v reconcile_v unto_o god_n by_o the_o death_n and_o suffering_n of_o his_o son_n and_o that_o they_o have_v so_o great_a a_o multitude_n and_o variety_n of_o sacrifice_n plain_o teach_v they_o two_o thing_n 1._o the_o imperfection_n of_o all_o those_o legal_a sacrifice_n it_o teach_v they_o to_o look_v beyond_o these_o for_o a_o more_o perfect_a sacrifice_n then_o any_o of_o these_o which_o may_v serve_v once_o for_o all_o the_o apostle_n express_o spell_n out_o this_o lesson_n to_o we_o from_o the_o multitude_n and_o iteration_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n heb._n 10.1_o 2._o 2._o this_o great_a variety_n of_o sacrifice_n teach_v they_o also_o the_o various_a and_o manifold_a benefit_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o his_o death_n and_o blood_n though_o christ_n be_v one_o and_o die_v once_o for_o all_o yet_o the_o benefit_n that_o come_v by_o he_o be_v many_o no_o one_o thing_n alone_o be_v sufficient_a to_o represent_v the_o fullness_n that_o be_v in_o christ_n 2._o the_o second_o great_a thing_n hold_v forth_o by_o their_o legal_a offering_n be_v praise_n and_o thankfulness_n this_o be_v the_o intent_n of_o the_o holy_a offering_n as_o atonement_n be_v of_o the_o most_o holy_a this_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o heave
his_o house_n we_o see_v of_o what_o a_o infectious_a nature_n it_o be_v therefore_o keep_v off_o at_o the_o great_a distance_n have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o it_o we_o shall_v hate_v the_o very_a garment_n spot_v with_o the_o flesh_n obs_n 6._o note_v from_o the_o whole_a what_o a_o intricate_a and_o cumbersome_a dispensation_n the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v then_o under_o in_o those_o legal_a time_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o law_n of_o ceremony_n here_o be_v beside_o the_o bodily_a disease_n a_o ceremonial_a uncleanness_n in_o it_o which_o be_v very_o burdensome_a and_o difficult_a to_o judge_v of_o and_o to_o keep_v themselves_o from_o it_o and_o to_o cleanse_v it_o and_o it_o be_v such_o a_o burden_n as_o may_v light_v upon_o a_o child_n of_o god_n a_o godly_a man_n may_v possible_o be_v a_o leper_n as_o it_o be_v not_o improbable_a by_o some_o expression_n but_o that_o may_v be_v h●mans_n case_n psal_n 88_o he_o say_v he_o be_v shut_v up_o a_o abomination_n to_o they_o and_o that_o lover_n and_o friend_n be_v go_v they_o have_v this_o burden_n of_o ceremonial_a uncleanness_n beside_o all_o their_o other_o burden_n that_o as_o peter_n speak_v act._n 15._o be_v a_o yoke_n which_o neither_o we_o nor_o our_o father_n be_v able_a to_o bear_v we_o be_v free_a from_o all_o this_o we_o have_v no_o further_a care_n or_o burden_n lie_v on_o we_o but_o to_o look_v to_o the_o health_n of_o our_o body_n and_o the_o moral_a uncleanness_n of_o sin_n but_o the_o ceremonial_a uncleanness_n be_v vanish_v away_o use_v it_o shall_v stir_v we_o up_o to_o thankfulness_n and_o as_o the_o best_a expression_n of_o it_o to_o love_v and_o prize_n and_o keep_v close_o to_o the_o ordinance_n and_o institution_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v but_o two_o which_o be_v plain_a and_o easy_a and_o spiritual_a viz._n baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n with_o some_o few_o other_o thing_n for_o the_o order_n and_o way_n of_o enjoy_v these_o as_o a_o church-estate_n and_o ministry_n to_o dispense_v they_o as_o he_o say_v to_o naaman_n if_o the_o prophet_n have_v require_v some_o great_a thing_n will_v thou_o not_o have_v do_v it_o how_o much_o rather_o when_o he_o say_v to_o thou_o wash_v and_o be_v clean_a so_o if_o the_o lord_n have_v put_v that_o old_a yoke_n upon_o our_o neck_n and_o conscience_n which_o he_o have_v be_v please_v to_o remove_v shall_v we_o not_o have_v take_v it_o upon_o we_o how_o much_o more_o when_o he_o require_v only_o so_o few_o such_o plain_a easy_a simple_a spiritual_a thing_n we_o shall_v love_v and_o prize_v they_o and_o the_o lord_n in_o they_o and_o bring_v forth_o the_o fruit_n of_o gospel_n dispensation_n the_o gospel_n of_o the_o legal_a purification_n 1668._o september_n 20._o 1668._o hebr._n 9.13_o 14._o have_v speak_v of_o the_o ceremonial_a uncleanness_n and_o the_o moral_a uncleanness_n figure_v thereby_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o next_o place_n to_o speak_v of_o the_o ceremonial_a purification_n and_o the_o spiritual_a cleanse_v signify_v thereby_o together_o with_o the_o mean_n thereof_o if_o the_o blood_n of_o bull_n and_o goat_n sanctify_v to_o the_o purify_n of_o the_o flesh_n these_o general_a expression_n include_v all_o but_o the_o apostle_n specify_v one_o particular_a viz._n the_o ash_n of_o a_o heyser_n sprinkle_v the_o unclean_a the_o law_n for_o it_o be_v in_o the_o 19_o chapter_n of_o number_n there_o be_v two_o thing_n chief_o to_o be_v consider_v in_o it_o as_o in_o other_o sacrifice_n 1._o the_o matter_n of_o it_o 2._o the_o ceremony_n or_o action_n about_o it_o for_o purification_n 1._o the_o matter_n and_o under_o this_o there_o be_v four_o thing_n observable_a 1._o that_o it_o be_v a_o heyser_n 2._o a_o red_a heyser_n 3._o without_o spot_n or_o blemish_n 4._o on_o which_o never_o come_v yoke_n 1._o it_o must_v be_v a_o heyser_n so_o in_o the_o text_n so_o in_o numb_a 19_o vers_fw-la 12._o the_o lord_n speak_v unto_o moses_n and_o unto_o aaron_n say_v this_o be_v the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o law_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v command_v say_v speak_v unto_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n that_o they_o may_v bring_v thou_o a_o red_a heiser_n without_o spot_n wherein_o be_v no_o blemish_n and_o upon_o which_o never_a yoke_n come_v here_o be_v god_n authority_n so_o appoint_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o heifer_n though_o ordinary_o they_o be_v to_o offer_v male_n yet_o here_o the_o law_n you_o see_v be_v express_o otherwise_o it_o must_v not_o be_v a_o bullock_n but_o a_o heifer_n therefore_o this_o be_v a_o peculiar_a kind_n of_o sacrifice_n god_n by_o his_o sovereign_a authority_n do_v and_o may_v appoint_v what_o he_o please_v to_o be_v offer_v in_o his_o sacrifice_n 2._o it_o be_v particular_o require_v that_o it_o be_v a_o red_a heifer_n a_o colour_n often_o and_o fit_o apply_v to_o christ_n in_o a_o mystical_a sense_n my_o beloved_n be_v white_a and_o ruddy_a cant._n 5.10_o so_o isai_n 63.1_o who_o be_v this_o that_o come_v from_o edom_n with_o red_a garment_n from_o bozrah_n red_a with_o his_o own_o blood_n and_o with_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o conquer_a enemy_n and_o rev._n 19.13_o his_o vesture_n dip_v in_o blood_n the_o redness_n of_o the_o heifer_n do_v also_o point_n at_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o have_v from_o adam_n who_o be_v make_v out_o of_o red_a earth_n gen._n 2.7_o from_o which_o also_o he_o take_v his_o name_n adam_n thus_o christ_n be_v red_a and_o that_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o suffering_n and_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o victory_n and_o of_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o conquer_a enemy_n and_o also_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o beauty_n and_o last_o in_o regard_n that_o he_o take_v part_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n be_v real_o and_o true_o man_n 3._o it_o be_v further_a require_v in_o this_o sacrifice_n that_o it_o must_v be_v without_o spot_n and_o blemish_n numb_a 19.2_o this_o be_v require_v in_o all_o the_o sacrifice_n as_o leu._n 1.3_o 10._o without_o blemish_n and_o it_o speak_v forth_o the_o purity_n and_o perfection_n of_o jesus_n christ_n therefore_o it_o be_v say_v 1_o pet._n 1.19_o we_o be_v redeem_v by_o his_o blood_n as_o of_o a_o lamb_n without_o spot_n and_o blemish_n and_o he_o that_o know_v no_o sin_n have_v god_n make_v sin_n for_o we_o that_o we_o may_v become_v the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n by_o he_o 2_o cor._n 5.21_o so_o he_o be_v both_o white_a and_o ruddy_a ruddy_n in_o regard_n of_o his_o bloody_a suffering_n but_o white_a in_o regard_n of_o his_o pure_a and_o perfect_a righteousness_n 4._o it_o must_v be_v such_o a_o heifer_n on_o which_o never_o come_v yoke_n numb_a 19.2_o so_o christ_n be_v free_a from_o the_o bondage_n of_o sin_n and_o do_v never_o come_v under_o the_o yoke_n of_o man_n invention_n and_o command_n nor_o do_v he_o suffer_v by_o compulsion_n but_o free_o and_o willing_o when_o he_o die_v for_o we_o sin_n and_o the_o punishment_n of_o it_o be_v compare_v in_o scripture_n to_o a_o yoke_n lament_n 1.14_o the_o yoke_n of_o my_o transgression_n be_v bind_v by_o his_o hand_n they_o be_v wreathe_v and_o come_v up_o upon_o my_o neck_n and_o so_o joh._n 8.33_o 34_o 35_o 36._o he_o that_o live_v in_o sin_n and_o commit_v and_o make_v a_o trade_n of_o it_o he_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o sin_n they_o boast_v that_o they_o be_v free_a and_o never_o in_o bondage_n to_o any_o man_n but_o he_o tell_v they_o of_o a_o spiritual_a servitude_n which_o they_o understand_v not_o this_o be_v christ_n free_a from_o and_o yet_o further_o as_o there_o be_v not_o this_o yoke_n of_o sin_n upon_o he_o so_o neither_o be_v there_o any_o yoke_n of_o constraint_n or_o compulsion_n in_o his_o suffering_n in_o any_o thing_n he_o undergo_v for_o we_o all_o he_o do_v and_o suffer_v be_v spontaneous_a and_o voluntary_a joh._n 10.17_o 18._o i_o lay_v down_o my_o life_n that_o i_o may_v take_v it_o again_o no_o man_n take_v it_o from_o i_o but_o i_o lay_v it_o down_o of_o myself_o i_o have_v power_n to_o lay_v it_o down_o and_o i_o have_v power_n to_o take_v it_o again_o so_o here_o be_v a_o heifer_n a_o red_a heifer_n a_o heifer_n without_o spot_n and_o one_o upon_o which_o never_o come_v yoke_n 2._o consider_v the_o action_n and_o ceremony_n about_o the_o heifer_n which_o be_v also_o very_o significant_a and_o full_a of_o spiritual_a mystery_n not_o to_o insist_v upon_o the_o bring_n of_o she_o to_o the_o priest_n which_o be_v common_a to_o all_o the_o sacrifice_n there_o be_v four_o especial_o remarkable_a 1._o that_o she_o must_v be_v slay_v without_o the_o camp_n 2._o the_o blood_n sprinkle_v seven_o time_n towards_o the_o tabernacle_n 3._o the_o body_n burn_v with_o cedar_n scarlet_n and_o hyslop_n call_v into_o to_o the_o fire_n 4._o the_o ash_n
neglect_v and_o postpone_v god_n will_v blast_v and_o curse_v all_o the_o other_o work_v of_o your_o hand_n as_o he_o do_v they_o 5._o labour_v to_o see_v the_o beauty_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o his_o temple_n this_o be_v david_n earnest_a desire_n psal_n 27.4_o one_o thing_n i_o have_v desire_v of_o the_o lord_n that_o will_v i_o seek_v after_o that_o i_o may_v dwell_v in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n all_o the_o day_n of_o my_o life_n to_o behold_v the_o beauty_n of_o the_o lord_n psal_n 84.7_o to_o appear_v before_o god_n in_o zion_n psal_n 63.2_o to_o see_v thy_o power_n and_o thy_o glory_n in_o thy_o sanctuary_n what_o do_v you_o come_v there_o for_o if_o you_o do_v not_o meet_v with_o god_n there_o be_v in_o the_o pure_a way_n of_o worship_n but_o rest_v not_o in_o it_o without_o god_n get_v real_a vision_n and_o fruition_n of_o god_n in_o his_o ordinance_n to_o see_v the_o pleasant_a beauty_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o his_o temple_n quest_n but_o when_o be_v god_n real_a to_o the_o soul_n in_o his_o ordinance_n answer_n when_o god_n be_v as_o real_a to_o the_o soul_n to_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n as_o the_o external_a part_n of_o a_o ordinance_n be_v to_o the_o eye_n of_o sense_n when_o you_o see_v christ_n crucify_v in_o the_o sacrament_n when_o you_o see_v his_o body_n break_v his_o blood_n pour_v out_o as_o real_o as_o you_o see_v the_o bread_n break_v and_o the_o wine_n pour_v out_o and_o if_o there_o be_v a_o real_a sight_n of_o christ_n it_o will_v have_v real_a effect_n to_o subdue_v thy_o lust_n to_o keep_v the_o heart_n in_o way_n of_o holiness_n quest_n but_o what_o of_o god_n be_v we_o to_o see_v in_o his_o temple_n answ_n all_o his_o glory_n shine_v forth_o there_o especial_o his_o power_n and_o his_o grace_n 1._o his_o power_n psal_n 63.2_o to_o see_v thy_o power_n and_o thy_o glory_n 2._o especial_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n zech._n 4.7_o cry_v grace_n grace_n unto_o it_o from_o the_o foundation_n to_o the_o top-stone_n 2._o sam._n 7.13_o he_o shall_v build_v a_o house_n for_o my_o name_n 1668._o nou._n 1._o 1668._o and_o i_o will_v establish_v the_o throne_n of_o his_o kingdom_n for_o ever_o now_o of_o the_o part_n of_o the_o temple_n take_v the_o word_n in_o the_o large_a sense_n for_o all_o the_o holy_a building_n and_o the_o appertainance_n thereof_o so_o the_o part_n of_o it_o be_v three_o 1._o the_o house_n 2._o the_o court_n and_o 3._o the_o vessel_n of_o the_o temple_n i_o call_v they_o all_o part_n for_o want_v of_o a_o fit_a term_n to_o express_v it_o by_o for_o there_o be_v a_o penury_n of_o word_n from_o whence_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n sometime_o of_o trope_n and_o figure_n and_o impropriety_n of_o speech_n 1._o the_o house_n itself_o that_o be_v the_o cover_a building_n call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d from_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o inhabit_v as_o all_o the_o holy_a ground_n be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o the_o whole_a place_n and_o all_o the_o court_n be_v holy_a as_o to_o this_o i_o mean_v the_o house_n itself_o we_o may_v consider_v 1._o the_o common_a part_n of_o it_o which_o belong_v to_o every_o house_n and_o so_o to_o this_o among_o the_o rest_n and_o here_o the_o scripture_n take_v notice_n of_o the_o foundation_n the_o wall_n the_o door_n the_o window_n the_o floor_n and_o the_o roof_n of_o the_o temple_n not_o that_o we_o shall_v seek_v a_o mystery_n in_o every_o thing_n but_o only_o so_o far_o as_o we_o see_v the_o scripture_n go_v before_o we_o we_o may_v safe_o follow_v when_o we_o find_v the_o scripture_n allegorise_v any_o thing_n and_o allude_v to_o it_o in_o a_o spiritual_a sense_n we_o shall_v mind_v and_o heedful_o take_v out_o such_o lesson_n and_o instruction_n i_o must_v speak_v first_o to_o the_o letter_n and_o history_n of_o they_o as_o part_n of_o the_o material_a temple_n and_o then_o consider_v what_o mystical_a application_n the_o scripture_n make_v of_o they_o this_o method_n i_o shall_v observe_v under_o every_o head_n 1._o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n it_o be_v of_o great_a costly_a hew_a stone_n 1_o king_n 5.17_o but_o what_o be_v the_o foundation_n in_o the_o foundation_n in_o the_o spiritual_a temple_n the_o scripture_n often_o apply_v this_o to_o jesus_n christ_n isai_n 28.16_o behold_v i_o lie_v in_o zion_n for_o a_o foundation_n a_o stone_n a_o try_a stone_n etc._n etc._n 1._o pet._n 2_o 4-6_a to_o who_o come_v as_o to_o a_o live_a stone_n disallow_v indeed_o of_o man_n etc._n etc._n refuse_v of_o the_o builder_n psal_n 118.22_o the_o stone_n which_o the_o builder_n refuse_v be_v become_v the_o head_n of_o the_o corner_n a_o scripture_n often_o interpret_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n concern_v christ_n other_o foundation_n can_v no_o man_n lay_v 1_o cor._n 3.9_o 11._o the_o scripture_n often_o speak_v of_o christ_n under_o this_o notion_n as_o a_o stone_n and_o a_o rock_n and_o a_o cornerstone_n gen._n 49.24_o from_o thence_o be_v the_o shepherd_n the_o stone_n of_o israel_n dan._n 2.25_o a_o stone_n cut_v out_o of_o the_o mountain_n without_o hand_n isai_n 26.4_o trust_v you_o in_o the_o lord_n for_o ever_o for_o in_o the_o lord_n jehovah_n be_v everlasting_a strength_n the_o word_n be_v the_o rock_n of_o age_n in_o which_o rock_n moses_n be_v hide_v exod._n 33.22_o while_o my_o glory_n pass_v by_o i_o will_v put_v thou_o in_o a_o cleft_n of_o the_o rock_n and_o elijah_n 1_o king_n 19.9_o 13._o he_o be_v that_o stone_n zech._n 3.9_o engrave_v with_o seven_o eye_n upon_o 〈◊〉_d it_o and_o as_o christ_n be_v the_o foundation-stone_n of_o the_o church_n so_o the_o apostle_n in_o regard_n of_o their_o doctrine_n be_v also_o call_v the_o foundation_n of_o it_o rev._n 21.14_o eph._n 2.20.21_o look_v to_o it_o that_o you_o be_v build_v upon_o this_o foundation_n that_o you_o be_v not_o build_v upon_o the_o sand_n but_o upon_o this_o rock_n matthew_n 7.24_o for_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o church_n stand_v so_o safe_a because_o build_v upon_o this_o rock_n therefore_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o matthew_z 26.18_o the_o papist_n make_v the_o pope_n the_o cornerstone_n of_o their_o church_n but_o it_o be_v not_o the_o pope_n it_o be_v not_o peter_n himself_o as_o personal_o consider_v that_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o many_o build_v upon_o the_o sandy_a foundation_n of_o their_o own_o righteousness_n and_o their_o own_o strength_n and_o moral_a endeavour_n these_o be_v false_a foundation_n but_o if_o you_o be_v upon_o this_o foundation_n fear_v not_o whosoever_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v confound_v 2._o the_o wall_n of_o the_o temple_n they_o be_v of_o stone_n the_o inside_n be_v cedar_n adorn_v with_o carve_a cherubim_n palm_n tree_n flower_n and_o overlay_v with_o gold_n and_o yet_o further_o adorn_v with_o precious_a stone_n fixed_z and_o sparkle_v like_o star_n in_o fit_a place_n in_o the_o wall_n 1_o king_n 6.18_o 29_o 2_o chron._n 3.6_o the_o outside_n of_o the_o wall_n be_v either_o white_a polish_a marble_n as_o some_o think_v or_o overlay_v with_o silver_n as_o other_o conceive_v from_o 1_o chron._n 29.4_o for_o within_o it_o be_v overlay_v with_o gold_n therefore_o this_o silver_n as_o it_o seem_v be_v for_o the_o outside_n which_o can_v not_o but_o yield_v a_o very_a bright_a and_o glorious_a show_n to_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o spectator_n especial_o when_o the_o beam_n of_o the_o sun_n do_v shine_v and_o sparkle_v upon_o it_o the_o thickness_n of_o the_o wall_n of_o the_o temple_n be_v not_o express_v in_o the_o scripture_n but_o the_o least_o that_o can_v be_v allow_v at_o the_o foundation_n be_v four_o cubit_n because_o there_o be_v a_o rebatement_n of_o three_o cubit_n in_o the_o thickness_n of_o the_o wall_n for_o the_o side-chamber_n 1_o king_n 6.6_o and_o for_o the_o wall_n in_o the_o high_a story_n we_o may_v well_o allow_v one_o cubit_n and_o so_o there_o will_v be_v four_o at_o the_o bottom_n the_o scripture_n appy_n this_o mystical_o to_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n rev._n 21.12_o it_o have_v a_o wall_n great_a and_o high_a and_o again_o v._o 17._o and_o often_o the_o wall_n be_v mention_v 1._o the_o wall_n of_o a_o house_n or_o city_n be_v the_o defence_n and_o safety_n of_o it_o so_o isai_n 60.18_o thou_o shall_v call_v thy_o wall_n salvation_n and_o god_n be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o wall_n of_o fire_n zech._n 2.5_o for_o i_o say_v the_o lord_n will_v be_v unto_o she_o a_o wall_n of_o fire_n round_o about_o and_o will_v be_v the_o glory_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o she_o the_o lord_n be_v for_o wall_n and_o bulwark_n to_o his_o people_n isai_n 26.1_o 2._o the_o stone_n in_o this_o sacred_a building_n
so_o free_o offer_v to_o the_o wash_v in_o this_o spiritual_a sea_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o believe_v and_o exercise_v faith_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n do_v not_o object_n and_o say_v alas_o i_o be_o defile_v and_o unclean_a i_o answer_v thou_o have_v the_o more_o need_n of_o wash_v the_o great_a thy_o defilement_n be_v thou_o have_v the_o more_o need_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o of_o his_o blood_n to_o cleanse_v thou_o and_o wash_v thou_o from_o thy_o sin_n use_v 4._o comfort_n to_o believer_n that_o wash_v here_o for_o sin_n and_o for_o uncleanness_n see_v isai_n 4.4_o when_o the_o lord_n shall_v have_v wash_v away_o the_o filth_n of_o the_o daughter_n of_o zion_n and_o shall_v have_v purge_v the_o blood_n of_o jerusalem_n from_o the_o midst_n thereof_o here_o be_v a_o fourfold_a ground_n of_o comfort_n in_o this_o crystal_n sea_n 1._o here_o be_v enough_o of_o it_o here_o be_v a_o sea_n to_o wash_v in_o there_o be_v water_n enough_o in_o the_o sea_n for_o any_o man_n to_o wash_v in_o though_o never_o so_o much_o defile_v so_o there_o be_v virtue_n enough_o cleanse_v enough_o in_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n thou_o have_v many_o sin_n many_o spot_n many_o defilement_n upon_o thou_o but_o here_o be_v a_o sea_n to_o wash_v in_o this_o type_n of_o a_o sea_n speak_v the_o plenty_n of_o it_o here_o be_v not_o a_o few_o drop_n of_o soul-cleansing_a justify_v blood_n but_o here_o be_v a_o ocean_n of_o it_o 2._o it_o will_v take_v out_o the_o deep_a stain_n the_o foul_a spot_n though_o your_o sin_n be_v as_o scarlet_n they_o shall_v be_v as_o white_a as_o snow_n though_o they_o be_v red_a like_o crimson_n they_o shall_v be_v as_o wool_n isai_n 1.18_o the_o apostle_n instance_v in_o some_o of_o the_o foul_a and_o black_a spot_n adulterer_n thief_n drunkard_n etc._n etc._n 1_o cor._n 6.10_o 11._o and_o such_o be_v some_o of_o you_o but_o you_o be_v wash_v but_o you_o be_v sanctify_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o our_o god_n your_o robe_n be_v white_a if_o wash_v in_o this_o blood_n rev._n 7.14_o these_o be_v they_o that_o have_v wash_v their_o robe_n and_o make_v they_o white_a in_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb._n yea_o 3._o thou_o be_v as_o clean_a in_o respect_n of_o justification_n as_o if_o those_o sin_n have_v never_o be_v commit_v you_o be_v perfect_o justify_v though_o but_o imperfect_o sanctify_v therefore_o justify_v person_n be_v say_v to_o have_v no_o more_o conscience_n of_o sin_n heb._n 10.2_o not_o as_o though_o they_o make_v no_o conscience_n to_o commit_v it_o no_o that_o be_v abominable_a but_o the_o conscience_n be_v discharge_v and_o set_v free_a from_o guilt_n and_o can_v look_v god_n in_o the_o face_n comfortable_o and_o with_o holy_a boldness_n man_n use_v to_o say_v when_o they_o have_v not_o commit_v such_o or_o such_o a_o evil_a my_o conscience_n be_v clear_a yea_o but_o conscience_n may_v be_v clear_a though_o thou_o have_v commit_v it_o if_o wash_v and_o cleanse_v from_o it_o by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n 4._o you_o shall_v therefore_o draw_v nigh_o with_o full_a assurance_n of_o faith_n be_v thus_o wash_v as_o heb._n 10.22_o let_v we_o draw_v near_o with_o a_o true_a heart_n in_o full_a assurance_n of_o faith_n have_v our_o heart_n sprinkle_v from_o a_o evil_a conscience_n and_o our_o body_n wash_v with_o pure_a water_n when_o you_o stand_v upon_o this_o cleanse_a sea_n you_o shall_v take_v the_o harp_n of_o god_n into_o your_o hand_n as_o revel_v 15.2_o you_o shall_v triumph_v and_o sing_v quest_n but_o how_o may_v i_o know_v that_o i_o be_o indeed_o wash_v in_o this_o blood_n and_o accept_v through_o this_o righteousness_n of_o jesus_n christ_n answ_n this_o sea_n of_o glass_n be_v mingle_v with_o fire_n cap._n 15.2_o and_o here_o in_o the_o word_n before_o the_o text_n here_o be_v seven_o lamp_n of_o fire_n burn_v before_o the_o throne_n which_o be_v the_o seven_o spirit_n of_o god_n ver_fw-la 5._o there_o be_v a_o baptism_n of_o fire_n as_o well_o as_o a_o baptism_n of_o water_n the_o meaning_n be_v this_o that_o justification_n through_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v ever_o accompany_v with_o sanctification_n by_o his_o spirit_n therefore_o if_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v burn_v and_o work_v in_o thy_o heart_n fear_v not_o thou_o be_v wash_v in_o this_o crystal_n sea_n which_o be_v before_o the_o throne_n if_o sanctify_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n thou_o be_v justify_v by_o his_o blood_n the_o gospel_n of_o the_o golden_a candlestick_n in_o the_o temple_n hebr._n 9.1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o 5._o 1668._o decemb._n 6._o 13_o &_o 20._o 1668._o then_o very_o the_o first_o covenant_n have_v also_o ordinance_n of_o divine_a service_n and_o a_o worldly_a sanctuary_n for_o there_o be_v a_o tabernacle_n make_v the_o first_o wherein_o be_v the_o candlestick_n and_o the_o table_n and_o the_o shewbread_n which_o be_v call_v the_o sanctuary_n and_o after_o the_o second_o veil_n the_o tabernacle_n which_o be_v call_v the_o holy_a of_o all_o which_o have_v the_o golden_a censer_n and_o the_o ark_n of_o the_o covenant_n overlay_v round_o about_o with_o gold_n wherein_o be_v the_o golden_a pot_n that_o have_v manna_n and_o aaron_n rod_n that_o bud_a and_o the_o table_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o over_o it_o the_o cherubim_n of_o glory_n shadow_v the_o mercy-seat_n of_o which_o we_o can_v now_o speak_v particular_o of_o the_o two_o court_n of_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o of_o the_o sacred_a furniture_n and_o utensil_n of_o the_o inner_a court_n we_o have_v speak_v viz._n the_o brazen_a altar_n of_o burnt-offering_a signify_v our_o reconciliation_n unto_o god_n by_o the_o death_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n the_o melt_a sea_n and_o laver_n signify_v our_o justification_n by_o the_o apply_v or_o wash_v in_o that_o blood_n and_o the_o two_o pillar_n jachin_n and_o boyas_n which_o signify_v our_o perseverance_n and_o preservation_n through_o the_o power_n and_o faithfulness_n and_o love_n of_o god_n till_o we_o be_v crown_v with_o the_o crown_n of_o glory_n we_o be_v now_o to_o survey_v the_o house_n itself_o all_o the_o furniture_n and_o vessel_n whereof_o be_v of_o gold_n and_o as_o to_o these_o i_o have_v pitch_v upon_o this_o text_n because_o it_o give_v we_o in_o a_o short_a compass_n of_o word_n the_o most_o full_a and_o complete_a enumeration_n of_o they_o that_o do_v occur_v to_o my_o remembrance_n any_o where_n in_o scripture_n we_o may_v resolve_v the_o word_n into_o these_o five_o doctrinal_a proposition_n 1._o that_o the_o old_a testament_n have_v ordinance_n of_o divine_a service_n and_o a_o worldly_a sanctuary_n there_o be_v a_o religion_n and_o a_o way_n of_o worship_n ordain_v by_o god_n in_o those_o time_n as_o well_o as_o now_o though_o that_o worship_n be_v not_o so_o spiritual_a and_o evangelical_a as_o be_v the_o worship_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n they_o have_v ordinance_n of_o worship_n and_o a_o seat_n of_o worship_n then_o but_o they_o be_v carnal_a ordinance_n and_o a_o worldly_a sanctuary_n comparative_o carnal_a but_o the_o ordinance_n now_o be_v spiritual_a and_o the_o seat_n of_o worship_n spiritual_a for_o than_o it_o be_v the_o material_a temple_n to_o which_o god_n be_v please_v to_o tie_v and_o to_o annex_v the_o public_a church-worship_n and_o ordinance_n of_o those_o time_n but_o now_o the_o seat_n of_o worship_n be_v the_o several_a church_n and_o congregation_n of_o his_o people_n however_o a_o worship_n ordinance_n of_o worship_n and_o a_o seat_n of_o worship_n they_o have_v obs_n 2._o there_o be_v two_o part_n of_o that_o old_a legal_a tabernacle_n one_o call_v the_o sanctuary_n and_o the_o other_o call_v the_o holy_a of_o holies_n so_o it_o be_v in_o the_o tabernacle_n and_o so_o in_o the_o temple_n after_o the_o second_o veil_n by_o the_o first_o veil_n the_o apostle_n intend_v the_o curtain_n and_o hang_n that_o be_v hang_v about_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o which_o you_o read_v exod._n 26._o in_o the_o temple_n there_o be_v but_o one_o veil_n for_o instead_o of_o these_o hang_n be_v the_o wall_n of_o the_o temple_n obs_n 3._o that_o both_o these_o part_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n have_v their_o sacred_a furniture_n of_o several_a holy_a vessel_n and_o utensil_n belong_v to_o they_o obs_n 4._o that_o the_o sacred_a furniture_n or_o vessel_n belong_v to_o the_o sanctuary_n be_v the_o golden_a candlestick_n and_o the_o table_n of_o shewbread_n obs_n 5._o that_o the_o furniture_n belong_v to_o the_o holy_a of_o holies_n be_v the_o golden_a vessel_n for_o the_o offering_n of_o incense_n and_o the_o ark_n with_o its_o appurtenance_n we_o be_v now_o to_o speak_v concern_v the_o furniture_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n of_o which_o the_o doctrine_n be_v this_o that_o the_o sacred_a furniture_n or_o
of_o the_o light_n that_o shine_v there_o and_o now_o in_o other_o respect_n by_o the_o shewbread_n the_o analogy_n to_o this_o appear_v in_o four_o thing_n 1._o in_o that_o as_o many_o grain_n make_v up_o one_o loaf_n so_o many_o believer_n make_v up_o one_o church_n 1_o cor._n 10.17_o for_o we_o be_v many_o be_v one_o bread_n and_o one_o body_n for_o we_o be_v all_o partaker_n of_o that_o one_o bread_n one_o person_n be_v not_o a_o church_n how_o few_o and_o how_o small_a a_o number_n the_o church_n may_v be_v reduce_v unto_o we_o need_v not_o here_o dispute_v in_o noah_n time_n they_o be_v reduce_v to_o 8_o person_n the_o first_o church_n and_o the_o beginning_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o after_o time_n be_v when_o god_n himself_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o our_o first_o parent_n in_o paradise_n and_o then_o adam_n and_o eve_n and_o their_o seed_n be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n there_o must_v be_v divers_a there_o must_v be_v more_o than_o one_o to_o make_v up_o a_o church_n 2._o the_o analogy_n appear_v in_o the_o number_n for_o as_o there_o be_v twelve_o tribe_n of_o israel_n so_o there_o be_v twelve_o loaf_n these_o twelve_o tribe_n be_v often_o and_o divers_a way_n represent_v as_o by_o the_o twelve_o stone_n in_o the_o breastplate_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n exod._n 28.21_o and_o by_o the_o twelve_o stone_n which_o joshua_n do_v pitch_n in_o jordan_n and_o the_o other_o twelve_o which_o he_o take_v out_o of_o jordan_n and_o pitch_v they_o in_o gilgal_n for_o a_o memorial_n of_o the_o 12_o tribe_n pass_v through_o josh_n 4.9_o 20._o so_o canaan_n be_v divide_v into_o twelve_o part_n that_o people_n come_v of_o twelve_o patriarch_n to_o which_o answer_v the_o twelve_o apostle_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n be_v build_v upon_o those_o twelve_o foundation_n rev._n 21.14_o so_o in_o these_o twelve_o loaf_n there_o be_v the_o like_a mystery_n they_o represent_v both_o the_o old_a and_o the_o new-testament-israel_n 3._o these_o loaf_n be_v to_o stand_v before_o the_o lord_n all_o the_o week_n upon_o the_o golden_a table_n this_o be_v the_o chief_a action_n about_o they_o and_o which_o hold_v forth_o the_o principal_a scope_n of_o the_o institution_n therefore_o call_v panis_n facierum_fw-la or_o propositionis_fw-la matth._n 12.4_o which_o our_o translator_n have_v fit_o render_v shewbread_n the_o apostle_n phrase_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o meaning_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d leu._n 24.6_o thou_o shall_v set_v they_o upon_o the_o pure_a table_n before_o the_o lord_n this_o signify_v his_o continual_a eye_n and_o care_n over_o his_o people_n they_o be_v never_o out_o of_o his_o sight_n never_o out_o of_o mind_n his_o eye_n and_o his_o thought_n be_v continual_o upon_o they_o from_o one_o end_n of_o the_o week_n to_o another_o isai_n 49.16_o behold_v i_o have_v grave_v thou_o upon_o the_o palm_n of_o my_o hand_n and_o thy_o wall_n be_v continual_o before_o i_o though_o he_o seem_v to_o forsake_v and_o forget_v they_o yet_o he_o remember_v they_o still_o jer._n 31.20_o for_o since_o i_o speak_v against_o he_o i_o do_v earnest_o remember_v he_o still_o therefore_o my_o bowel_n be_v trouble_v for_o he_o 4._o there_o be_v frankincense_n set_v upon_o the_o loaf_n and_o offer_v up_o for_o a_o memorial_n before_o the_o lord_n leu._n 24_o 7._o this_o speak_v the_o lord_n remembrance_n of_o they_o with_o acceptance_n for_o the_o incense_n make_v a_o sweet_a smell_n a_o savour_n of_o rest_n a_o man_n may_v remember_v a_o thing_n with_o hatred_n and_o abhorrence_n but_o the_o lord_n remembrance_n of_o his_o people_n be_v with_o dear_a affection_n with_o everlasting_a love_a kindness_n he_o have_v a_o precious_a remembrance_n of_o they_o these_o twelve_o loaf_n the_o twelve_o tribe_n of_o israel_n be_v by_o faith_n in_o christ_n a_o sweet_a odour_n to_o he_o as_o 2_o cor._n 2.15_o and_o as_o the_o lord_n eye_n be_v over_o upon_o they_o so_o shall_v they_o be_v to_o the_o lord_n and_o that_o continual_o see_v psal_n 123.1_o 2._o as_o the_o lord_n say_v of_o the_o angel_n matth._n 18.10_o they_o do_v always_o behold_v the_o face_n of_o my_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n so_o the_o saint_n even_o here_o below_o they_o shall_v set_v the_o lord_n always_o before_o they_o and_o this_o be_v happiness_n and_o heaven_n begin_v 1_o king_n 10.8_o happy_a be_v thy_o man_n happy_a be_v thy_o servant_n which_o stand_v continual_o before_o thou_o and_o that_o hear_v thy_o wisdom_n the_o lord_n eye_n upon_o they_o in_o a_o way_n of_o constant_a care_n and_o love_n and_o their_o eye_n upon_o he_o in_o a_o way_n of_o continual_a dependence_n this_o be_v a_o bless_a condition_n thus_o you_o see_v the_o first_o mystery_n of_o the_o shewbread_n how_o it_o be_v a_o type_n of_o the_o church_n 2._o a_o second_o mystery_n of_o the_o shewbread_n be_v the_o food_n and_o spiritual_a provision_n that_o be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n that_o be_v christ_n in_o the_o word_n and_o ordinance_n the_o word_n be_v compare_v to_o bread_n amos_n 6.11_o false_a doctrine_n to_o leaven_a or_o sour_v bread_n matth._n 16.12_o it_o have_v the_o property_n of_o bread_n psal_n 104.15_o bread_n which_o strengthen_v man_n heart_n ver_fw-la 16._o the_o staff_n of_o bread_n this_o bread_n be_v christ_n he_o be_v the_o bread_n of_o life_n as_o joh._n 6.48_o christ_n be_v typify_v also_o by_o the_o manna_n and_o the_o golden_a pot_n thereof_o reserve_v in_o the_o holy_a of_o holies_n but_o some_o distinguish_v the_o mystery_n of_o these_o two_o type_n thus_o that_o the_o manna_n in_o the_o oracle_n be_v the_o type_n of_o christ_n personal_a this_o bread_n upon_o the_o table_n in_o the_o sanctuary_n be_v a_o type_n of_o christ_n doctrinal_a or_o christ_n in_o the_o word_n open_v and_o apply_v to_o hungry_a soul_n the_o analogy_n will_v appear_v further_o in_o these_o particular_n 1._o they_o be_v to_o set_v the_o shewbread_n upon_o the_o golden_a table_n in_o the_o sanctuary_n every_o sabbath_n leu._n 24.8_o every_o sabbath_n shall_v he_o set_v it_o in_o order_n before_o the_o lord_n continual_o that_o be_v in_o the_o sanctuary_n which_o be_v a_o type_n of_o the_o church_n this_o then_o speak_v thus_o much_o that_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v to_o set_v christ_n the_o bread_n of_o life_n as_o it_o be_v upon_o the_o table_n every_o lord_n day_n there_o be_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v a_o weekly_a provision_n of_o this_o food_n in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n every_o sabbath_n as_o every_o week_n there_o be_v new_a bread_n so_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v afresh_o hold_v forth_o 2._o the_o priest_n be_v to_o feed_v upon_o this_o all_o the_o week_n after_o leu._n 24.9_o and_o it_o shall_v be_v aaron_n and_o his_o son_n and_o they_o shall_v eat_v it_o in_o the_o holy_a place_n so_o in_o the_o church_n they_o that_o hear_v the_o word_n and_o have_v christ_n preach_v and_o hold_v forth_o therein_o shall_v live_v all_o the_o week_n long_o upon_o the_o provision_n that_o be_v make_v upon_o the_o sabbath_n then_o the_o bread_n be_v set_v before_o lord_n but_o in_o the_o week_n time_n it_o be_v eat_v it_o be_v a_o great_a neglect_n when_o the_o bread_n be_v not_o eat_v when_o the_o word_n be_v not_o digest_v meditate_a feed_v upon_o but_o people_n think_v it_o be_v enough_o to_o come_v to_o some_o good_a meeting_n and_o there_o to_o hear_v the_o word_n but_o do_v you_o eat_v it_o and_o feed_v upon_o it_o all_o the_o week_n do_v you_o meditate_v and_o ruminate_v upon_o it_o 3._o none_o but_o the_o priest_n be_v to_o eat_v the_o shewbread_n it_o shall_v be_v aaron_n and_o his_o son_n and_o they_o shall_v eat_v it_o leu._n 24.9_o though_o in_o a_o extraordinary_a case_n other_o might_n as_o when_o david_n and_o his_o man_n do_v to_o save_v their_o life_n in_o hunger_n 1_o sam._n 21.6_o which_o christ_n allow_v and_o justify_v matth._n 12.3_o 4._o for_o ceremonial_a rule_n must_v give_v place_n to_o moral_a god_n will_v have_v mercy_n rather_o than_o sacrifice_n but_o the_o ordinary_a rule_n be_v none_o but_o priest_n be_v to_o eat_v the_o shewbread_n and_o who_o be_v spiritual_a priest_n under_o the_o gospel_n all_o believer_n they_o be_v a_o royal_a priesthood_n 1_o pet._n 2.9_o this_o then_o teach_v we_o that_o none_o but_o believer_n have_v a_o right_n unto_o christ_n and_o to_o the_o promise_n and_o do_v or_o can_v feed_v upon_o he_o unbeliever_n do_v but_o intrude_v and_o usurp_v that_o which_o be_v none_o of_o they_o when_o they_o challenge_v a_o part_n in_o he_o they_o be_v but_o dog_n that_o snatch_v at_o child_n bread_n 4._o it_o be_v the_o priest_n that_o set_v this_o bread_n in_o the_o sanctuary_n and_o they_o eat_v it_o we_o may_v
conversation_n of_o their_o life_n that_o be_v the_o true_a gospel-musick_n 3._o these_o trumpet_n and_o other_o musical_a instrument_n be_v use_v in_o time_n of_o war_n and_o appoint_v by_o god_n so_o to_o be_v numb_a 10.9_o the_o trumpet_n be_v to_o sound_v to_o prepare_v and_o call_v they_o forth_o to_o the_o war_n to_o encourage_v their_o faith_n in_o it_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v remember_v before_o the_o lord_n and_o have_v success_n over_o their_o enemy_n sometime_o visible_a success_n attend_v this_o ordinance_n as_o in_o jehosaphats_n time_n 2_o chron._n 20.21_o 22._o they_o sound_v the_o trumpet_n praise_v the_o beauty_n of_o holiness_n and_o when_o they_o begin_v to_o sing_v praise_n the_o lord_n set_v ambushment_n against_o ammon_n and_o moab_n and_o mount_v seir_n and_o then_o they_o be_v smite_v 4._o it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o the_o priest_n to_o sound_v these_o trumpet_n as_o in_o numb_a 10.8_o the_o son_n of_o aaron_n the_o priest_n must_v do_v it_o to_o show_v that_o the_o public_a dispensation_n of_o the_o word_n and_o gospel_n belong_v to_o and_o be_v entrust_v chief_o with_o the_o son_n of_o aaron_n the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n they_o must_v sound_v the_o silver_n trumpet_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o the_o ear_n of_o the_o world_n 5._o the_o matter_n they_o be_v make_v of_o some_o be_v of_o silver_n and_o some_o of_o horn_n numb_a 10.1_o and_o in_o 1_o chron._n 15.28_o the_o cornet_n that_o be_v a_o instrument_n of_o horn_n so_o in_o that_o 98._o psal_n 6._o with_o trumpet_n and_o sound_v of_o cornet_n make_v a_o joyful_a noise_n before_o the_o lord_n the_o king_n and_o ram_n horn_n do_v beat_v down_o the_o wall_n of_o jericho_n josh_n 6._o if_o god_n institute_v the_o ram_n horn_n they_o shall_v be_v as_o powerful_a as_o the_o silver_n trumpet_n to_o teach_v we_o that_o the_o mean_a gift_n of_o any_o godly_a minister_n if_o sincere_a be_v accept_v and_o may_v be_v bless_v of_o god_n for_o the_o good_a of_o soul_n for_o the_o cast_n down_o of_o strong_a hold_n and_o for_o success_n and_o victory_n against_o our_o spiritual_a enemy_n ram_n horn_n may_v do_v it_o as_o well_o as_o silver_n trumpet_n 6._o their_o number_n at_o first_o be_v but_o two_o numb_a 10.2_o that_o be_v for_o the_o two_o son_n of_o aaron_n eleazar_n and_o ithamar_n the_o priest_n numb_a 3.4_o but_o in_o process_n of_o time_n david_n add_v many_o other_o musical_a instrument_n but_o he_o do_v it_o by_o authority_n and_o direction_n from_o god_n for_o so_o be_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n by_o his_o prophet_n 2_o chron_n 29.25_o 1_o chron._n 16.42_o 2_o chron._n 7.6_o and_o in_o solomon_n time_n we_o read_v of_o one_o hundred_o and_o twenty_o priest_n that_o do_v sound_a with_o trumpet_n at_o the_o dedication_n of_o the_o temple_n 2_o chron._n 5.12_o also_o the_o levite_n which_o be_v the_o singer_n be_v array_v in_o white_a linen_n have_v cymbal_n and_o psaltery_n and_o harp_n and_o with_o they_o one_o hundred_o and_o twenty_o priest_n sound_v with_o trumpet_n and_o those_o instrument_n of_o music_n which_o david_n make_v they_o be_v call_v the_o instrument_n of_o music_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o he_o make_v they_o according_a to_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o seer_n all_o which_o show_v the_o enlargement_n of_o the_o church_n and_o its_o joy_n and_o the_o improvement_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n in_o gospel_n time_n here_o be_v one_o hundred_o and_o twenty_o trumpet_n now_o whereas_o there_o be_v but_o two_o at_o first_o and_o as_o the_o number_n of_o priest_n and_o trumpet_n and_o musical_a instrument_n be_v much_o increase_v in_o solomon_n time_n above_o what_o it_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o moses_n so_o shall_v the_o church_n and_o their_o spiritual_a joy_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o gospel_n under_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o true_a solomon_n they_o be_v increase_v now_o and_o shall_v be_v more_o and_o more_o in_o the_o late_a day_n isai_n 60_o and_o 61_o chap._n 7._o and_o last_o but_o why_o be_v this_o feast_n of_o music_n and_o trumpet_n upon_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o seven_o month_n why_o be_v that_o the_o appoint_a season_n for_o it_o many_o account_n there_o be_v give_v by_o interpreter_n which_o do_v all_o centre_n in_o this_o because_o of_o the_o many_o great_a occurrence_n and_o dispensation_n of_o god_n in_o this_o month_n some_o whereof_o be_v pass_v and_o be_v now_o to_o be_v remember_v and_o some_o future_a which_o be_v now_o to_o be_v proclaim_v and_o prepare_v for_o the_o world_n be_v create_v in_o this_o month_n which_o be_v at_o first_o the_o first_o month_n in_o the_o year_n until_o the_o account_n be_v change_v upon_o occasion_n and_o in_o memorial_n of_o their_o deliverance_n out_o of_o egypt_n this_o month_n shall_v be_v to_o you_o the_o begin_n of_o month_n it_o shall_v be_v the_o first_o month_n of_o the_o year_n to_o you_o exod._n 12.2_o intimate_v that_o it_o be_v not_o so_o before_o there_o be_v approach_v the_o feast_n of_o atonement_n upon_o the_o ten_o day_n of_o this_o month_n which_o be_v think_v to_o relate_v to_o the_o golden_a calf_n and_o the_o lord_n pardon_v that_o idolatry_n also_o the_o feast_n of_o tabernacle_n on_o the_o fifteen_o day_n the_o temple_n of_o solomon_n be_v dedicate_v in_o this_o month_n and_o now_o also_o be_v the_o birth_n of_o christ_n at_o this_o time_n god_n assume_v and_o appear_v in_o our_o nature_n pitch_v his_o tabernacle_n or_o tent_n in_o our_o flesh_n all_o which_o thing_n put_v together_o give_v some_o account_n of_o the_o season_n of_o this_o feast_n and_o of_o the_o solemnity_n of_o the_o blow_n of_o trumpet_n on_o the_o first_o day_n of_o this_o seven_o month_n and_o so_o much_o for_o the_o four_o of_o these_o annual_a festival_n namely_o the_o feast_n of_o trumpet_n now_o take_v this_o inference_n namely_o the_o unwarrantableness_n of_o musical_a instrument_n in_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n now_o under_o the_o gospel_n you_o see_v of_o old_a there_o be_v a_o institution_n for_o it_o there_o be_v not_o so_o now_o 4._o 22_o ae_z q._n 91._o 2._o 4._o it_o be_v a_o very_a late_a invention_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n aquinas_n speak_v against_o they_o as_o not_o use_v in_o the_o church_n in_o his_o time_n say_v they_o be_v legal_a and_o prefigure_v something_o of_o christ_n therefore_o be_v not_o continue_v under_o the_o gospel_n consider_v these_o three_o thing_n 1._o they_o be_v a_o type_n that_o be_v evident_a and_o hereby_o be_v typify_v the_o music_n and_o melody_n of_o the_o joy_n and_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o god_n people_n and_o many_o other_o gospel_n lesson_n and_o instruction_n be_v hold_v forth_o by_o this_o ancient_a legal_a ordinance_n and_o type_n you_o know_v be_v cease_v and_o shadow_n be_v vanish_v now_o that_o the_o substance_n be_v come_v look_v therefore_o after_o the_o inward_a music_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n and_o the_o witness_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n there_o this_o be_v the_o gospel-musick_n 2._o if_o we_o can_v not_o find_v out_o the_o mystery_n and_o the_o direct_a signification_n of_o they_o which_o have_v be_v clear_v to_o you_o yet_o however_o these_o thing_n be_v a_o legal_a burden_n and_o childish_a rudiment_n therefore_o not_o become_v the_o mature_a estate_n of_o believer_n under_o the_o new_a testament_n though_o they_o may_v be_v a_o fit_a solace_n for_o the_o childish_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n under_o the_o law_n 3._o this_o cathedral_n music_n introduce_v into_o the_o church_n of_o god_n a_o rabble_n of_o church-officer_n which_o the_o lord_n never_o appoint_v and_o which_o never_o come_v into_o his_o heart_n the_o chorister_n and_o sing_v man_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o be_v a_o very_a great_a evil_n it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o power_n of_o man_n but_o it_o be_v the_o great_a prerogative_n of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o appoint_v officer_n in_o his_o church_n who_o have_v appoint_v none_o but_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n elder_n and_o deacon_n 5._o and_o last_o the_o feast_n of_o expiation_n or_o atonement_n and_o this_o be_v on_o the_o ten_o day_n of_o this_o seven_o month_n the_o rule_n and_o rite_n whereof_o be_v set_v down_o at_o large_a in_o levit._n 16._o which_o because_o they_o be_v many_o and_o very_o significant_a and_o full_a of_o gospel-mystery_n therefore_o i_o purpose_v the_o lord_n assist_v to_o speak_v to_o it_o more_o at_o large_a in_o a_o distinct_a discourse_n by_o itself_o have_v here_o only_o mention_v it_o in_o its_o place_n to_o which_o it_o do_v belong_v quest_n be_v these_o then_o all_o their_o yearly_a feast_n have_v they_o no_o more_o but_o these_o five_o under_o the_o law_n viz._n the_o passover_n the_o feast_n of_o pentecost_n the_o feast_n of_o tabernales_fw-la the_o feast_n of_o trumpet_n and_o
the_o next_o particular_a viz._n 3._o the_o jubilee_n there_o be_v also_o a_o three_o sabbath_n beside_o the_o weekly_a sabbath_n and_o the_o seven_o year_n sabbath_n they_o have_v likewise_o a_o sabbath_n of_o seven_o time_n seven_o that_o be_v the_o jubilee_n this_o be_v their_o great_a sabbatical_a year_n for_o they_o be_v to_o reckon_v seven_o time_n seven_o year_n and_o then_o to_o observe_v a_o sabbatical_a year_n leu._n 25.9_o this_o also_o be_v a_o type_n of_o christ_n as_o appear_v in_o three_o thing_n that_o be_v do_v in_o this_o year_n of_o jubilee_n 1._o there_o be_v redemption_n and_o release_n every_o one_o set_v at_o liberty_n every_o bondage_n release_v and_o every_o yoke_n break_v here_o be_v a_o shadow_n of_o the_o spiritual_a and_o true_a redemption_n by_o jesus_n christ_n who_o of_o spiritual_a slave_n by_o nature_n make_v we_o the_o lord_n freeman_n by_o grace_n christ_n have_v proclaim_v redemption_n to_o sinner_n and_o deliverance_n to_o poor_a captive_a soul_n isai_n 61.1_o 2._o there_o be_v the_o trumpet_n of_o the_o jubilee_n to_o proclaim_v it_o the_o gospel_n be_v this_o great_a trumpet_n the_o proclaim_n of_o the_o jubilee_n be_v allude_v to_o isai_n 61.1_o 2_o isai_n 27._o ult_n in_o that_o day_n the_o great_a trumpet_n shall_v be_v blow_v the_o great_a trumpet_n be_v the_o gospel_n calv._n in_o loc_n 3._o some_o have_v observe_v further_o that_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n be_v at_o the_o jubilee_n that_o christ_n come_v at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o jubilee_n i_o know_v there_o be_v some_o difference_n among_o chronologer_n about_o it_o but_o sure_o it_o be_v it_o fall_v thereabouts_o some_o place_v the_o jubilee_n upon_o the_o preach_n of_o john_n baptist_n who_o do_v proclaim_v the_o lord_n come_v but_o other_o place_v it_o as_o seem_v more_o exact_o upon_o the_o very_a year_n of_o christ_n death_n by_o which_o we_o be_v redeem_v and_o set_v free_a indeed_o they_o begin_v the_o account_n of_o their_o jubiles_fw-la from_fw-la about_o anno_fw-la mundi_fw-la 2560._o for_o they_o come_v out_o of_o egypt_n about_o the_o year_n 2513._o they_o be_v forty_o year_n in_o the_o wilderness_n six_o or_o seven_o in_o conquer_a and_o divide_v the_o land_n of_o canaan_n then_o begin_v their_o first_o sabbatical_a year_n from_o thence_o to_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v eight_o and_o twenty_o jubiles_fw-la his_o death_n be_v about_o the_o year_n of_o the_o world_n 3960._o so_o you_o see_v something_o of_o the_o gospel-mystery_n of_o these_o sabbath_n of_o the_o jew_n the_o three_o sort_n of_o sabbath_n every_o week_n every_o seven_o year_n and_o every_o fifty_o year_n and_o thus_o also_o you_o see_v how_o these_o legal_a holy_a time_n and_o season_n be_v all_o shadow_n of_o good_a thing_n to_o come_v take_v some_o general_n use_v from_o the_o whole_a use_v 1_o see_v and_o remember_v the_o unlawfulness_n and_o unwarrantableness_n of_o the_o observation_n of_o these_o jewish_a time_n and_o season_n under_o the_o gospel_n for_o they_o be_v typical_a amos_n 5.21_o the_o papist_n observe_v the_o passover_n which_o they_o call_v easter_n pentecost_n common_o call_v whitsuntide_n and_o instead_o of_o the_o feast_n of_o tabernacle_n they_o keep_v the_o five_o and_o twenty_o of_o december_n for_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n birth_n all_o which_o we_o retain_v and_o they_o have_v also_o add_v a_o jubilee_n which_o because_o it_o be_v a_o profitable_a time_n to_o the_o pope_n purse_n he_o have_v order_v it_o to_o be_v keep_v every_o five_o and_o twenty_o year_n instead_o of_o fifty_o these_o be_v error_n of_o dangerous_a consequence_n for_o they_o do_v implicit_o deny_v that_o the_o substance_n be_v come_v if_o these_o thing_n be_v shadow_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v the_o retain_v of_o they_o now_o be_v a_o error_n of_o dangerous_a consequence_n for_o to_o retain_v any_o of_o these_o dark_a and_o legal_a shadow_n be_v a_o implicit_a denial_n that_o christ_n the_o substance_n be_v come_v these_o thing_n be_v more_o full_o speak_v to_o the_o last_o time_n use_v 2._o see_v and_o observe_v the_o burthensomness_n of_o that_o old_a legal_a dispensation_n as_o also_o our_o christian_a liberty_n now_o under_o the_o gospel_n the_o lord_n require_v no_o day_n of_o we_o but_o the_o lord_n day_n and_o occasional_a day_n of_o humiliation_n or_o of_o thanksgiving_n upon_o emergency_n of_o providence_n call_v thereunto_o stand_v fast_o therefore_o in_o the_o liberty_n wherewith_o christ_n have_v make_v you_o free_a gal._n 5.1_o and_o be_v not_o again_o entangle_v in_o the_o yoke_n of_o bondage_n use_v 3_o and_o last_o see_v what_o clear_a and_o plentiful_a evidence_n the_o jew_n have_v concern_v jesus_n christ_n that_o he_o be_v the_o true_a messiah_n and_o how_o true_a this_o of_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o text_n be_v that_o they_o be_v a_o shadow_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v put_v all_o these_o thing_n together_o and_o you_o will_v see_v these_o jewish_a day_n make_v up_o a_o rude_a draught_n or_o dark_a shadow_n of_o the_o good_a thing_n that_o be_v to_o come_v under_o the_o gospel_n in_o sundry_a particular_n relate_v to_o the_o body_n which_o be_v of_o christ_n as_o for_o instance_n they_o lead_v to_o the_o time_n of_o his_o conception_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n on_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o month_n to_o the_o time_n of_o his_o birth_n and_o nativity_n be_v bear_v on_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o feast_n of_o tabernacle_n and_o circumcise_v the_o eight_o he_o suffer_v at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o passover_n he_o lay_v and_o rest_v in_o the_o grave_a on_o the_o jewish_a sabbath_n he_o pour_v forth_o his_o spirit_n at_o their_o feast_n of_o pentecost_n the_o jew_n may_v have_v find_v the_o body_n by_o these_o shadow_n have_v they_o be_v attentive_a to_o mind_v the_o thing_n belong_v to_o their_o peace_n they_o may_v have_v think_v when_o they_o see_v such_o a_o conjunction_n sure_o this_o be_v he_o that_o come_v speedy_o to_o redeem_v israel_n and_o you_o though_o you_o have_v a_o conviction_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n yet_o get_v a_o further_a and_o full_a conviction_n of_o it_o from_o this_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v so_o plain_o shadow_v forth_o to_o we_o by_o all_o these_o ancient_a dispensation_n the_o gospel_n of_o the_o great_a day_n of_o atonement_n levit._fw-la 16._o the_o whole_a chapter_n 1668._o jan._n 24_o &_o 28._o 1668._o this_o chapter_n be_v whole_o take_v up_o in_o declare_v the_o feast_n of_o expiation_n or_o atonement_n upon_o the_o ten_o day_n of_o the_o seven_o month_n it_o be_v more_o proper_o and_o indeed_o a_o fast_a but_o yet_o common_o call_v a_o feast_n as_o take_v the_o word_n in_o a_o more_o lax_n acceptation_n for_o any_o set_v or_o solemn_a time_n and_o though_o it_o be_v indeed_o a_o day_n of_o afflict_v their_o soul_n yet_o there_o be_v joy_n in_o the_o end_n of_o it_o for_o their_o peace_n be_v make_v with_o god_n and_o the_o jubilee_n proclaim_v this_o day_n it_o be_v with_o all_o the_o service_n and_o administration_n of_o it_o the_o most_o full_a and_o complete_a shadow_n of_o the_o great_a work_n of_o our_o redemption_n that_o we_o meet_v with_o under_o the_o law_n the_o high_a priest_n represent_v in_o all_o he_o do_v that_o which_o jesus_n christ_n the_o true_a high_a priest_n be_v to_o do_v indeed_o in_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o explain_v it_o a_o little_a to_o you_o as_o god_n shall_v enable_v i_o follow_v the_o method_n of_o this_o chapter_n and_o so_o you_o will_v be_v able_a to_o read_v it_o more_o understand_o and_o with_o edification_n wherein_o the_o first_o thing_n that_o do_v occur_v be_v the_o occasion_n of_o the_o institution_n ver_fw-la 1._o viz._n the_o death_n of_o the_o two_o son_n of_o aaron_n when_o they_o offer_v before_o the_o lord_n and_o die_v which_o story_n be_v record_v leu._n 10.1_o 2._o some_o add_v that_o man_n fall_v upon_o this_o day_n but_o this_o be_v not_o likely_a it_o seem_v more_o probable_a from_o all_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o story_n that_o he_o fall_v upon_o the_o seven_o day_n for_o that_o he_o be_v not_o fall_v upon_o the_o six_o day_n appear_v by_o this_o that_o in_o the_o close_a of_o the_o six_o day_n god_n approve_v all_o his_o creature_n that_o they_o be_v good_a gen._n 1._o ult_n therefore_o sin_n have_v not_o yet_o spoil_v they_o and_o if_o he_o have_v stand_v out_o the_o whole_a sabbath_n day_n it_o be_v probable_a he_o have_v be_v confirm_v by_o eat_v of_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n for_o it_o be_v probable_a that_o upon_o the_o sabbath_n he_o shall_v have_v enjoy_v all_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o consequent_o that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o that_o estate_n shall_v have_v be_v the_o conclude_a ordinance_n as_o under_o the_o new_a testament_n they_o be_v wont_a to_o
make_v atonement_n for_o he_o concern_v his_o sin_n and_o it_o shall_v be_v forgive_v he_o levit._fw-la 5.6_o he_o shall_v bring_v his_o trespass-offering_a unto_o the_o lord_n for_o the_o sin_n which_o he_o have_v sin_v etc._n etc._n and_o the_o priest_n shall_v make_v a_o atonement_n for_o he_o concern_v his_o sin_n and_o ver_fw-la 10._o he_o shall_v offer_v a_o burnt-offering_a according_a to_o the_o manner_n and_o the_o priest_n shall_v make_v a_o atonement_n for_o he_o for_o his_o sin_n which_o he_o have_v sin_v and_o it_o shall_v be_v forgive_v he_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o we_o find_v the_o saint_n under_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v so_o full_a of_o confidence_n and_o holy_a boldness_n in_o seek_v and_o plead_v with_o god_n for_o pardon_n and_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o psalm_n and_o other_o scripture-prayer_n what_o strong_a and_o eminent_a act_n of_o faith_n they_o have_v this_o way_n which_o to_o expect_v have_v be_v a_o presumptuous_a thing_n if_o they_o have_v have_v no_o promise_n to_o ground_v their_o faith_n upon_o but_o they_o have_v very_o plentiful_a assurance_n and_o promise_n of_o it_o in_o those_o time_n and_o that_o be_v a_o second_o gospel-blessing_n reveal_v and_o assure_v to_o they_o as_o well_o as_o to_o we_o the_o remission_n of_o all_o their_o sin_n iii_o everlasting_a life_n and_o salvation_n in_o heaven_n this_o be_v not_o a_o truth_n reveal_v only_o by_o the_o gospel_n but_o be_v well_o know_v clear_o reveal_v and_o firm_o believe_v by_o the_o saint_n of_o old_a they_o have_v assurance_n of_o this_o that_o they_o shall_v live_v with_o god_n for_o ever_o in_o glory_n when_o i_o awake_v i_o shall_v be_v satisfy_v with_o thy_o likeness_n psal_n 17.15_o thou_o will_v guide_v i_o with_o thy_o counsel_n and_o afterward_o receive_v i_o to_o glory_n psal_n 73.24_o in_o thy_o presence_n be_v fullness_n of_o joy_n and_o at_o thy_o right_a hand_n there_o be_v pleasure_n for_o evermore_o psalm_n 16.11_o they_o look_v for_o another_o country_n whereof_o canaan_n be_v but_o a_o type_n and_o shadow_n as_o the_o apostle_n show_v in_o this_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n cap._n 11.16_o they_o know_v there_o be_v a_o eternal_a state_n of_o happiness_n for_o the_o saint_n as_o well_o as_o a_o eternal_a state_n of_o misery_n for_o the_o wicked_a they_o do_v believe_v this_o in_o those_o day_n thus_o we_o see_v they_o have_v the_o same_o gospel-blessing_n preach_v unto_o they_o of_o old_a that_o we_o have_v at_o this_o day_n and_o these_o blessing_n and_o good_a thing_n be_v demonstration_n that_o it_o be_v gospel_n because_o these_o blessing_n be_v not_o promise_v in_o the_o law_n it_o know_v no_o remission_n or_o regeneration_n of_o a_o lose_a soul_n no_o salvation_n of_o a_o sinner_n this_o be_v the_o first_o branch_n of_o the_o argument_n but_o for_o a_o more_o clear_a and_o full_a eviction_n of_o it_o the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o argument_n be_v this_o 2._o because_o they_o have_v these_o blessing_n upon_o the_o same_o account_n and_o in_o the_o same_o way_n as_o we_o have_v they_o now_o i_o speak_v as_o to_o the_o principal_a and_o internal_a cause_n of_o they_o for_o in_o the_o outward_a way_n and_o manner_n of_o dispensation_n there_o be_v a_o difference_n but_o not_o in_o this_o for_o upon_o what_o account_n have_v we_o these_o precious_a benefit_n and_o good_a thing_n of_o the_o gospel_n you_o will_v find_v if_o you_o consider_v it_o aright_o that_o it_o be_v then_o as_o now_o we_o receive_v all_o from_o the_o mere_a mercy_n and_o free_a grace_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n and_o this_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o their_o supply_n also_o if_o they_o have_v receive_v pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o grace_n and_o glory_n on_o the_o account_n of_o their_o own_o merit_n and_o work_n of_o righteousness_n than_o it_o have_v not_o be_v gospel_n but_o they_o have_v it_o in_o the_o same_o way_n we_o have_v it_o as_o to_o the_o internal_a cause_n from_o whence_o all_o blessing_n come_v even_o from_o the_o mercy_n and_o free_a grace_n of_o god_n a_o very_a glorious_a attribute_n of_o god_n and_o most_o abundant_o yea_o continual_o hold_v forth_o throughout_o the_o old_a testament_n that_o he_o be_v the_o lord_n the_o lord_n god_n gracious_a and_o merciful_a how_o many_o prayer_n and_o psalm_n and_o song_n of_o praise_n unto_o he_o for_o that_o his_o mercy_n endure_v for_o ever_o how_o sweet_o how_o pathetical_o do_v the_o prophet_n teach_v and_o preach_v it_o to_o they_o this_o all_o the_o saint_n of_o old_a have_v recourse_n unto_o david_n psal_n 51.1_o when_o seek_v pardon_n have_v mercy_n say_v he_o upon_o i_o o_o god_n according_a to_o thy_o love_a kindness_n according_a to_o the_o multitude_n of_o thy_o mercy_n blot_v out_o my_o transgression_n and_o daniel_n 9.8_o 9_o when_o he_o beseech_v the_o lord_n on_o behalf_n of_o the_o jew_n o_o lord_n to_o we_o belong_v confusion_n of_o face_n etc._n etc._n because_o we_o have_v sin_v against_o thou_o to_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n belong_v mercy_n and_o forgiveness_n though_o we_o have_v rebel_v against_o he_o we_o do_v not_o present_v our_o supplication_n before_o thou_o for_o our_o righteousness_n but_o for_o thy_o great_a mercy_n ver_fw-la 18._o and_o for_o thy_o own_o sake_n ver_fw-la 19_o this_o than_o be_v that_o they_o have_v recourse_n unto_o as_o the_o fountain_n of_o all_o the_o good_a whereof_o they_o stand_v in_o need_n and_o of_o all_o their_o supply_n even_o the_o infinite_a mercy_n of_o god_n moreover_o it_o be_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n his_o mercy_n through_o the_o mediation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o only_o through_o he_o be_v mercy_n communicate_v to_o sinner_n so_o alone_o be_v mercy_n communicate_v therefore_o daniel_n there_o pray_v dan._n 9.17_o look_v upon_o thy_o sanctuary_n that_o be_v desolate_a for_o the_o lord_n sake_n that_o be_v for_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n sake_n hence_o they_o do_v so_o often_o make_v mention_n of_o abraham_n isaac_n and_o jacob_n as_o be_v the_o type_n of_o christ_n in_o their_o prayer_n and_o especial_o of_o david_n for_o thy_o servant_n david_n sake_n psal_n 89._o not_o as_o rest_v in_o david_n literal_o but_o look_v beyond_o the_o shadow_n unto_o he_o that_o be_v the_o truth_n thereof_o for_o by_o david_n they_o mean_v christ_n christ_n be_v oft_o call_v by_o that_o name_n because_o david_n be_v so_o eminent_a a_o type_n of_o he_o and_o what_o be_v it_o in_o christ_n that_o procure_v all_o these_o blessing_n in_o the_o gospel_n for_o we_o it_o be_v his_o blood_n and_o satisfaction_n that_o atone_v justice_n his_o prayer_n and_o intercession_n that_o prevail_v with_o mercy_n for_o we_o and_o so_o it_o be_v of_o old_a both_o these_o have_v a_o influence_n into_o their_o mercy_n as_o well_o as_o we_o 1._o the_o death_n and_o blood_n and_o satisfaction_n of_o jesus_n christ_n this_o all_o their_o sacrifice_n point_v at_o for_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o blood_n of_o bull_n and_o goat_n shall_v take_v away_o sin_n heb._n 10.4_o yet_o it_o sanctify_a to_o the_o purify_n of_o the_o flesh_n how_o much_o more_o shall_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n etc._n etc._n heb._n 9.13_o 14._o see_v how_o clear_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n preach_v this_o isai_n 53._o throughout_o the_o chapter_n but_o look_v especial_o to_o ver_fw-la 10._o when_o thou_o shall_v make_v his_o soul_n a_o offering_n for_o sin_n he_o shall_v see_v his_o seed_n he_o shall_v prolong_v his_o day_n and_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v prosper_v in_o his_o hand_n this_o be_v the_o mystery_n of_o all_o the_o sacrifice_n wherein_o blood_n be_v shed_v they_o be_v type_n and_o shadow_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n 2._o his_o prayer_n and_o intercession_n for_o look_v as_o mercy_n be_v purchase_v by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o death_n so_o it_o be_v communicate_v and_o apply_v through_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o intercession_n justice_n be_v satisfy_v by_o his_o death_n and_o mercy_n entreat_v in_o his_o intercession_n and_o so_o both_o those_o great_a attribute_n be_v acknowledge_v and_o glorify_v in_o zach._n 1.12_o then_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o be_v jesus_n christ_n the_o angel_n of_o the_o covenant_n that_o appear_v he_o answer_v and_o say_v how_o long_o will_v thou_o not_o have_v mercy_n on_o jerusalem_n and_o on_o the_o city_n of_o judah_n against_o which_o thou_o have_v have_v indignation_n these_o threescore_o and_o ten_o year_n and_o the_o lord_n answer_v the_o angel_n that_o talk_v with_o i_o with_o good_a word_n and_o with_o comfortable_a word_n ver_fw-la 13._o here_o the_o prevail_a power_n of_o his_o intercession_n be_v set_v forth_o and_o as_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n be_v shadow_v by_o the_o sacrifice_n so_o the_o efficacy_n of_o his_o intercession_n be_v shadow_v forth_o by_o
the_o incense_n and_o sweet_a odour_n offer_v up_o to_o god_n under_o the_o law_n these_o relate_v to_o the_o prayer_n of_o jesus_n christ_n he_o offer_v incense_n with_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n revel_v 8.3_o 4._o and_o another_o angel_n come_v and_o stand_v at_o the_o altar_n have_v a_o golden_a censer_n and_o there_o be_v give_v unto_o he_o much_o incense_n that_o he_o shall_v offer_v it_o with_o the_o prayer_n of_o all_o saint_n upon_o the_o golden_a altar_n which_o be_v before_o the_o throne_n and_o the_o smoke_n of_o the_o incense_n which_o come_v with_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n ascend_v up_o before_o god_n out_o of_o the_o angel_n hand_n they_o have_v therefore_o both_o the_o same_o gospel-blessing_n and_o upon_o the_o same_o gospel_n account_n as_o we_o namely_o from_o the_o mere_a mercy_n of_o god_n through_o the_o mediation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n through_o his_o death_n and_o intercession_n reas_n 2._o a_o second_o argument_n may_v be_v take_v from_o a_o historical_a induction_n of_o all_o those_o former_a time_n and_o the_o several_a gospel_n discovery_n which_o the_o lord_n vouchsafe_v to_o they_o all_o along_o from_o time_n to_o time_n as_o to_o adam_n in_o paradise_n after_o his_o fall_n the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v to_o he_o in_o that_o great_a and_o bless_a promise_n that_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n shall_v break_v the_o serpent_n head_n this_o be_v the_o first_o gospel_n sermon_n that_o ever_o be_v preach_v afterward_o to_o abraham_n the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v gal._n 3.8_o when_o it_o be_v promise_v that_o in_o thy_o seed_n shall_v all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v bless_v and_o in_o isaac_n shall_v thy_o seed_n be_v call_v to_o moses_n and_o by_o moses_n to_o israel_n when_o the_o lord_n say_v i_o be_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n that_o bring_v thou_o forth_o out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n for_o he_o be_v a_o typical_a mediator_n there_o be_v yet_o further_a discovery_n in_o david_n time_n christ_n be_v the_o true_a david_n thus_o i_o may_v go_v through_o the_o whole_a old_a testament_n and_o show_v you_o how_o the_o lord_n from_o time_n to_o time_n make_v further_a and_o further_a discovery_n of_o himself_o to_o his_o people_n in_o succeed_a age_n reas_n 3._o either_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v unto_o they_o of_o old_a or_o else_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o they_o be_v all_o damn_a or_o else_o that_o they_o be_v save_v without_o christ_n which_o to_o imagine_v be_v infinite_o derogatory_n and_o dishonourable_a to_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o father_n before_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n be_v save_v and_o go_v to_o heaven_n but_o without_o christ_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n for_o there_o be_v no_o other_o name_n under_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n act_v 4.12_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o any_o sinner_n shall_v be_v save_v without_o christ_n qui_fw-la salutem_fw-la cviquam_fw-la promittit_fw-la sine_fw-la christo_fw-la nescio_fw-la a_o ille_fw-la salutem_fw-la habere_fw-la potest_fw-la in_o christo_fw-la austin_n he_o that_o promise_v any_o man_n salvation_n without_o christ_n i_o know_v not_o whether_o he_o can_v have_v salvation_n by_o christ_n by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n shall_v no_o flesh_n be_v justify_v or_o save_v rom._n 3.20_o gal._n 2.16_o jesus_n christ_n therefore_o be_v the_o same_o yesterday_o and_o to_o day_n and_o for_o ever_o heb._n 13.8_o that_o be_v in_o all_o time_n and_o age_n and_o so_o we_o may_v apply_v it_o thus_o yesterday_o under_o the_o law_n to_o day_n under_o the_o gospel_n and_o for_o ever_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o only_a saviour_n therefore_o if_o the_o old_a testament_n saint_n be_v save_v it_o be_v by_o christ_n and_o if_o by_o christ_n they_o have_v the_o gospel_n preach_v to_o they_o as_o well_o as_o we_o so_o we_o see_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n obj._n 1_o but_o why_o do_v we_o call_v it_o the_o old_a testament_n if_o it_o be_v gospel_n answ_n this_o be_v only_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o dispensation_n we_o do_v not_o call_v the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o bible_n or_o the_o time_n wherein_o it_o be_v write_v the_o old_a testament_n and_o the_o latter_a part_n of_o the_o bible_n and_o the_o the_o time_n wherein_o it_o be_v write_v the_o new_a testament_n as_o if_o the_o former_a be_v mere_a law_n and_o the_o latter_a nothing_o but_o gospel_n no_o therefore_o take_v heed_n of_o mistake_v here_o for_o there_o be_v very_o much_o of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n reveal_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n many_o precious_a gospel_n truth_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o there_o be_v very_o much_o of_o the_o law_n and_o threaten_n thereof_o declare_v write_v down_o and_o leave_v upon_o record_n to_o we_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n yea_o there_o be_v more_o of_o hell_n and_o damnation_n there_o be_v more_o dreadful_a threaten_n thereof_o in_o the_o sermon_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n record_v in_o the_o four_o evangelist_n than_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o all_o the_o old_a testament_n but_o we_o call_v it_o the_o old_a testament_n because_o it_o be_v the_o first_o dispensation_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o gospel_n we_o call_v the_o new_a testament_n because_o it_o be_v the_o new_a dispensation_n of_o the_o same_o everlasting_a gospel_n therefore_o the_o reason_n be_v only_o in_o the_o way_n and_o manner_n of_o their_o dispensation_n and_o not_o in_o the_o subject_n themselves_o obj._n 2._o but_o there_o be_v a_o second_o objection_n that_o the_o apostle_n often_o speak_v of_o that_o ancient_a dispensation_n as_o if_o it_o be_v law_n and_o not_o gospel_n some_o scripture_n call_v that_o old_a testament_n administration_n law_n the_o ministration_n of_o death_n as_o john_n 1.17_o the_o law_n come_v by_o moses_n but_o grace_n and_o truth_n by_o jesus_n christ_n if_o it_o be_v law_n may_n some_o say_v than_o it_o be_v not_o gospel_n so_o 2_o cor._n 3.7_o the_o ministration_n of_o death_n answ_n we_o must_v distinguish_v between_o the_o thing_n preach_v and_o the_o manner_n of_o preach_v between_o the_o shell_n and_o the_o kernel_n the_o shadow_n and_o the_o substance_n now_o the_o thing_n preach_v be_v the_o gospel_n though_o the_o manner_n of_o preach_v it_o be_v legal_a the_o kernel_n be_v gospel_n though_o the_o shell_n be_v law_n the_o spirit_n and_o substance_n and_o mystery_n of_o that_o dispensation_n be_v evangelical_n though_o it_o be_v involve_v in_o a_o legal_a shell_n and_o outside_n and_o overshadow_a with_o the_o shade_n and_o figure_n of_o the_o law_n god_n never_o have_v but_o one_o way_n only_o to_o save_v man_n by_o but_o it_o have_v divers_a fashion_n and_o form_n divers_a outward_a discovery_n and_o manifestation_n in_o those_o time_n in_o a_o more_o legal_a manner_n but_o afterward_o more_o like_o itself_o in_o a_o more_o evangelical_a manner_n this_o legality_n of_o that_o administration_n appear_v chief_o in_o five_o thing_n which_o be_v the_o peculiar_a property_n and_o character_n of_o that_o dispensation_n by_o which_o it_o be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o gospel-dispensation_n as_o be_v much_o inferior_a to_o it_o so_o we_o shall_v show_v you_o two_o thing_n at_o once_o both_o the_o difference_n of_o the_o two_o administration_n and_o withal_o the_o pre-eminence_n and_o excellency_n of_o the_o new_a above_o the_o old_a it_o be_v dark_a weak_a carnal_a burdensome_a and_o terrible_a 1._o it_o be_v dark_a but_o the_o gospel_n be_v clear_a all_o thing_n be_v involve_v in_o thick_a and_o dark_a shadow_n though_o there_o be_v a_o light_n in_o that_o moysaicall_a pedagogy_n which_o do_v appear_v and_o shine_v forth_o into_o the_o mind_n of_o god_n elect_n yet_o withal_o there_o be_v a_o cloud_n of_o darkness_n as_o to_o the_o outward_a administration_n especial_o if_o compare_v with_o the_o dispensation_n of_o the_o gospel_n since_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v and_o be_v a_o double_a use_n of_o type_n and_o parable_n and_o of_o that_o whole_a way_n of_o argument_n by_o similitude_n and_o comparison_n they_o do_v both_o darken_v and_o illustrate_v if_o explain_v and_o understand_v they_o do_v exceed_o enlighten_v and_o illustrate_v but_o if_o not_o explain_v they_o be_v like_o a_o riddle_n they_o cast_v a_o dark_a mist_n and_o cloud_n upon_o the_o thing_n so_o be_v the_o law_n of_o moses_n to_o all_o those_o that_o be_v not_o instruct_v by_o the_o spirit_n to_o understand_v the_o mystery_n of_o it_o the_o reason_n and_o mean_v of_o it_o be_v hide_v to_o the_o most_o of_o they_o hence_o a_o veil_n be_v say_v to_o be_v upon_o their_o heart_n that_o they_o can_v not_o see_v to_o the_o end_n of_o that_o which_o be_v abolish_v etc._n etc._n 2_o cor._n 3.13_o 14_o etc._n etc._n as_o the_o apostle_n there_o discourse_v it_o at_o large_a 2._o it_o be_v weak_a but_o the_o
the_o more_o deep_a and_o dreadful_a will_v their_o damnation_n be_v the_o apostle_n call_v the_o gospel_n the_o word_n of_o truth_n unbelief_n say_v it_o be_v a_o lye_n it_o give_v god_n the_o lie_n it_o make_v he_o a_o liar_n and_o make_v the_o gospel_n a_o fable_n if_o there_o be_v a_o way_n of_o recovery_n why_o shall_v not_o thou_o believe_v and_o venture_v thy_o soul_n on_o that_o if_o there_o be_v no_o such_o way_n than_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o lie_n and_o will_v thou_o say_v the_o gospel_n be_v a_o lie_n we_o have_v a_o proverb_n as_o sure_a as_o gospel_n there_o be_v nothing_o so_o clear_a and_o sure_a and_o certain_a as_o the_o gospel_n all_o happiness_n depend_v on_o the_o believe_a of_o the_o gospel_n therefore_o take_v heed_n of_o and_o strive_v against_o unbelief_n labour_v as_o much_o against_o it_o as_o against_o any_o other_o corruption_n and_o the_o chief_a help_n be_v a_o clear_a understanding_n a_o clear_a insight_n and_o understanding_n in_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o gospel_n this_o will_v help_v against_o all_o thy_o unbelief_n then_o all_o thy_o objection_n will_v vanish_v as_o darkness_n before_o the_o sun_n it_o be_v ignorance_n of_o the_o gospel_n from_o whence_o so_o many_o objection_n arise_v beg_v of_o god_n to_o give_v thou_o clear_a gospel-light_n and_o this_o will_v be_v the_o best_a mean_n to_o overcome_v and_o overpower_v that_o sin_n of_o unbelief_n do_v man_n see_v the_o excellency_n the_o truth_n and_o goodness_n of_o the_o gospel_n they_o will_v receive_v it_o glad_o and_o thankful_o the_o gospel_n be_v both_o true_a tiding_n and_o glad_a tiding_n it_o be_v both_o true_a and_o glad_a tiding_n now_o be_v this_o believe_v it_o will_v cheer_v up_o the_o heart_n of_o poor_a sinner_n hebrew_n 1.1_o 2_o 3._o god_n who_o at_o sundry_a time_n and_o in_o divers_a manner_n speak_v in_o time_n pass_v unto_o the_o father_n by_o the_o prophet_n have_v in_o these_o last_o day_n speak_v unto_o we_o by_o his_o son_n who_o he_o have_v appoint_v heir_n of_o all_o thing_n by_o who_o also_o he_o make_v the_o world_n who_o be_v the_o brightness_n of_o his_o glory_n and_o the_o express_a image_n of_o his_o person_n and_o uphold_v all_o thing_n by_o the_o word_n of_o his_o power_n when_o he_o have_v by_o himself_o purge_v our_o sin_n sit_v down_o on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o majesty_n on_o high_a that_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v to_o they_o under_o the_o old_a testament_n as_o well_o as_o to_o we_o under_o the_o new_a have_v be_v clear_v from_o heb._n 4.2_o where_o the_o apostle_n say_v unto_o we_o be_v the_o gospel_n preach_v as_o well_o as_o unto_o they_o we_o be_v next_o to_o consider_v how_o it_o be_v preach_v unto_o they_o now_o to_o this_o the_o text_n answer_v that_o it_o be_v do_v in_o divers_a manner_n and_o at_o sundry_a time_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o scope_n of_o the_o word_n be_v to_o compare_v and_o prefer_v the_o gospel_n discovery_n and_o manifestation_n of_o god_n before_o the_o legal_a which_o he_o do_v by_o a_o most_o elegant_a antithesis_fw-la between_o they_o then_o god_n speak_v to_o the_o father_n now_o to_o we_o that_o be_v by_o the_o prophet_n but_o now_o by_o his_o son_n those_o discovery_n be_v of_o old_a and_o so_o be_v pass_v away_o but_o the_o gospel_n be_v in_o these_o last_o day_n and_o final_o than_o he_o speak_v in_o divers_a manner_n and_o at_o sundry_a time_n but_o now_o he_o have_v fix_v upon_o this_o one_o way_n and_o once_o for_o all_o to_o reveal_v himself_o by_o his_o son_n we_o may_v resolve_v the_o text_n into_o four_o general_a proposition_n or_o point_n of_o doctrine_n 1._o that_o it_o have_v please_v god_n to_o speak_v or_o reveal_v himself_o and_o his_o mind_n and_o will_v unto_o poor_a lose_a man_n in_o order_n to_o his_o happiness_n and_o salvation_n for_o he_o speak_v here_o only_o of_o the_o gospel_n discovery_n 2._o that_o there_o be_v two_o grand_a discovery_n or_o dispensation_n of_o the_o mind_n of_o god_n unto_o the_o son_n of_o man_n the_o one_o before_o the_o other_o since_o the_o come_n of_o his_o son_n 3._o that_o under_o that_o former_a dispensation_n god_n do_v reveal_v and_o speak_v his_o mind_n of_o old_a unto_o the_o father_n by_o the_o prophet_n in_o divers_a manner_n and_o at_o sundry_a time_n 4._o that_o in_o this_o last_o dispensation_n instead_o of_o all_o those_o former_a various_a discovery_n use_v of_o old_a he_o have_v speak_v his_o mind_n unto_o we_o only_o by_o his_o son_n you_o see_v the_o two_o last_o doctrine_n do_v contain_v and_o hold_v forth_o the_o difference_n and_o peculiar_a character_n of_o each_o dispensation_n it_o be_v only_o the_o three_o doctrine_n that_o we_o be_v now_o to_o speak_v unto_o viz._n that_o under_o the_o old_a dispensation_n god_n do_v reveal_v and_o speak_v his_o mind_n unto_o the_o father_n by_o the_o prophet_n in_o divers_a manner_n and_o at_o sundry_a time_n 1._o it_o be_v of_o old_a therefore_o now_o pass_v away_o as_o heb._n 8.13_o that_o which_o decay_v and_o wax_v old_a be_v ready_a to_o vanish_v 2._o to_o the_o father_n that_o be_v to_o their_o ancestor_n for_o he_o write_v this_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n as_o the_o title_n of_o it_o show_v 3._o by_o the_o prophet_n all_o those_o by_o who_o god_n reveal_v his_o mind_n to_o other_o be_v in_o that_o respect_n prophet_n that_o be_v discoverer_n or_o revealer_n of_o the_o mind_n of_o god_n 4._o in_o divers_a manner_n 5._o at_o sundry_a time_n it_o be_v these_o two_o last_o that_o i_o intend_v a_o little_a to_o insist_v upon_o viz._n these_o divers_a manner_n and_o sundry_a time_n i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o show_v 1._o what_o be_v these_o divers_a manner_n or_o way_n of_o discovery_n 2._o what_o be_v the_o several_a time_n or_o the_o several_a piece_n and_o parcel_n of_o it_o for_o this_o be_v the_o importance_n of_o the_o two_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 1._o i_o shall_v speak_v first_o to_o the_o manner_n as_o be_v first_o in_o consideration_n though_o last_o mention_v in_o the_o text._n the_o lord_n be_v please_v herein_o to_o use_v great_a variety_n he_o do_v not_o limit_v and_o confine_v himself_o to_o one_o way_n and_o manner_n of_o discovery_n but_o he_o speak_v sometime_o in_o one_o manner_n and_o sometime_o in_o another_o it_o concern_v we_o to_o inquire_v into_o it_o so_o far_o as_o we_o have_v scripture-light_n to_o guide_v we_o for_o we_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n ephes_n 2.20_o yet_o we_o must_v do_v it_o with_o sobriety_n of_o spirit_n eschew_v and_o take_v heed_n of_o vain_a curiosity_n for_o they_o themselves_o who_o receive_v those_o extraordinary_a manifestation_n do_v not_o always_o full_o know_v the_o manner_n of_o they_o in_o all_o circumstance_n as_o the_o apostle_n paul_n himself_o know_v not_o whether_o in_o the_o body_n or_o out_o of_o the_o body_n 2_o cor._n 12._o this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a thing_n god_n do_v which_o we_o can_v comprehend_v as_o elihu_n speak_v job_n 37.5_o yet_o so_o far_o as_o the_o scripture_n go_v before_o we_o we_o may_v safe_o follow_v these_o divers_a manner_n therefore_o of_o god_n speak_v or_o reveal_v his_o mind_n of_o old_a may_v be_v refer_v chief_o to_o these_o seven_o head_n 1._o by_o vision_n 2._o by_o dream_n 3._o by_o voice_n 4._o by_o inward_a inspiration_n and_o impulse_n of_o his_o spirit_n 5._o by_o legal_a type_n and_o shadow_n 6._o by_o sign_n and_o wonder_n 7._o by_o a_o special_a and_o peculiar_a kind_n of_o intimacy_n and_o familiarity_n 1._o the_o lord_n be_v wont_v then_o to_o speak_v by_o vision_n i_o mean_v visible_a apparition_n and_o representation_n of_o thing_n to_o the_o eye_n the_o person_n be_v awake_a and_o not_o asleep_a i_o do_v not_o mean_a thing_n represent_v mere_o to_o the_o mind_n and_o inward_a thought_n for_o this_o will_v come_v in_o afterward_o under_o another_o head_n namely_o that_o of_o inward_a inspiration_n and_o revelation_n but_o i_o speak_v now_o of_o such_o vision_n wherein_o thing_n be_v real_o and_o indeed_o object_v to_o the_o outward_a sense_n hence_o the_o prophet_n be_v call_v seer_n hence_o that_o phrase_n the_o vision_n of_o god_n use_v concern_v prophecy_n and_o what_o be_v it_o that_o they_o see_v sometime_o they_o see_v god_n himself_o sometime_o the_o angel_n and_o sometime_o other_o thing_n be_v represent_v and_o do_v appear_v in_o vision_n to_o they_o 1._o sometime_o the_o lord_n himself_o do_v appear_v in_o vision_n to_o they_o not_o as_o though_o his_o essence_n be_v corporeal_a or_o visible_a he_o dwell_v in_o light_n unapproachable_a 1_o tim._n 6.16_o who_o no_o man_n have_v see_v nor_o
and_o not_o of_o a_o angel_n for_o he_o say_v the_o tree_n which_o i_o command_v etc._n etc._n but_o the_o most_o famous_a instance_n hereof_o be_v at_o the_o give_v of_o the_o law_n upon_o mount_n sinai_n exod_n 19_o and_o 20._o where_o the_o lord_n speak_v with_o a_o audible_a voice_n from_o heaven_n chap._n 19_o 9_o 20._o so_o that_o the_o people_n may_v hear_v and_o chap._n 20._o 22._o and_o see_v that_o the_o lord_n talk_v with_o they_o from_o heaven_n deut._n 5.22_o 23_o 24._o these_o word_n the_o lord_n speak_v unto_o all_o your_o assembly_n in_o the_o mount_n out_o of_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o fire_n of_o the_o cloud_n and_o of_o the_o thick_a darkness_n with_o a_o great_a voice_n and_o when_o you_o hear_v the_o voice_n heb._n 12.26_o who_o voice_n then_o shake_v the_o earth_n so_o matth._n 17.5_o a_o voice_n out_o of_o the_o cloud_n say_v this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n but_o they_o see_v no_o similitude_n deut._n 4.12_o 1_o king_n 19.12_o 13._o a_o still_o small_a voice_n 4._o by_o a_o inward_a instinct_n by_o immediate_a inspiration_n and_o impulse_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o to_o david_n 1_o chron._n 28.12_o 19_o though_o he_o have_v it_o in_o write_v also_o and_o leave_v it_o to_o his_o son_n but_o it_o be_v reveal_v to_o he_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n so_o to_o philip_n act_v 8.29_o the_o spirit_n say_v unto_o philip_n to_o peter_n act_v 10.19_o the_o spirit_n say_v unto_o he_o and_o acts._n 11_o 12._o the_o spirit_n bid_v i_o go_v with_o they_o to_o paul_n and_o silas_n act_v 16.7_o not_o to_o go_v into_o bythinia_n but_o the_o spirit_n suffer_v they_o not_o 5._o by_o legal_a type_n and_o shadow_n these_o be_v speak_v thing_n and_o what_o do_v they_o speak_v they_o speak_v forth_o gospel_n truth_n and_o mystery_n the_o ceremonial_a law_n be_v the_o gospel_n in_o type_n and_o shadow_n heb._n 10.1_o the_o law_n have_v a_o shadow_n of_o good_a thing_n to_o come_v a_o type_n be_v a_o legal_a shadow_n of_o gospel_n truth_n and_o mystery_n these_o be_v the_o stand_a ordinance_n and_o instruction_n of_o those_o time_n 6._o by_o sign_n and_o wonder_n these_o have_v a_o voice_n and_o do_v speak_v the_o mind_n of_o god_n these_o be_v attestation_n to_o the_o truth_n and_o mind_n of_o god_n and_o to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o messenger_n see_v exod._n 4.8_o if_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v thou_o nor_o hearken_v to_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o first_o sign_n they_o will_v believe_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o latter_a sign_n joh._n 3.2_o we_o know_v that_o thou_o be_v a_o teacher_n come_v from_o god_n for_o no_o man_n can_v do_v these_o miracle_n that_o thou_o do_v except_o god_n be_v with_o he_o the_o lord_n may_v work_v miracle_n now_o but_o he_o do_v not_o now_o send_v forth_o any_o person_n with_o a_o commission_n to_o do_v it_o as_o he_o do_v of_o old_a 7._o by_o a_o special_a and_o peculiar_a kind_n of_o intimacy_n and_o familiarity_n as_o it_o be_v mouth_n to_o mouth_n without_o parable_n or_o riddle_n without_o obscurity_n with_o all_o possible_a familiarity_n and_o this_o be_v moses_n his_o privilege_n numb_a 12.8_o with_o he_o will_v i_o speak_v mouth_n to_o mouth_n apparent_o and_o not_o in_o dark_a speech_n exod._n 33.11_o 23._o the_o lord_n speak_v to_o he_o face_n to_o face_n as_o a_o man_n speak_v to_o his_o friend_n thou_o shall_v see_v my_o back_n part_n that_o phrase_n of_o speak_a mouth_n to_o mouth_n note_v the_o clearness_n and_o certainty_n and_o familiarity_n of_o it_o as_o when_o joseph_n say_v you_o see_v it_o be_v my_o mouth_n that_o speak_v unto_o you_o gen._n 45.12_o this_o be_v a_o privilege_n peculiar_a unto_o moses_n deut._n 34.10_o there_o arise_v no_o prophet_n like_o he_o since_o who_o the_o lord_n know_v face_n to_o face_n that_o that_o come_v near_a to_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o ineffable_a thing_n that_o paul_n see_v and_o hear_v in_o the_o three_o heaven_n 2_o cor._n 12.1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o and_o the_o revelation_n give_v to_o the_o apostle_n john_n in_o the_o isle_n of_o patmos_n which_o be_v the_o clear_a and_o yet_o withal_o the_o deep_a and_o most_o wonderful_a of_o all_o the_o prophecy_n record_v in_o the_o scripture_n there_o be_v two_o question_n may_v arise_v here_o which_o will_v be_v brief_o speak_v to_o quest_n 1._o whether_o there_o be_v not_o counterfeit_n of_o these_o thing_n and_o if_o there_o be_v how_o do_v they_o discern_v the_o lord_n voice_n in_o these_o extraordinary_a dispensation_n from_o satan_n voice_n in_o his_o delusion_n answ_n it_o be_v true_a there_o be_v counterfeit_n of_o they_o there_o be_v vison_n dream_n seem_v miracle_n impulse_n from_o satan_n as_o well_o as_o from_o god_n diabolus_fw-la est_fw-la dei_fw-la simia_fw-la hence_o that_o caution_n of_o moses_n deut._n 13.1_o and_o hence_o be_v those_o complaint_n of_o the_o prophet_n jeremy_n cap._n 14._o 13_o 14_o 15._o 1_o king_n 22.22_o 23._o that_o famous_a instance_n of_o a_o lie_a spirit_n in_o the_o mouth_n of_o ahabs_n prophet_n therefore_o to_o have_v a_o vision_n to_o dream_v strange_a and_o supernatural_a dream_n to_o have_v a_o powerful_a impetus_fw-la and_o afflatus_fw-la from_o a_o spirit_n be_v not_o thing_n simple_o peculiar_a to_o the_o true_a prophet_n of_o god_n but_o though_o satan_n do_v partly_o out_o of_o craft_n to_o deceive_v thereby_o the_o more_o effectual_o and_o partly_o out_o of_o blasphemy_n and_o malice_n to_o put_v a_o affront_n as_o it_o be_v upon_o god_n use_v way_n and_o mean_n of_o deceive_a that_o have_v some_o resemblance_n of_o god_n own_o way_n and_o ordinance_n yet_o there_o be_v manifest_a and_o palpable_a difference_n between_o they_o i_o shall_v name_v but_o these_o four_o 1._o the_o lord_n do_v not_o usual_o suffer_v satan_n to_o transform_v himself_o so_o far_o into_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n as_o to_o come_v in_o these_o way_n unto_o his_o own_o people_n unto_o such_o as_o be_v true_o godly_a search_v the_o scripture_n and_o you_o will_v not_o find_v that_o satan_n do_v appear_v to_o give_v satanical_a dream_n and_o vision_n and_o the_o like_a to_o such_o as_o be_v godly_a it_o be_v true_a he_o do_v tempt_v they_o but_o in_o a_o more_o spiritual_a manner_n as_o he_o tempt_v david_n to_o number_v the_o people_n or_o by_o other_o outward_a mean_n as_o when_o the_o young_a prophet_n that_o come_v from_o bethel_n be_v deceive_v by_o the_o old_a one_o but_o when_o satan_n do_v inspire_v any_o with_o dream_n and_o vision_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v do_v to_o wicked_a and_o ungodly_a man_n as_o to_o saul_n when_o he_o raise_v up_o the_o devil_n he_o and_o and_o the_o witch_n see_v the_o god_n that_o be_v spirit_n infernal_a spirit_n ascend_v up_o out_o of_o the_o earth_n and_o to_o the_o false_a prophet_n of_o ahab_n those_o four_o hundred-idolater_n they_o speak_v as_o prophet_n and_o be_v act_v by_o a_o spirit_n but_o it_o be_v a_o lie_a spirit_n and_o they_o be_v lewd_a and_o wicked_a man_n so_o that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n in_o the_o person_n or_o subject_a recipient_a of_o divine_a revelation_n and_o of_o satanical_a delusion_n 2._o in_o divine_a discovery_n there_o be_v a_o holy_a elevation_n of_o their_o mind_n when_o they_o do_v receive_v they_o but_o in_o the_o organ_n and_o instrument_n of_o satan_n there_o be_v only_o a_o stupefaction_n and_o depression_n of_o they_o as_o when_o john_n do_v receive_v the_o revelation_n he_o be_v in_o the_o spirit_n chap._n 1._o 10._o sometime_o they_o be_v so_o far_o elevate_v and_o raise_v and_o act_v by_o the_o spirit_n that_o they_o do_v not_o attend_v to_o any_o other_o thing_n but_o be_v transport_v above_o sense_n and_o sensible_a thing_n to_o attend_v whole_o to_o the_o vision_n and_o revelation_n of_o god_n so_o peter_n fall_v into_o a_o trance_n acts._n 10.10_o paul_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d act_v 22.17_o hence_o oftentimes_o they_o fall_v upon_o their_o face_n be_v astonish_v at_o the_o majesty_n and_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n both_o gracious_a and_o natural_a fear_n concur_v ezek_n 1.28_o dan_fw-mi 10.8_o 9_o matth._n 17.6_o 7._o but_o this_o ravishment_n of_o spirit_n be_v not_o a_o stupefaction_n but_o a_o holy_a elevation_n of_o their_o mind_n whereby_o they_o be_v take_v off_o and_o lift_v up_o above_o all_o these_o low_a thing_n to_o the_o high_a exercise_n of_o faith_n and_o spiritual_a reason_n and_o so_o better_o fit_v and_o compose_v to_o receive_v those_o divine_a irradiation_n and_o manifestation_n of_o god_n so_o daniel_n 10.1_o he_o understand_v the_o thing_n and_o have_v understanding_n of_o the_o vision_n so_o balaam_n when_o the_o lord_n be_v please_v in_o a_o extraordinary_a case_n to_o act_v he_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o true_a prophet_n numb_a 24.4_o 16._o fall_v into_o a_o
trance_n but_o have_v his_o eye_n open_a but_o on_o the_o contrary_a such_o as_o be_v act_v by_o satan_n they_o have_v their_o ecstatical_a fury_n wherein_o their_o mind_n be_v so_o discompose_v that_o they_o be_v not_o compotes_fw-la sanae_fw-la mentis_fw-la as_o some_o have_v write_v of_o the_o sibyl_n that_o when_o after_o their_o prophesying_n they_o come_v to_o themselves_o again_o they_o have_v forget_v what_o they_o have_v say_v and_o so_o can_v not_o review_v and_o correct_v what_o be_v write_v from_o they_o but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o with_o the_o prophet_n of_o god_n john_n write_v and_o have_v order_n to_o write_v his_o apocalypse_n and_o so_o the_o other_o prophet_n and_o when_o those_o to_o who_o and_o by_o who_o the_o devil_n speak_v be_v not_o discompose_v to_o such_o a_o degree_n even_o to_o fury_n and_o distraction_n yet_o they_o be_v always_o debase_v and_o bring_v down_o below_o themselves_o the_o lord_n prophet_n be_v raise_v above_o themselves_o these_o be_v depress_v even_o below_o themselves_o by_o deal_v with_o satan_n 3._o the_o prophet_n and_o servant_n of_o god_n have_v a_o inward_a seal_n from_o god_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o what_o they_o speak_v not_o unlike_o that_o new_a name_n in_o the_o white_a stone_n which_o none_o can_v read_v but_o he_o that_o have_v it_o revel_v 2.17_o jer._n 11.18_o they_o believe_v and_o therefore_o speak_v 2_o cor._n 4.13_o see_v isai_n 52.6_o my_o people_n shall_v know_v that_o i_o be_o he_o that_o do_v speak_v behold_v it_o be_v i._n the_o true_a prophet_n be_v no_o sceptic_n they_o be_v as_o sure_a of_o what_o they_o say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o mind_n of_o god_n as_o minister_n be_v now_o when_o they_o preach_v the_o gospel_n 1._o joh._n 1.1_o 2._o on_o the_o contrary_a those_o by_o who_o satan_n speak_v either_o know_v that_o they_o be_v act_v by_o the_o devil_n as_o the_o witch_n at_o endor_n or_o else_o be_v delude_v by_o he_o to_o think_v it_o be_v god_n or_o else_o know_v not_o but_o be_v uncertain_a in_o themselves_o 4._o they_o have_v also_o some_o of_o those_o ordinary_a rule_n of_o trial_n that_o we_o have_v now_o as_o for_o instance_n if_o god_n confute_v they_o by_o the_o event_n deut._n 18.21_o 22_o or_o if_o it_o correspond_v with_o the_o event_n yet_o if_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o fundamental_o of_o religion_n see_v deut._n 13.1_o 2_o 3._o or_o if_o they_o be_v wicked_a man_n on_o the_o one_o side_n and_o the_o prophet_n of_o the_o lord_n on_o the_o other_o this_o give_v some_o glimmering_n of_o light_n to_o jehosaphat_n 1_o king_n 22.7_o they_o be_v baalites_n pretender_n indeed_o to_o jehovah_n but_o superstitious_a wretch_n therefore_o he_o can_v not_o acquiesce_v in_o what_o they_o have_v say_v quest_n 2._o whether_o these_o way_n of_o discovery_n be_v now_o cease_v yea_o or_o no_o answ_n as_o to_o that_o the_o text_n be_v plain_a enough_o that_o instead_o of_o all_o those_o divers_a manner_n use_v by_o god_n of_o old_a he_o have_v now_o substitute_v instead_o thereof_o this_o one_o and_o only_a way_n of_o reveal_v himself_o viz._n in_o and_o by_o his_o son_n and_o his_o son_n speak_v by_o his_o word_n and_o ordinance_n as_o also_o by_o the_o work_v of_o his_o providence_n in_o all_o which_o his_o spirit_n breathe_v therefore_o there_o we_o be_v to_o meet_v with_o god_n and_o to_o hear_v his_o voice_n and_o there_o only_o to_o expect_v it_o these_o old_a thing_n be_v vanish_v away_o some_o think_v there_o be_v some_o footstep_n of_o they_o to_o this_o day_n see_v a_o notable_a instance_n of_o information_n by_o a_o dream_n in_o the_o life_n of_o zuinglius_fw-la melch._n adam_n p._n 43._o and_o of_o a_o vision_n in_o melancthon_n on_o daniel_n 10._o 1_o but_o first_o such_o thing_n be_v altogether_o extraordinary_a the_o lord_n go_v out_o of_o his_o ordinary_a course_n when_o he_o do_v such_o thing_n they_o be_v not_o the_o stand_a way_n that_o god_n have_v appoint_v under_o the_o gospel_n therefore_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v expect_v or_o trust_v to_o 2._o they_o be_v only_o to_o be_v regard_v in_o the_o way_n of_o a_o providence_n not_o in_o the_o way_n of_o a_o ordinance_n and_o to_o be_v try_v and_o judge_v by_o the_o matter_n of_o they_o as_o agree_v or_o disagree_v with_o the_o scripture_n as_o if_o a_o man_n in_o a_o dream_n have_v some_o duty_n some_o scripture-truth_n bring_v to_o he_o he_o be_v to_o observe_v and_o accept_v the_o providence_n of_o god_n in_o it_o or_o if_o he_o find_v a_o strong_a impulse_n or_o motion_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o his_o heart_n whereby_o some_o truth_n or_o duty_n be_v strong_o impress_v and_o set_v upon_o his_o heart_n let_v he_o examine_v it_o by_o the_o scripture_n and_o if_o the_o scripture_n say_v it_o be_v a_o duty_n he_o be_v to_o look_v at_o that_o internal_a motion_n and_o impression_n as_o a_o motion_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n else_o not_o use_v 1_o see_v the_o variety_n of_o god_n wisdom_n and_o goodness_n to_o his_o people_n that_o he_o have_v so_o many_o way_n reveal_v himself_o to_o they_o use_v 2._o we_o may_v see_v something_o of_o the_o lowness_n of_o that_o legal_a dispensation_n from_o this_o which_o have_v be_v say_v that_o the_o lord_n speak_v in_o such_o divers_a manner_n use_v 3_o bless_v god_n for_o the_o day_n wherein_o we_o live_v and_o for_o the_o dispensation_n we_o be_v under_o it_o be_v much_o clear_a and_o better_a for_o it_o be_v by_o his_o son_n speak_v by_o his_o word_n work_v and_o breathe_v by_o his_o spirit_n the_o light_n shine_v much_o clear_a we_o see_v that_o which_o many_o king_n and_o prophet_n and_o righteous_a man_n have_v desire_v to_o see_v and_o have_v not_o see_v as_o matth._n 13.17_o luke_n 10.24_o christ_n speak_v it_o to_o his_o disciple_n then_o but_o it_o hold_v true_a concern_v all_o the_o saint_n under_o the_o new_a testament_n it_o be_v true_a there_o be_v a_o cloud_n of_o antichristian_a darkness_n do_v arise_v which_o do_v exceed_o obscure_a gospel-light_n but_o that_o cloud_n be_v never_o so_o dark_a but_o that_o the_o elect_a of_o god_n do_v see_v through_o it_o in_o some_o measure_n moreover_o the_o lord_n have_v begin_v to_o dispel_v and_o scatter_v those_o cloud_n of_o antichristian_a darkness_n and_o will_v in_o time_n scatter_v they_o from_o off_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n 2._o we_o be_v now_o to_o speak_v to_o the_o second_o word_n these_o divers_a time_n have_v show_v the_o divers_a manner_n of_o the_o lord_n speak_v to_o his_o people_n of_o old_a we_o be_v now_o to_o show_v the_o divers_a time_n or_o season_n wherein_o he_o do_v it_o for_o he_o speak_v not_o only_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o piecemeal_n not_o all_o at_o once_o but_o here_o a_o little_a and_o there_o a_o little_a first_o one_o piece_n of_o his_o mind_n be_v discover_v at_o one_o time_n than_o another_o piece_n at_o another_o time_n first_o a_o little_a light_n break_v forth_o some_o dark_a hint_n and_o intimation_n then_o further_o and_o clear_a discovery_n and_o manifestation_n by_o degree_n in_o the_o open_n of_o this_o we_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o run_v through_o some_o general_a head_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o church_n throughout_o the_o scripture_n till_o the_o come_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o it_o be_v a_o inquiry_n both_o useful_a and_o profitable_a and_o also_o pleasant_a and_o delightful_a to_o a_o inquisitive_a mind_n to_o view_v the_o several_a state_n of_o religion_n and_o of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o the_o several_a age_n of_o the_o world_n under_o every_o one_o of_o which_o we_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o take_v notice_n both_o of_o god_n manifestation_n and_o of_o man_n departure_n from_o the_o lord_n and_o from_o the_o truth_n that_o we_o may_v see_v the_o occasion_n of_o every_o new_a discovery_n they_o depart_v and_o destroy_v themselves_o and_o then_o the_o lord_n appear_v again_o in_o recover_v dispensation_n now_o these_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d these_o several_a piece_n and_o parcel_n of_o the_o lord_n discovery_n and_o manifestation_n of_o himself_o may_v be_v refer_v to_o two_o general_a head_n 1._o before_o the_o law_n 2._o under_o the_o law_n these_o be_v the_o two_o great_a piece_n of_o it_o and_o the_o scripture_n take_v notice_n of_o they_o both_o of_o that_o dispensation_n that_o be_v before_o the_o law_n from_o adam_n to_o moses_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v rom._n 5.14_o death_n reign_v from_o adam_n to_o moses_n of_o the_o dispensation_n under_o the_o law_n our_o saviour_n speak_v matth._n 11.13_o for_o all_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o law_n prophesy_v until_o john_n again_o luk._n 16.16_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n be_v until_o john_n the_o difference_n between_o
thirty_o year_n after_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n for_o probable_o eve_n next_o son_n be_v the_o next_o year_n after_o abel_n death_n and_o then_o adam_n be_v one_o hundred_o and_o thirty_o year_n old_a gen._n 5._o moreover_o it_o be_v note_v that_o in_o enos_n his_o time_n there_o be_v a_o reformation_n of_o thing_n gen._n 4.26_o then_o begin_v man_n to_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v mean_v of_o a_o segregation_n of_o the_o precious_a from_o the_o vile_a 1._o it_o can_v be_v mean_v that_o now_o man_n begin_v to_o profane_v the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o the_o apostasy_n begin_v before_o in_o cain_n and_o his_o crew_n which_o be_v before_o the_o birth_n of_o enos_n one_o hundred_o and_o six_o year_n 2._o neither_o can_v it_o be_v mean_v that_o now_o there_o be_v the_o first_o religious_a worship_n of_o god_n for_o that_o have_v be_v long_o before_o by_o abel_n and_o by_o adam_n and_o eve_n and_o other_o of_o the_o godly_a in_o those_o time_n 3._o therefore_o it_o seem_v clear_o to_o be_v mean_v of_o some_o new_a reformation_n of_o religion_n the_o wicked_a party_n be_v grow_v by_o this_o time_n very_o numerous_a the_o godly_a as_o it_o seem_v withdraw_v from_o they_o before_o when_o there_o be_v but_o one_o cain_n that_o have_v fall_v off_o reformation_n may_v be_v attain_v by_o thrust_v he_o out_o from_o among_o they_o 4._o but_o now_o so_o great_a a_o number_n and_o perhaps_o the_o great_a part_n be_v corrupt_v the_o godly_a may_v not_o continue_v and_o mingle_v themselves_o with_o they_o nor_o can_v they_o cast_v they_o forth_o for_o this_o a_o minor_a part_n can_v not_o do_v to_o the_o great_a part_n 5._o therefore_o they_o can_v do_v no_o more_o but_o withdraw_v and_o walk_v by_o themselves_o and_o so_o they_o come_v to_o be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o be_v professor_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n who_o be_v call_v by_o this_o name_n and_o the_o other_o be_v but_o son_n of_o men._n from_o all_o which_o it_o be_v matter_n of_o admiration_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v so_o much_o of_o opposition_n and_o aversion_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o some_o unto_o all_o manner_n of_o church-government_n and_o discipline_n at_o this_o day_n in_o this_o height_n of_o gospel-light_n the_o outward_a sign_n and_o ceremony_n of_o religion_n have_v be_v connect_v with_o discipline_n in_o all_o age_n from_o the_o first_o manifestation_n of_o the_o gospel_n even_o until_o now_o 4._o the_o lord_n do_v in_o those_o day_n inspire_v and_o raise_v up_o some_o to_o be_v prophet_n and_o preacher_n of_o righteousness_n beside_o the_o instruction_n of_o all_o the_o godly_a parent_n to_o the_o child_n there_o be_v some_o person_n peculiar_o eminent_a among_o they_o as_o enoch_n he_o prophesy_v that_o there_o be_v a_o day_n of_o judgement_n come_v judas_n 14._o which_o be_v partly_o fulfil_v in_o noah_n flood_n but_o shall_v be_v more_o full_o and_o perfect_o at_o the_o great_a day_n the_o name_n of_o his_o son_n methuselah_n be_v a_o prediction_n of_o the_o flood_n for_o it_o signify_v mortis_fw-la gladius_n the_o dart_n of_o death_n or_o when_o he_o be_v dead_a god_n will_v send_v his_o sword_n his_o dart_n and_o arrow_n of_o divine_a wrath_n and_o vengeance_n against_o a_o wicked_a world_n and_o last_o noah_n himself_o a_o preacher_n of_o righteousness_n he_o live_v among_o they_o six_o hundred_o year_n before_o the_o flood_n and_o he_o preach_v and_o prophesy_v of_o the_o flood_n for_o a_o hundred_o and_o twenty_o year_n before_o it_o come_v of_o who_o we_o shall_v speak_v further_o by_o and_o by_o now_o this_o first_o dispensation_n of_o the_o lord_n unto_o his_o church_n continue_v from_o first_o to_o last_o about_o sixteen_o hundred_o fifty_o six_o year_n for_o so_o long_o it_o be_v from_o adam_n to_o the_o flood_n as_o you_o will_v find_v if_o you_o compute_v and_o put_v together_o the_o life_n and_o age_n of_o those_o ten_o antediluvian_n patriarch_n record_v in_o the_o five_o chapter_n of_o genesis_n but_o there_o be_v a_o apostasy_n a_o fall_v away_o from_o god_n under_o this_o dispensation_n it_o begin_v in_o cain_n and_o his_o unbelief_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o by_o faith_n abel_n offer_v a_o more_o acceptable_a sacrifice_n than_o he_o heb._n 11.4_o therefore_o the_o other_o want_v faith_n make_v his_o unacceptable_a at_o last_o he_o kill_v his_o brother_n and_o be_v deal_v with_o by_o god_n about_o it_o he_o repent_v not_o gen._n 4._o but_o in_o time_n the_o apostasy_n grow_v about_o it_o he_o repent_v not_o gen._n 4._o but_o in_o time_n the_o apostasy_n grow_v to_o its_o height_n that_o all_o flesh_n have_v corrupt_v his_o way_n upon_o the_o earth_n gen._n 6.12_o and_o there_o be_v a_o general_a atheism_n and_o profaneness_n job_n 22.16_o 17._o the_o apostasy_n under_o this_o adamical_a dispensation_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o i_o know_v not_o what_o fit_a term_n to_o express_v it_o by_o consist_v chief_o in_o three_o thing_n 1._o sensuality_n and_o brutish_a lust_n they_o take_v their_o swinge_n in_o their_o lust_n this_o be_v mention_v in_o gen._n 6.2_o and_o matth._n 24.38_o the_o son_n of_o god_n see_v the_o daughter_n of_o man_n and_o take_v they_o wife_n hence_o arise_v all_o the_o heathenish_a fable_n of_o the_o adultery_n and_o whoredom_n of_o their_o go_n for_o the_o old_a pagan_a god_n be_v indeed_o no_o other_o but_o those_o old_a gigantine_n rebel_n and_o sinner_n against_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o first_o time_n and_o age_n of_o the_o world_n 2._o violence_n and_o oppression_n gen._n 6.11_o the_o earth_n also_o be_v corrupt_a before_o god_n and_o the_o earth_n be_v fill_v with_o violence_n be_v man_n of_o great_a strength_n and_o many_o of_o they_o no_o doubt_n giant_n they_o do_v whatsoever_o they_o listen_v 3._o sinful_a mixture_n and_o confusion_n between_o the_o church_n and_o the_o world_n gen._n 6.2_o the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o be_v the_o professor_n of_o religion_n marry_v with_o the_o daughter_n of_o man_n that_o be_v professor_n with_o such_o as_o be_v profane_a the_o son_n of_o god_n can_v be_v mean_v of_o the_o angel_n for_o they_o be_v not_o capable_a of_o bodily_a lust_n they_o can_v not_o fall_v in_o love_n with_o woman_n hereupon_o the_o lord_n bring_v in_o desolation_n and_o cut_v they_o down_o with_o a_o flood_n as_o job_n 22.16_o and_o so_o put_v this_o adamical_a dispensation_n to_o a_o end_n but_o bring_v in_o another_o and_o a_o new_a dispensation_n of_o himself_o viz._n 2._o to_o noah_n and_o his_o posterity_n this_o be_v the_o lord_n second_o dispensation_n to_o his_o people_n for_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o yet_o cast_v off_o his_o care_n of_o wretched_a man_n but_o recover_v he_o and_o set_v he_o up_o again_o once_o more_o now_o unto_o all_o the_o former_a discovery_n there_o be_v several_a addition_n for_o that_o great_a gospel-promise_a that_o a_o saviour_n shall_v come_v and_o that_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n shall_v break_v the_o serpent_n head_n they_o have_v that_o and_o do_v live_v upon_o it_o still_o they_o have_v also_o sacrifice_n and_o clothing_n and_o church-discipline_n but_o new_a discovery_n be_v add_v the_o lord_n speak_v something_o more_o of_o his_o mind_n unto_o they_o there_o be_v some_o further_a beam_n of_o light_n appear_v and_o shine_v forth_o upon_o they_o 1._o he_o save_v they_o by_o water_n in_o the_o ark_n the_o story_n whereof_o you_o have_v in_o the_o 6_o 7_o and_o 8._o chap._n of_o genesis_n remember_v 1_o pet._n 3._o as_o a_o type_n of_o baptism_n and_o by_o the_o way_n this_o can_v not_o but_o be_v of_o great_a use_n to_o all_o posterity_n for_o though_o nature_n will_v teach_v man_n the_o use_n of_o boat_n and_o lesser_a vessel_n to_o pass_v the_o lesser_a brook_n and_o river_n yet_o that_o they_o have_v any_o great_a ship_n before_o the_o flood_n be_v not_o probable_a so_o that_o here_o it_o seem_v be_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o art_n of_o navigation_n and_o ship_n 2._o he_o renew_v his_o covenant_n with_o they_o with_o noah_n and_o all_o his_o seed_n even_o all_o mankind_n and_o give_v they_o the_o rainbow_n for_o a_o outward_a sign_n and_o pledge_v thereof_o gen._n 9.8_o 9_o 12._o to_o 18._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d this_o be_v the_o first_o instance_n where_o the_o word_n covenant_n be_v use_v concern_v the_o transaction_n between_o god_n and_o men._n the_o rainbow_n be_v the_o sign_n thereof_o the_o horn_n downward_o and_o the_o back_o upward_o to_o heaven_n intimate_v that_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o shoot_v out_o of_o his_o bow_n the_o arrow_n of_o another_o deluge_n which_o whether_o it_o be_v there_o before_o and_o now_o only_o make_v a_o sign_n of_o the_o covenant_n or_o that_o now_o it_o have_v its_o first_o existence_n be_v
disputable_a but_o it_o be_v probable_a enough_o that_o it_o may_v be_v altogether_o new_a yea_o though_o we_o suppose_v the_o rainbow_n to_o arise_v from_o natural_a cause_n for_o a_o year_n deluge_n can_v not_o but_o cause_v a_o great_a alteration_n in_o all_o the_o element_n and_o in_o the_o cloud_n and_o in_o the_o air_n whereby_o there_o may_v new_a phaenomena_n new_a appearance_n in_o the_o heaven_n which_o never_o be_v before_o moreover_o it_o may_v be_v produce_v by_o a_o new_a create_a power_n of_o providence_n beyond_o the_o force_n of_o any_o natural_a cause_n and_o also_o institute_v for_o a_o sign_n of_o the_o covenant_n it_o can_v not_o have_v afford_v any_o great_a assurance_n to_o they_o if_o they_o have_v only_o the_o see_v and_o behold_v of_o it_o which_o be_v all_o that_o be_v to_o be_v do_v in_o this_o sacrament_n to_o see_v nothing_o but_o what_o they_o have_v see_v before_o can_v yield_v but_o small_a comfort_n and_o assurance_n to_o that_o new_a world_n and_o that_o this_o covenant_n have_v a_o further_a mystery_n in_o it_o than_o mere_o outward_a preservation_n from_o another_o deluge_n 37.15_o see_v caryl_n on_o job_n 37.15_o see_v isai_n 54.9_o for_o this_o as_o the_o be_v water_n of_o noah_n unto_o i_o the_o covenant_n of_o my_o peace_n shall_v not_o be_v remove_v the_o rainbow_n therefore_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n hence_o revel_v 4.3_o behold_v a_o throne_n be_v set_v in_o heaven_n and_o one_o sit_v on_o the_o throne_n and_o there_o be_v a_o rainbow_n round_o about_o the_o throne_n type_n confer_v on_o rom._n 5.14_o of_o noah_n as_o a_o personal_a type_n revel_v 10.1_o christ_n the_o angel_n of_o the_o covenant_n be_v describe_v as_o have_v a_o rainbow_n upon_o his_o head_n 3._o he_o enlarge_v their_o provision_n of_o food_n to_o eat_v by_o give_v they_o a_o commission_n to_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o brute_n creature_n gen._n 9.3_o at_o first_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o any_o other_o provision_n but_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o earth_n gen._n 1.29_o but_o there_o be_v need_n of_o some_o further_a supply_n because_o it_o be_v probable_a that_o the_o vigour_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o herb_n and_o plant_n and_o fruit_n thereof_o can_v not_o but_o be_v somewhat_o impair_v and_o decay_v by_o that_o whole_a year_n winter_n therefore_o for_o man_n upon_o a_o religious_a account_n to_o forbid_v the_o eat_n of_o some_o meat_n as_o the_o papist_n forbid_v flesh_n in_o lent_n it_o be_v a_o superstitious_a infringement_n of_o the_o liberty_n here_o grant_v and_o give_v by_o the_o lord_n unto_o all_o the_o son_n of_o noah_n 4._o the_o blood_n be_v whole_o reserve_v and_o except_v gen._n 9.4_o but_o flesh_n with_o the_o life_n thereof_o which_o be_v the_o blood_n thereof_o shall_v you_o not_o eat_v this_o seem_v to_o be_v do_v partly_o upon_o a_o moral_a and_o partly_o upon_o a_o spiritual_a and_o ceremonial_a account_n moral_a for_o man_n health_n and_o to_o prevent_v that_o freity_n and_o savageness_n which_o mankind_n be_v so_o apt_a to_o degenerate_v into_o as_o in_o some_o barbarous_a nation_n they_o will_v drink_v the_o live_a blood_n out_o of_o the_o horse_n they_o ride_v upon_o open_v a_o vein_n with_o a_o instrument_n when_o they_o be_v thirsty_a this_o be_v barbarous_a and_o savage_a and_o this_o prohibition_n here_o give_v exclude_v and_o forbid_v such_o a_o practice_n which_o those_o giant_n of_o wickedness_n before_o the_o flood_n it_o be_v not_o improbable_a but_o that_o to_o other_o barbarous_a and_o rage_a sin_n they_o may_v add_v the_o eat_n of_o live_a creature_n alive_a therefore_o the_o lord_n do_v so_o direct_o and_o express_o interdict_v and_o forbid_v it_o and_o it_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o some_o very_a learned_a man_n that_o the_o eat_n of_o blood_n cold_a and_o dress_v as_o other_o meat_n be_v not_o at_o all_o forbid_a for_o the_o prohibition_n lie_v not_o direct_o against_o blood_n but_o against_o the_o eat_n of_o live_a flesh_n flesh_n animate_v with_o the_o live_a blood_n for_o the_o blood_n be_v the_o seat_n and_o chariot_n of_o the_o life_n and_o vital_a spirit_n some_o think_v it_o be_v do_v upon_o a_o ceremonial_a account_n the_o blood_n be_v reserve_v as_o a_o sacred_a thing_n unto_o the_o lord_n till_o such_o time_n as_o that_o precious_a blood_n be_v shed_v which_o have_v put_v a_o end_n to_o all_o type_n and_o shadow_n this_o be_v express_v levit._n 17.11_o i_o have_v give_v it_o to_o you_o upon_o the_o altar_n to_o make_v a_o atonement_n for_o your_o soul_n for_o it_o be_v the_o blood_n that_o make_v a_o atonement_n for_o the_o soul_n as_o the_o former_a moral_a reason_n be_v express_v v._o 14._o it_o be_v true_a the_o ceremonial_a law_n come_v by_o moses_n but_o the_o meaning_n be_v not_o that_o there_o be_v no_o part_n at_o all_o of_o it_o before_o his_o time_n for_o there_o be_v sacrifice_n from_o the_o fall_n of_o man_n but_o the_o meaning_n be_v that_o moses_n do_v incorporate_a and_o sum_v they_o all_o up_o together_o with_o many_o divine_a enlargement_n and_o addition_n into_o that_o great_a body_n of_o ceremonial_a law_n by_o he_o establish_v and_o settle_v in_o that_o church_n and_o people_n of_o israel_n therefore_o there_o may_v be_v a_o ceremonial_a prohibition_n of_o blood_n even_o from_o noah_n time_n 5._o the_o lord_n now_o give_v unto_o mankind_n that_o great_a ordinance_n of_o magistracy_n gen._n 9.6_o whoso_o shed_v man_n blood_n by_o man_n shall_v his_o blood_n be_v shed_v of_o which_o divine_n say_v true_o that_o it_o be_v remedium_fw-la corruptae_fw-la naturae_fw-la but_o yet_o corrupt_a nature_n so_o far_o as_o appear_v out_o of_o the_o sacred_a history_n never_o have_v the_o use_n and_o benefit_n of_o it_o till_o now_o but_o rather_o on_o the_o contrary_a the_o lord_n secure_v cain_n as_o it_o be_v by_o special_a dispensation_n gen._n 4.15_o the_o government_n of_o the_o world_n before_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v only_o domestical_a and_o paternal_a which_o may_v easy_o be_v parent_n then_o live_v so_o long_o as_o to_o see_v whole_a town_n and_o city_n of_o their_o own_o child_n and_o posterity_n but_o this_o paternal_a way_n of_o government_n be_v so_o mild_a that_o it_o be_v not_o effectual_a and_o sufficient_a to_o restrain_v vice_n and_o wickedness_n but_o it_o grow_v to_o such_o gigantic_a strength_n and_o height_n that_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n to_o cut_v they_o down_o with_o a_o flood_n but_o therefore_o now_o to_o prevent_v the_o like_a degeneracy_n and_o destruction_n the_o lord_n put_v a_o strong_a bridle_n of_o restraint_n upon_o the_o outrageous_a wickedness_n and_o corruption_n of_o man_n nature_n namely_o this_o of_o magistracy_n or_o civil_a government_n whereby_o some_o be_v entrust_v with_o the_o power_n of_o the_o sword_n to_o take_v away_o the_o life_n of_o other_o in_o grosser_n case_n especial_o that_o of_o murder_n 6._o god_n divide_v the_o world_n among_o they_o gen._n 10._o which_o consist_v of_o three_o part_n then_o know_v though_o not_o by_o these_o name_n to_o wit_n asia_n africa_n and_o europe_n whereof_o seem_v posterity_n dwell_v chief_o in_o asia_n cham_n in_o africa_n and_o to_o japhets_n posterity_n europe_n fall_v know_v in_o scripture_n by_o this_o name_n the_o isle_n of_o the_o gentile_n gen._n 10.5_o of_o who_o posterity_n we_o ourselves_o be_v and_o now_o one_o will_v think_v mankind_n be_v happy_a when_o god_n thus_o set_v they_o up_o again_o begin_v with_o they_o upon_o a_o new_a score_n as_o it_o be_v but_o there_o be_v three_o or_o four_o thing_n especial_o that_o do_v ruin_v all_o and_o bring_v this_o dispensation_n to_o a_o end_n 1._o the_o apostasy_n of_o cham_n and_o his_o posterity_n gen._n 9.22_o a_o unnatural_a sin_n to_o despise_v and_o dishonour_v his_o parent_n cor._n calvin_n apud_fw-la wallet_n in_o cor._n and_o himself_o not_o a_o child_n when_o he_o do_v this_o but_o above_o a_o hundred_o year_n old_a ver_fw-la 25._o the_o curse_n be_v thunder_v forth_o against_o canaan_n so_o the_o punishment_n answer_v the_o sin_n cham_n be_v a_o ungracious_a son_n to_o his_o father_n therefore_o he_o have_v a_o curse_a son_n and_o perhaps_o canaan_n may_v be_v present_a and_o partner_n in_o his_o father_n sin_n or_o the_o most_o delightful_a of_o his_o child_n be_v the_o young_a and_o so_o the_o curse_v he_o will_v be_v most_o likely_a to_o pierce_v and_o grieve_v his_o father_n hard_a heart_n and_o it_o may_v be_v so_o express_v for_o the_o great_a comfort_n of_o the_o israelite_n that_o the_o nation_n they_o be_v to_o expel_v be_v a_o generation_n of_o the_o curse_n of_o god_n but_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o i_o be_o himself_o be_v intend_v and_o curse_a in_o that_o curse_n this_o fall_v out_o about_o forty_o year_n as_o some_o reckon_v after_o the_o
true_a religion_n adam_n to_o methuselah_n who_o live_v with_o he_o two_o hundred_o forty_o two_o year_n methuselah_n to_o sem_fw-mi who_o live_v almost_o a_o hundred_o year_n after_o sem_fw-mi be_v bear_v and_o then_o sem_fw-mi to_o isaac_n for_o sem_fw-mi live_v five_o hundred_o and_o two_o year_n after_o the_o flood_n which_o reach_v to_o the_o fifty_o year_n of_o isaac_n and_o then_o all_o the_o world_n have_v but_o one_o language_n whereby_o they_o can_v speak_v and_o communicate_v their_o thought_n to_o whosoever_o they_o will_v yet_o as_o to_o the_o generality_n of_o mankind_n the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n be_v quite_o lose_v and_o forget_v by_o some_o and_o by_o other_o corrupt_v with_o fable_n and_o superstition_n moreover_o the_o life_n of_o man_n come_v now_o to_o be_v much_o shorten_v for_o before_o the_o flood_n they_o live_v eight_o or_o nine_o hundred_o year_n after_o the_o flood_n but_o four_o or_o five_o hundred_o year_n about_o the_o time_n of_o peleg_n when_o the_o tower_n of_o babel_n be_v build_v there_o be_v a_o further_a decurtation_n of_o man_n life_n unto_o two_o hundred_o year_n or_o thereabouts_o and_o last_o in_o moses_n his_o time_n unto_o threescore_o or_o thereabouts_o and_o there_o it_o have_v stand_v ever_o since_o moreover_o there_o be_v a_o confusion_n of_o language_n which_o do_v much_o increase_v the_o darkness_n and_o obstruct_v the_o communication_n and_o diffusion_n of_o light_n among_o they_o the_o way_n of_o oral_a tradition_n be_v a_o very_a insufficient_a way_n and_o find_v by_o experience_n so_o to_o be_v as_o upon_o other_o account_n so_o upon_o these_o occur_v at_o this_o time_n 1._o in_o general_n knowledge_n of_o god_n in_o a_o manner_n lose_v 2._o the_o decurtation_n of_o man_n life_n 3._o through_o the_o confusion_n of_o tongue_n upon_o all_o which_o occurrence_n the_o lord_n think_v it_o fit_a to_o intrust_v his_o truth_n no_o long_o with_o the_o frail_a and_o careless_a memory_n of_o man_n but_o to_o leave_v it_o upon_o record_n in_o write_v a_o much_o safe_a and_o sure_a way_n for_o the_o preservation_n and_o the_o propagation_n of_o it_o there_o be_v a_o threefold_a advantage_n of_o this_o way_n 1._o it_o be_v a_o help_n to_o the_o weakness_n of_o memory_n for_o if_o a_o thing_n be_v write_v there_o it_o be_v and_o a_o man_n may_v recall_v it_o by_o read_v when_o he_o do_v not_o well_o remember_v it_o 2._o for_o the_o further_a propagation_n and_o diffusion_n of_o the_o light_n for_o there_o may_v be_v opportunity_n of_o write_v to_o person_n absent_a and_o and_o in_o after_o time_n who_o may_v read_v when_o they_o have_v not_o opportunity_n of_o hear_v 3._o to_o prevent_v corruption_n in_o the_o way_n of_o oral_a tradition_n some_o may_v say_v one_o thing_n and_o some_o another_o 2._o a_o second_o pre-eminence_n and_o advantage_n of_o this_o dispensation_n above_o the_o former_a be_v this_o that_o now_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o true_a religion_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n be_v settle_v in_o a_o whole_a nation_n and_o people_n by_o divine_a promise_n and_o institution_n whereas_o before_o it_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v only_o in_o family_n and_o congregation_n form_v chief_o according_a to_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n wherein_o the_o ordinance_n of_o worship_n be_v celebrate_v by_o the_o father_n and_o head_n of_o family_n but_o now_o a_o whole_a nation_n be_v make_v the_o testes_fw-la &_o custodes_fw-la of_o it_o the_o witness_n and_o the_o keeper_n of_o it_o as_o a_o depositum_fw-la commit_v to_o their_o trust_n rom._n 3.2_o as_o to_o the_o occasion_n of_o introduce_v this_o new_a dispensation_n they_o be_v partly_o the_o defection_n under_o the_o former_a but_o chief_o the_o lord_n own_o love_n and_o goodness_n for_o he_o have_v engage_v himself_o by_o his_o promise_n and_o by_o his_o oath_n wherein_o he_o have_v pawn_v his_o truth_n and_o faithfulness_n to_o abraham_n isaac_n and_o jacob_n that_o he_o will_v do_v great_a thing_n for_o their_o posterity_n therefore_o he_o be_v say_v to_o remember_v that_o promise_n in_o the_o thing_n he_o do_v for_o israel_n see_v psal_n 105.8_o 9_o 10._o he_o show_v that_o god_n remember_v his_o covenant_n with_o abraham_n isaac_n and_o jacob._n then_o follow_v a_o large_a rehearsal_n of_o his_o dispensation_n towards_o israel_n and_o then_o he_o conclude_v again_o ver_fw-la 42_o 43._o for_o he_o remember_v his_o holy_a promise_n and_o abraham_n his_o servant_n and_o he_o bring_v forth_o his_o people_n with_o joy_n and_o his_o choose_a with_o gladness_n and_o there_o be_v need_n of_o some_o recover_a dispensation_n because_o of_o those_o defection_n that_o have_v be_v from_o under_o the_o grace_n and_o covenant_n make_v with_o abraham_n if_o you_o look_v back_o a_o little_a unto_o abraham_n dispensation_n you_o will_v find_v that_o some_o of_o his_o seed_n fall_v off_o viz._n ishmael_n and_o esau_n and_o the_o seed_n of_o jacob_n when_o they_o be_v in_o egypt_n they_o learn_v too_o much_o of_o their_o manner_n it_o be_v think_v their_o calf_n in_o exod._n 32._o 32.4_o geneva_n note_v on_o exod._n 32.4_o be_v make_v in_o imitation_n of_o the_o egyptian_a idol_n apis_n which_o be_v a_o ox_n they_o smell_v of_o the_o leaven_n of_o egypt_n where_o they_o see_v calf_n ox_n and_o serpent_n worship_v see_v ezek._n 23.8_o neither_o leave_v she_o her_o whoredom_n bring_v from_o egypt_n and_o what_o be_v mean_v by_o this_o be_v more_o clear_o and_o express_o hold_v forth_o ezek._n 20.8_o neither_o do_v they_o forsake_v the_o idol_n of_o egypt_n josh_n 24.14_o put_v away_o the_o god_n which_o your_o father_n serve_v on_o the_o other_o side_n of_o the_o flood_n and_o in_o egypt_n hereupon_o it_o be_v time_n for_o god_n to_o work_v that_o he_o may_v not_o lose_v his_o people_n and_o to_o put_v thing_n into_o some_o better_a way_n and_o so_o he_o bring_v in_o another_o great_a dispensation_n viz._n that_o which_o be_v under_o the_o law_n and_o as_o we_o subdivide_v the_o former_a dispensation_n before_o the_o law_n into_o three_o lesser_a piece_n and_o parcel_n namely_o adam_n noah_n and_o abraham_n dispensation_n so_o we_o must_v subdivide_v this_o also_o into_o some_o lesser_a piece_n this_o whole_a dispensation_n under_o the_o law_n may_v be_v subdivide_v into_o four_o particular_n under_o each_o of_o which_o there_o be_v remarkable_a change_n make_v by_o god_n in_o the_o state_n of_o religion_n and_o of_o his_o church_n and_o people_n 1._o the_o dispensation_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n and_o the_o judge_n 2._o the_o dispensation_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o the_o kingdom_n 3._o that_o sad_a dispensation_n of_o captivity_n in_o babylon_n 4._o the_o dispensation_n of_o the_o second_o temple_n after_o their_o return_n the_o first_o these_o be_v from_o moses_n to_o the_o temple_n the_o second_o from_o the_o temple_n to_o the_o captivity_n in_o babylon_n the_o three_o from_o the_o captivity_n to_o the_o return_n the_o four_o from_o the_o return_n to_o the_o messiah_n 1._o the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o lord_n dispensation_n to_o his_o people_n under_o the_o law_n be_v from_o moses_n to_o the_o build_n of_o the_o temple_n most_o of_o which_o time_n they_o be_v under_o the_o government_n of_o judge_n what_o the_o lord_n do_v for_o they_o and_o how_o and_o what_o he_o speak_v what_o further_a discovery_n of_o himself_o he_o give_v they_o during_o this_o period_n you_o may_v see_v in_o these_o five_o particular_n 1._o the_o lord_n in_o remembrance_n of_o his_o ancient_a promise_n deliver_v they_o out_o of_o egypt_n with_o a_o high_a hand_n and_o with_o a_o outstretch_a arm_n with_o great_a sign_n and_o wonder_n and_o plague_n upon_o pharaoh_n and_o all_o his_o host_n and_o all_o his_o land_n divide_v the_o sea_n before_o they_o the_o history_n of_o all_o which_o be_v record_v in_o the_o book_n of_o exodus_fw-la in_o the_o first_o fifteen_o chapter_n of_o that_o book_n and_o so_o often_o celebrate_v with_o triumph_v praise_n in_o the_o psalm_n and_o prophet_n who_o often_o speak_v of_o all_o his_o wonder_n in_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n which_o it_o be_v think_v be_v within_o two_o month_n before_o their_o departure_n and_o of_o his_o divide_v the_o sea_n of_o edom_n that_o his_o redeem_a might_n pass_v through_o upon_o dry_a ground_n all_o which_o be_v a_o type_n of_o spiritual_a redemption_n also_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o dispensation_n of_o much_o mystery_n and_o glory_n 2._o he_o give_v they_o his_o law_n by_o word_n of_o mouth_n from_o heaven_n and_o in_o write_v in_o the_o table_n of_o stone_n and_o in_o the_o five_o book_n of_o moses_n both_o the_o moral_a judicial_a and_o ceremonial_a law_n the_o moral_a law_n the_o lord_n come_v down_o upon_o mount_n sinai_n in_o much_o majesty_n and_o terror_n with_o a_o host_n of_o angel_n and_o thunder_v forth_o with_o a_o audible_a voice_n from_o heaven_n those_o
the_o divine_a authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n yea_o the_o lord_n raise_v they_o to_o a_o high_a pitch_n of_o reformation_n than_o ever_o nehem._n 9_o they_o keep_v the_o feast_n of_o tabernacle_n so_o as_o it_o have_v not_o be_v keep_v from_o the_o day_n of_o joshua_n doubtless_o david_n and_o other_o reform_v king_n have_v keep_v it_o but_o that_o part_n of_o the_o ordinance_n the_o dwell_n in_o booth_n have_v be_v as_o it_o may_v seem_v omit_v and_o neglect_v by_o they_o another_o corruption_n be_v the_o mixture_n of_o the_o church_n with_o heathen_n by_o strange_a marriage_n ezr._n 9_o and_o nehem_n 10._o and_o the_o samaritan_n those_o mongrel_n will_v have_v intrude_v but_o be_v reject_v ezra_n 4._o thus_o they_o purge_v and_o reform_v themselves_o from_o both_o these_o corrupt_a mixture_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o church_n 5._o and_o last_o the_o old_a tetament_n be_v conclude_v by_o the_o prophet_n malachy_n who_o be_v the_o last_o of_o all_o the_o prophet_n the_o lord_n will_v have_v no_o prophet_n beyond_o the_o first_o time_n of_o the_o second_o temple_n nor_o no_o write_n of_o man_n in_o the_o age_n immediate_o after_o the_o apostle_n immediate_o follow_v the_o gospel_n promulgation_n that_o it_o may_v manifest_v itself_o more_o clear_o by_o its_o own_o own_o light_n to_o be_v supernatural_a this_o period_n viz._n that_o of_o the_o second_o temple_n continue_v four_o hundred_o and_o ninety_o year_n dan._n 9.24_o seventy_o prophetical_a week_n be_v four_o hundred_o and_o ninety_o solar_n year_n now_o such_o a_o people_n thus_o deliver_v and_o restore_v twice_o deliver_v out_o of_o bondage_n first_o out_o of_o egypt_n and_o then_o a_o second_o time_n out_o of_o babylon_n one_o will_v think_v they_o will_v have_v abiden_v with_o the_o lord_n for_o ever_o after_o and_o one_o thing_n they_o do_v learn_v viz._n to_o forsake_v gross_a idolatry_n and_o this_o be_v all_o but_o they_o grow_v more_o rigid_o formal_a and_o exquisite_o hypocritical_a than_o ever_o and_o religion_n run_v out_o into_o sect_n and_o party_n and_o faction_n among_o they_o there_o be_v pharisees_n and_o sadducee_n and_o galilaean_o and_o herodian_o among_o they_o name_n which_o the_o scripture_n mention_n and_o history_n speak_v of_o another_o sect_n call_v the_o essenes_n and_o thus_o it_o be_v with_o they_o when_o our_o lord_n jesus_n come_v in_o the_o flesh_n the_o inward_a and_o spiritual_a part_n of_o godliness_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o that_o which_o be_v true_o so_o be_v in_o a_o very_a great_a measure_n lose_v among_o they_o be_v eat_v out_o partly_o by_o their_o sect_n and_o division_n partly_o by_o their_o rigid_a formality_n and_o hypocrisy_n and_o thence_o at_o last_o the_o lord_n send_v his_o son_n their_o messiah_n so_o long_o promise_v and_o long_v for_o by_o they_o they_o reject_v and_o crucify_v he_o so_o the_o lord_n have_v by_o all_o these_o various_a dispensation_n and_o turn_n of_o his_o hand_n mend_v the_o old_a house_n as_o it_o be_v seven_o time_n over_o he_o resolve_v now_o at_o last_o to_o pull_v it_o down_o for_o all_o these_o legal_a dispensation_n be_v but_o the_o mend_n as_o it_o be_v and_o repair_v of_o the_o old_a house_n but_o the_o gospel_n pull_v it_o quite_o down_o and_o build_v a_o new_a one_o thus_o i_o have_v lead_v you_o through_o the_o several_a time_n and_o season_n wherein_o the_o lord_n speak_v unto_o they_o of_o old_a you_o have_v see_v the_o gradual_a progress_n of_o the_o light_n and_o work_n of_o god_n among_o they_o in_o those_o seven_o piece_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n dispensation_n which_o have_v be_v brief_o run_v through_o that_o which_o follow_v next_o to_o be_v speak_v to_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o the_o point_n why_o the_o lord_n speak_v and_o reveal_v his_o mind_n in_o such_o divers_a way_n and_o manner_n and_o in_o these_o several_a piece_n and_o parcel_n neither_o in_o one_o way_n only_o nor_o at_o one_o time_n quest_n what_o may_v be_v the_o reason_n of_o the_o point_n the_o lord_n can_v have_v speak_v his_o whole_a mind_n at_o once_o in_o one_o way_n and_o at_o one_o time_n therefore_o why_o do_v he_o speak_v in_o such_o divers_a manner_n and_o in_o so_o many_o several_a piece_n and_o parcel_n answ_n although_o it_o be_v a_o sufficient_a general_a account_n to_o say_v that_o this_o or_o that_o be_v best_a because_o god_n will_v it_o for_o he_o do_v all_o thing_n well_o and_o his_o will_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o goodness_n and_o it_o be_v not_o for_o we_o to_o call_v he_o to_o a_o account_n of_o what_o he_o do_v yet_o we_o may_v humble_o and_o modest_o inquire_v into_o the_o reason_n of_o thing_n not_o to_o contend_v he_o with_o for_o do_v so_o for_o that_o be_v profaneness_n but_o to_o understand_v something_o of_o his_o wisdom_n therein_o the_o reason_n therefore_o may_v be_v refer_v to_o two_o head_n 1._o in_o regard_n of_o our_o weakness_n 2._o for_o his_o own_o great_a glory_n i_o shall_v speak_v brief_o unto_o both_o these_o add_v but_o a_o little_a unto_o what_o other_o have_v say_v upon_o this_o subject_a reas_n 1._o in_o regard_n of_o our_o weakness_n the_o lord_n herein_o condescend_v and_o accommodate_v himself_o unto_o we_o you_o may_v see_v his_o condescension_n in_o four_o thing_n 1._o in_o that_o we_o be_v dull_a and_o slow_a of_o understanding_n to_o apprehend_v the_o truth_n therefore_o the_o lord_n illustrate_v the_o same_o thing_n several_a way_n like_o the_o light_n shine_v into_o the_o house_n at_o several_a window_n that_o in_o such_o a_o plenty_n of_o light_n some_o of_o all_o those_o beam_n may_v shine_v into_o our_o heart_n luk._n 24.25_o we_o be_v slow_a of_o heart_n to_o believe_v 2._o we_o be_v but_o narrow-mouthed_a vessel_n not_o able_a to_o receive_v much_o at_o once_o as_o we_o be_v slow_a to_o receive_v any_o thing_n at_o all_o so_o we_o be_v uncapable_a to_o receive_v much_o at_o once_o therefore_o the_o lord_n teach_v we_o here_o a_o little_a and_o there_o a_o little_a a_o little_a to_o adam_n a_o little_a more_o to_o noah_n and_o a_o little_a more_o to_o abraham_n and_o yet_o more_o full_o and_o copious_o to_o moses_n lead_v they_o on_o by_o degree_n as_o they_o be_v able_a that_o so_o man_n in_o several_a age_n may_v know_v what_o their_o father_n do_v and_o something_o more_o isai_n 28.9_o 10_o 13._o loc_n geneva_n note_v in_o loc_n they_o must_v have_v one_o thing_n oftentimes_o tell_v 3._o by_o this_o various_a and_o gradual_a proceed_v god_n do_v prepare_v and_o fit_v his_o people_n by_o weak_a and_o low_a dispensation_n for_o further_a and_o high_a dispensation_n as_o a_o child_n by_o learn_v his_o a._n b._n c._n and_o his_o primer_z be_v fit_v to_o go_v into_o a_o high_a hard_a book_n so_o the_o church_n of_o god_n by_o those_o immediate_a revelation_n and_o vision_n etc._n etc._n so_o frequent_a in_o those_o first_o time_n when_o they_o want_v the_o write_a word_n be_v fit_v to_o receive_v the_o scripture_n with_o the_o more_o desire_n and_o reverence_n and_o faith_n exod._n 19.9_o lo_o i_o come_v unto_o thou_o in_o a_o thick_a cloud_n that_o the_o people_n may_v hear_v when_o i_o speak_v with_o thou_o and_o believe_v thou_o for_o ever_o and_o they_o do_v believe_v he_o ever_o after_o so_o joh._n 9.29_o we_o know_v that_o god_n speak_v unto_o moses_n so_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v exercise_v under_o the_o moysaicall_a pedagogy_n so_o long_o together_o they_o be_v thereby_o prepare_v to_o welcome_v the_o gospel_n more_o glad_o when_o it_o come_v how_o glorious_o and_o joyful_o be_v it_o entertain_v when_o they_o have_v wait_v for_o it_o about_o four_o thousand_o year_n with_o what_o triumphing_n in_o god_n that_o now_o they_o see_v that_o which_o king_n and_o prophet_n and_o righteous_a man_n have_v desire_v to_o see_v but_o it_o have_v not_o be_v grant_v to_o they_o see_v luk._n 10.23_o 24._o that_o which_o all_o the_o prophet_n have_v speak_v of_o since_o the_o world_n begin_v luk._n 1.70_o act._n 3.24_o the_o mystery_n that_o have_v be_v hide_v from_o age_n and_o generation_n col._n 1.26_o 4._o a_o four_o condescension_n of_o the_o lord_n herein_o be_v this_o by_o these_o variety_n of_o dispensation_n the_o lord_n provide_v to_o have_v his_o truth_n set_v on_o with_o all_o kind_n of_o argument_n yea_o with_o argument_n of_o peculiar_a concernment_n and_o suitableness_n to_o take_v with_o we_o as_o moses_n to_o the_o jew_n the_o lord_n make_v not_o this_o covenant_n with_o our_o father_n but_o with_o we_o deut._n 5.3_o and_o manna_n which_o thy_o father_n know_v not_o deut._n 8_o 16._o so_o christ_n joh._n 13.34_o a_o new_a commandment_n give_v i_o unto_o you_o and_o the_o apostle_n 1_o joh._n 2.8_o a_o new_a commandment_n i_o write_v unto_o you_o it_o be_v a_o old_a commandment_n but_o set_v
out_o in_o a_o new_a dress_n give_v forth_o in_o a_o new_a manner_n the_o lord_n adorn_v his_o truth_n with_o new_a ornament_n as_o it_o be_v that_o man_n may_v be_v excite_v to_o inquiry_n and_o affection_n suitable_a hence_o in_o every_o age_n there_o be_v in_o one_o respect_n or_o other_o new_a discovery_n or_o new_a dispensation_n and_o deal_n of_o god_n with_o his_o people_n or_o if_o man_n be_v take_v with_o antiquity_n 1_o joh._n 2.7_o i_o write_v no_o new_a commandment_n but_o a_o old_a commandment_n for_o the_o substance_n of_o thing_n the_o good_a old_a way_n of_o faith_n and_o holiness_n remain_v which_o all_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n have_v go_v to_o heaven_n in_o heb._n 11._o he_o show_v the_o same_o race_n which_o he_o set_v before_o they_o have_v be_v run_v by_o all_o the_o saint_n from_o abel_n cap._n 12.1_o be_v compass_v about_o with_o so_o great_a a_o cloud_n of_o witness_n let_v we_o run_v our_o race_n that_o be_v set_v before_o we_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o exhort_v you_o to_o nothing_o but_o what_o all_o those_o saint_n of_o old_a have_v do_v before_o you_o and_o yet_o ver_fw-la 40._o he_o profess_v god_n have_v better_a thing_n for_o they_o a_o high_a and_o better_a dispensation_n and_o cap._n 12.18_o you_o be_v not_o come_v to_o mount_n sinai_n but_o you_o be_v come_v to_o mount_n zion_n ver_fw-la 22._o here_o he_o fetch_v a_o argument_n from_o this_o variety_n of_o dispensation_n and_o from_o the_o pre-eminence_n of_o that_o which_o they_o wear_v under_o above_o former_a time_n reas_n 2._o for_o his_o own_o great_a glory_n and_o under_o this_o head_n many_o thing_n come_v in_o to_o be_v consider_v this_o various_a and_o gradual_a dispensation_n tend_v to_o his_o great_a glory_n divers_a way_n 1._o that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o harmony_n between_o this_o and_o the_o other_o work_v of_o god_n 2._o to_o show_v the_o inestimable_a worth_n and_o glory_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o his_o son_n 3._o to_o manifest_v the_o variety_n of_o his_o wisdom_n 4._o his_o absolute_a liberty_n and_o 5._o his_o peculiar_a goodness_n 1._o that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o harmony_n between_o this_o and_o the_o other_o work_v of_o god_n it_o be_v so_o in_o other_o work_n of_o god_n as_o well_o as_o in_o his_o speak_n and_o reveal_v of_o his_o mind_n as_o in_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n he_o can_v have_v make_v it_o all_o at_o once_o but_o he_o choose_v rather_o to_o make_v it_o in_o six_o day_n and_o he_o make_v various_a and_o several_a kind_n of_o creature_n therefore_o this_o variety_n of_o administration_n in_o the_o discovery_n of_o himself_o and_o his_o gospel_n be_v suitable_a to_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o work_n wherein_o he_o ever_o delight_n with_o unity_n to_o mix_v variety_n with_o identity_n diversity_n and_o disagreement_n in_o some_o respect_n with_o consent_n in_o other_o so_o we_o see_v in_o the_o outward_a lineament_n of_o man_n face_n so_o in_o the_o inward_a ability_n and_o disposition_n of_o their_o mind_n both_o in_o the_o common_a and_o save_a in_o natural_a and_o spiritual_a endowment_n what_o a_o wonderful_a composition_n there_o be_v and_o how_o great_a variety_n and_o so_o indeed_o in_o every_o creature_n and_o work_n of_o god_n though_o in_o conclusion_n omnia_fw-la fiunt_fw-la ab_fw-la uno_fw-la ad_fw-la unum_fw-la god_n be_v the_o author_n and_o the_o end_n of_o all_o so_o in_o the_o church_n 1_o cor._n 12.4_o 5_o 6._o there_o be_v diversity_n of_o gift_n difference_n of_o administration_n diversity_n of_o operation_n but_o from_o the_o same_o author_n loc_n calv._n in_o loc_n symmetria_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la multiplici_fw-la ut_fw-la ita_fw-la loquar_fw-la unitate_fw-la constat_fw-la the_o symmetry_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v as_o i_o may_v so_o say_v in_o a_o manifold_a unity_n 2._o to_o manifest_v the_o inestimable_a worth_n and_o glory_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o his_o son_n which_o appear_v in_o this_o in_o that_o it_o be_v attend_v with_o such_o a_o multitude_n of_o mean_n of_o divers_a kind_n for_o the_o dispensation_n of_o it_o that_o so_o many_o ordinance_n providence_n person_n and_o thing_n in_o several_a age_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v all_o be_v subservient_fw-fr to_o the_o exhibition_n of_o this_o one_o mystery_n of_o christ_n and_o redemption_n by_o he_o this_o show_v the_o glory_n of_o it_o col._n 1.27_o 3._o to_o manifest_v the_o variety_n of_o his_o wisdom_n that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d variegata_fw-la sapientia_fw-la it_o be_v like_o a_o party_n colour_a garment_n ephes_n 3.10_o as_o in_o the_o work_n of_o creation_n and_o providence_n so_o it_o be_v in_o the_o dispensation_n of_o his_o grace_n the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n can_v be_v sufficient_o manifest_v in_o any_o one_o or_o in_o a_o few_o thing_n or_o in_o one_o manner_n of_o work_v and_o therefore_o it_o refract_v itself_o into_o many_o parcel_n and_o scatter_v its_o beam_n every_o manner_n of_o way_n that_o all_o put_v together_o may_v argue_v unto_o man_n the_o inexhaustible_a depth_n and_o infinite_a largeness_n thereof_o hence_o he_o have_v find_v out_o many_o way_n and_o mean_n to_o convey_v the_o same_o grace_n and_o every_o several_a manner_n have_v some_o peculiar_a beam_n of_o wisdom_n and_o worth_n in_o it_o this_o great_a variety_n and_o change_n of_o his_o dispensation_n be_v not_o because_o in_o process_n of_o time_n god_n find_v out_o a_o better_a way_n and_o so_o relinquish_v the_o old_a as_o in_o the_o work_n of_o creation_n he_o do_v not_o profit_n by_o experience_n though_o he_o make_v man_n last_o the_o most_o perfect_a creature_n last_o for_o the_o inequality_n and_o degree_n of_o thing_n come_v from_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n as_o well_o as_o the_o divers_a kind_n of_o they_o and_o every_o thing_n be_v best_a in_o its_o place_n and_o kind_a and_o proportion_n to_o the_o whole_a though_o not_o simple_o and_o in_o itself_o it_o be_v best_a that_o in_o a_o body_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o foot_n as_o well_o as_o a_o head_n though_o simple_o and_o in_o itself_o the_o head_n be_v more_o excellent_a the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n appear_v not_o only_o in_o the_o individual_a nature_n of_o thing_n but_o in_o their_o reference_n and_o proportion_n to_o other_o thing_n and_o to_o the_o whole_a whereof_o they_o be_v part_n so_o it_o be_v better_a and_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n appear_v more_o in_o that_o there_o be_v both_o a_o legal_a and_o a_o gospel_n dispensation_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o benefit_n though_o the_o gospel_n dispensation_n be_v in_o itself_o far_o the_o more_o excellent_a therefore_o this_o be_v a_o three_o beam_n of_o his_o glory_n that_o shine_v forth_o herein_o viz._n his_o manifold_a wisdom_n as_o there_o be_v infinite_a wisdom_n in_o every_o thing_n god_n do_v so_o he_o will_v have_v we_o see_v it_o 4._o this_o variety_n of_o dispensation_n manifest_v the_o lord_n absolute_a freedom_n and_o liberty_n and_o sovereignty_n in_o the_o use_n of_o mean_n and_o instrument_n that_o he_o be_v not_o tie_v to_o any_o of_o they_o he_o can_v work_v by_o little_a or_o by_o great_a mean_n by_o few_o or_o many_o he_o can_v dispense_v the_o same_o grace_n to_o his_o church_n either_o in_o a_o family-way_n or_o in_o a_o nation_n or_o in_o all_o nation_n for_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v first_o a_o family_n then_o in_o populo_fw-la israelitico_fw-la and_o now_o in_o populo_fw-la catholico_fw-la he_o can_v reveal_v himself_o either_o by_o ordinary_a or_o extraordinary_a person_n either_o in_o a_o more_o immediate_a way_n or_o in_o a_o mediate_a way_n he_o have_v not_o limit_v himself_o to_o one_o way_n or_o time_n or_o manner_n of_o speak_v lest_o we_o shall_v ascribe_v the_o glory_n to_o the_o mean_n to_o the_o tool_n rather_o than_o the_o bless_a workman_n and_o author_n therefore_o he_o be_v please_v ever_o and_o anon_o to_o change_v the_o mean_n to_o break_v his_o tool_n as_o it_o be_v and_o throw_v they_o away_o and_o make_v new_a one_o hence_o if_o man_n begin_v to_o think_v that_o a_o temple_n at_o jerusalem_n have_v any_o salvation_n in_o it_o he_o will_v burn_v it_o up_o and_o be_v worship_v in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n in_o every_o cottage_n as_o joh._n 4._o pure_a incense_n every_o where_o mal._n 1.11_o 5._o the_o five_o beam_n of_o divine_a glory_n that_o shine_v forth_o in_o this_o variety_n of_o administration_n be_v this_o the_o glory_n of_o peculiar_a goodness_n which_o the_o lord_n will_v receive_v by_o this_o mean_n from_o every_o saint_n of_o he_o according_a to_o his_o peculiar_a deal_n with_o he_o some_o will_v bless_v he_o for_o multitude_n and_o excellency_n of_o mean_n other_o will_v admire_v his_o power_n and_o grace_n in_o work_v by_o small_a and_o weak_a mean_n some_o will_v praise_v he_o for_o one_o kind_n of_o
of_o your_o prayer_n that_o you_o will_v remember_v i_o to_o the_o lord_n that_o he_o will_v carry_v i_o through_o this_o work_n that_o he_o will_v enlighten_v and_o enable_v i_o by_o his_o spirit_n to_o speak_v unto_o they_o with_o clear_a light_n and_o not_o only_o so_o as_o may_v be_v clear_a and_o convince_a to_o my_o own_o conscience_n and_o judgement_n but_o with_o such_o evidence_n of_o light_n as_o may_v be_v satisfy_v and_o illuminate_v to_o you_o also_o even_o in_o the_o evidence_n and_o demonstration_n of_o his_o spirit_n some_o have_v not_o unfit_o call_v the_o ceremonial_a law_n one_o of_o the_o rich_a cabinet_n of_o divinity_n full_a of_o inestimable_a jewel_n but_o many_o thing_n in_o their_o religion_n will_v seem_v strange_a and_o uncouth_a and_o useless_a if_o we_o consider_v they_o without_o their_o scope_n and_o meaning_n all_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n if_o a_o man_n know_v not_o the_o meaning_n of_o it_o look_n like_o a_o heap_n of_o unprofitable_a burden_n the_o temple_n appear_v but_o like_o a_o shambles_n or_o butcher_n slaughter_v house_n and_o the_o priesthood_n a_o vain_a &_o useless_a occupation_n but_o consider_v they_o in_o their_o sense_n and_o meaning_n and_o every_o thing_n be_v full_a of_o light_n and_o glory_n a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o scripture_n especial_o the_o old_a testament_n exodus_fw-la and_o leviticus_n and_o other_o place_n will_v be_v like_o a_o seal_a book_n unto_o you_o if_o you_o have_v not_o some_o insight_n into_o the_o type_n but_o if_o the_o lord_n give_v you_o a_o little_a insight_n into_o they_o you_o will_v read_v the_o old_a testament_n with_o more_o profit_n and_o spiritual_a understanding_n for_o the_o prophet_n do_v comment_n upon_o they_o yea_o so_o do_v the_o apostle_n also_o and_o indeed_o the_o whole_a new_a testament_n be_v a_o large_a and_o full_a exposition_n of_o the_o type_n if_o you_o ask_v how_o may_v we_o so_o search_v and_o look_v into_o they_o as_o to_o understand_v they_o and_o profit_n by_o they_o take_v but_o three_o rule_n for_o this_o and_o i_o conclude_v rule_n 1._o search_v the_o scripture_n joh._n 5.39_o for_o they_o be_v they_o which_o testify_v of_o i_o say_v christ_n the_o scripture_n be_v the_o best_a interpreter_n of_o itself_o we_o can_v judge_v of_o these_o legal_a shadow_n but_o by_o scripture-light_n if_o either_o express_a word_n or_o change_v of_o name_n or_o a_o clear_a analogy_n and_o proportion_n do_v appear_v these_o be_v intimation_n of_o the_o mind_n of_o god_n that_o such_o thing_n be_v type_n go_v no_o further_o than_o we_o see_v the_o scripture_n go_v before_o we_o rule_n 2._o study_v the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n faedus_fw-la gratiae_fw-la clavis_fw-la totius_fw-la scripturae_fw-la look_v diligent_o into_o the_o gospel_n get_v a_o clear_a and_o spiritual_a insight_n and_o understanding_n into_o that_o this_o be_v the_o best_a help_n to_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o type_n for_o he_o that_o well_o understand_v the_o antitype_n will_v more_o easy_o and_o ready_o discern_v the_o analogy_n and_o see_v the_o resemblance_n it_o have_v with_o the_o type_n rule_v 3_o as_o you_o find_v the_o lord_n let_v in_o any_o thing_n of_o further_a light_n into_o your_o mind_n be_v sure_a you_o act_n faith_n and_o exercise_v grace_n with_o renew_a vigour_n upon_o those_o truth_n and_o mystery_n as_o you_o find_v any_o beam_n of_o further_a light_n come_v in_o concern_v they_o if_o a_o man_n have_v all_o knowledge_n and_o understand_v all_o mystery_n and_o have_v not_o fath_n and_o love_n what_o be_v he_o the_o better_a for_o his_o light_n 1_o cor._n 13.12_o when_o you_o see_v thing_n more_o clear_o and_o full_o you_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o believe_v more_o strong_o and_o to_o grow_v in_o grace_n as_o you_o grow_v in_o light_n quest_n why_o the_o lord_n speak_v so_o much_o in_o this_o way_n by_o type_n and_o shadow_n answ_n something_o may_v be_v gather_v as_o to_o this_o out_o of_o what_o be_v former_o speak_v in_o general_a concern_v the_o reason_n of_o the_o lord_n use_v so_o great_a variety_n of_o dispensation_n from_o that_o text_n heb._n 1.1_o therefore_o i_o shall_v but_o touch_v upon_o some_o few_o thing_n now_o and_o that_o very_o brief_o r._n 1._o there_o be_v a_o general_a suitableness_n in_o such_o a_o way_n of_o speak_v unto_o man_n nature_n as_o a_o sensitive_a creature_n consist_v of_o a_o body_n as_o well_o as_o a_o soul_n hence_o in_o all_o time_n and_o age_n even_o before_o sin_n enter_v the_o lord_n give_v unto_o mankind_n some_o outward_a and_o sensible_a thing_n to_o be_v sign_n and_o representation_n of_o spiritual_a thing_n hence_o be_v these_o two_o sacramental_a tree_n the_o tree_n of_o life_n and_o the_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_n and_o now_o much_o more_o since_o the_o fall_n man_n be_v fall_v much_o low_a have_v great_a need_n of_o such_o instruction_n man_n be_v not_o only_o a_o sensitive_a but_o a_o sense_n love_v creature_n r._n 2._o it_o be_v particular_o suitable_a to_o that_o infant_n age_n and_o state_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v suitable_a to_o their_o nonage_n to_o be_v teach_v by_o such_o visible_a and_o carnal_a thing_n the_o whole_a way_n of_o god_n dispensation_n 11._o see_v galv_n instit_fw-la l._n 2._o c._n 11._o s_o 1_o 11._o both_o god_n blessing_n and_o judgement_n be_v much_o more_o external_a and_o sensible_a than_o they_o be_v now_o child_n must_v have_v their_o a._n b._n c._n weak_a and_o rudimental_a instruction_n these_o be_v call_v element_n or_o rudiment_n yea_o weak_a and_o beggarly_a rudiment_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d gal._n 4.9_o tota_n legis_fw-la oeconomia_fw-la veluti_fw-la rudis_fw-la quaedam_fw-la erat_fw-la disciplina_fw-la rudibus_fw-la conveniens_fw-la beza_n in_o gal._n 4.3_o like_o a_o hornbook_n to_o a_o child_n r._n 3._o that_o they_o to_o who_o it_o be_v not_o give_v may_v not_o understand_v r._n 4._o that_o his_o people_n may_v so_o and_o understand_v the_o better_a these_o two_o reason_n be_v assign_v by_o christ_n himself_o for_o his_o own_o teach_n so_o much_o by_o parable_n and_o there_o be_v some_o affinity_n between_o a_o type_n and_o a_o parable_n as_o you_o hear_v the_o last_o time_n matth._n 13.11_o 13._o why_o speak_v thou_o to_o they_o in_o parable_n because_o it_o be_v give_v to_o you_o to_o know_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o because_o they_o see_v see_v not_o etc._n etc._n similitude_n not_o understand_v be_v riddle_n and_o cloud_n of_o darkness_n upon_o the_o understanding_n but_o if_o once_o interpret_v and_o understand_v they_o be_v like_o bright_a candle_n they_o give_v a_o clear_a light_n comparata_fw-la etiam_fw-la ficta_fw-la arguunt_fw-la fidemque_fw-la faciunt_fw-la it_o be_v not_o a_o true_a and_o sound_a rule_n that_o of_o the_o schoolman_n theologia_n symbolica_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la argumentativa_fw-la what!_o shall_v we_o say_v that_o all_o the_o parable_n of_o our_o saviour_n do_v argue_v nothing_o when_o indeed_o they_o do_v not_o only_o argue_v but_o demonstrate_v and_o that_o so_o as_o do_v convince_v and_o cut_v the_o heart_n sometime_o of_o his_o great_a enemy_n and_o opposer_n be_v not_o nathan_n parable_n argumentative_a yea_o demonstrative_a and_o convict_v unto_o david_n their_o rule_n may_v be_v true_a concern_v their_o own_o allegorical_a sense_n and_o mystical_a froth_n which_o may_v be_v find_v in_o their_o interpretation_n but_o concern_v scripture-type_n it_o be_v most_o false_a you_o have_v see_v the_o nature_n of_o a_o type_n what_o it_o be_v and_o some_o short_a hint_n of_o reason_n of_o the_o lord_n speak_v this_o way_n we_o shall_v now_o enter_v into_o particular_n and_o go_v through_o the_o type_n and_o open_a to_o you_o as_o the_o lord_n shall_v enable_v something_a of_o the_o gospel-truths_n and_n mystery_n adumbrate_v and_o shadow_v forth_o by_o they_o depend_v upon_o the_o help_n and_o assistance_n of_o he_o of_o who_o we_o be_v to_o speak_v now_o the_o first_o and_o most_o general_a distribution_n of_o they_o be_v into_o type_n personal_a and_o type_n real_a holy_a person_n and_o holy_a thing_n the_o term_n of_o which_o distinction_n be_v so_o plain_a that_o it_o need_v no_o further_a explication_n therefore_o we_o shall_v not_o make_v any_o tarry_n here_o you_o know_v the_o difference_n between_o person_n and_o thing_n personal_a type_n be_v such_o as_o adam_n noah_n david_n and_o other_o real_a type_n be_v the_o temple_n the_o ark_n the_o manna_n the_o sacrifice_n and_o such_o like_a whereof_o hereafter_o we_o shall_v begin_v with_o the_o personal_a type_n and_o they_o may_v be_v subdivide_v into_o two_o sort_n 1._o individual_a person_n 2._o typical_a rank_n and_o order_n of_o person_n which_o we_o may_v call_v religious_a order_n such_o as_o the_o priest_n the_o nazarite_n etc._n etc._n 1._o typical_a individual_a person_n concern_v these_o there_o be_v some_o
to_o be_v a_o multitude_n of_o little_a star_n adam_n be_v a_o type_n of_o christ_n in_o regard_n of_o his_o headship_n and_o influence_n enoch_n a_o type_n of_o his_o ascension_n into_o heaven_n noah_n of_o his_o preach_a and_o save_v the_o church_n by_o the_o covenant_n and_o water_n of_o baptism_n melchizedek_n be_v a_o shadow_n of_o the_o excellency_n and_o eternity_n of_o his_o person_n and_o of_o his_o priesthood_n and_o kingdom_n know_v these_o thing_n meditate_v and_o consider_v they_o more_o thorough_o and_o improve_v christ_n in_o these_o discovery_n for_o your_o spiritual_a good_a consider_v he_o as_o a_o common_a person_n stand_v in_o our_o stead_n as_o a_o prophet_n priest_n and_o king_n as_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n as_o the_o saviour_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v his_o body_n use_v 2._o be_v exhort_v to_o examine_v yourselves_o and_o try_v which_o of_o the_o two_o adam_n you_o be_v under_o for_o there_o be_v but_o two_o man_n in_o the_o world_n the_o first_o and_o second_o adam_n thou_o be_v a_o member_n of_o one_o of_o they_o adam_n and_o christ_n divide_v the_o whole_a world_n quest_n how_o may_v we_o know_v whether_o we_o be_v under_o the_o first_o or_o the_o second_o adam_n answ_n take_v these_o trial_n 1._o what_o birth_n have_v thou_o only_o the_o natural_a or_o spiritual_a generation_n be_v thou_o only_o bear_v or_o new_o bear_v for_o they_o that_o come_v only_o from_o adam_n by_o natural_a generation_n belong_v to_o he_o as_o the_o first_o adam_n they_o that_o come_v of_o christ_n by_o spiritual_a regeneration_n be_v the_o seed_n of_o christ_n and_o belong_v to_o he_o as_o the_o second_o adam_n what_o experience_n have_v thou_o have_v of_o this_o great_a work_n nicodemus_n though_o a_o doctor_n in_o israel_n understand_v little_a of_o it_o 2._o what_o covenant_n do_v thy_o soul_n cleave_v to_o and_o act_n under_o the_o rule_n and_o influence_n of_o work_n or_o grace_n work_n be_v the_o first_o adam_n covenant_n but_o grace_n be_v the_o covenant_n of_o the_o second_o adam_n to_o go_v forth_o in_o a_o man_n own_o strength_n to_o expect_v acceptance_n in_o his_o own_o worth_n this_o be_v a_o first_o covenant_n spirit_n a_o sign_n thou_o grow_v upon_o the_o old_a stock_n upon_o the_o root_n of_o old_a adam_n but_o to_o live_v in_o a_o continual_a dependence_n upon_o free_a grace_n for_o every_o thing_n the_o free_a grace_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n this_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o second_o covenant_n and_o become_v the_o son_n and_o branch_n of_o the_o second_o adam_n though_o a_o godly_a man_n may_v for_o a_o fit_a turn_n aside_o to_o the_o old_a covenant_n as_o abraham_n do_v to_o hagar_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o his_o way_n it_o be_v not_o his_o spirit_n to_o do_v so_o and_o thence_o he_o be_v never_o at_o rest_n till_o he_o return_v to_o have_v his_o dependence_n and_o rest_n on_o christ_n again_o the_o spirit_n of_o one_o under_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v to_o have_v no_o confidence_n in_o the_o flesh_n but_o to_o have_v his_o rest_n and_o rejoice_v in_o jesus_n christ_n phil._n 3.3_o 3._o what_o communication_n who_o influence_n do_v thou_o receive_v every_o branch_n receive_v from_o its_o root_n the_o stream_n from_o its_o fountain_n do_v thou_o receive_v the_o communication_n of_o the_o first_o or_o of_o the_o second_o adam_n this_o will_v show_v who_o thou_o be_v and_o to_o who_o thou_o do_v belong_v you_o have_v hear_v what_o it_o be_v that_o each_o of_o they_o do_v communicate_v that_o old_a tree_n bear_v no_o good_a fruit_n at_o all_o be_v thou_o under_o the_o power_n of_o sin_n and_o death_n or_o under_o the_o power_n of_o righteousness_n and_o life_n sin_n and_o death_n reign_v in_o the_o posterity_n of_o the_o first_o adam_n but_o righteousness_n reign_v by_o grace_n unto_o eternal_a life_n in_o the_o posterity_n of_o the_o second_o adam_n rom._n 5.21_o 2_o cor._n 5.17_o if_o any_o man_n be_v in_o christ_n he_o be_v a_o new_a creature_n use_v 3_o here_o be_v comfort_n to_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o second_o adam_n against_o the_o present_a trouble_n they_o be_v under_o there_o be_v chief_o three_o complaint_n and_o trouble_n of_o god_n people_n under_o all_o which_o here_o be_v matter_n of_o support_n and_o relief_n 1._o thou_o be_v here_o upon_o earth_n christ_n the_o head_n in_o heaven_n but_o his_o poor_a saint_n and_o member_n here_o below_o but_o remember_v whither_o jesus_n the_o forerunner_n be_v enter_v for_o we_o as_o sure_o as_o enoch_n body_n be_v in_o heaven_n or_o elijah_n by_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o ascension_n of_o who_o they_o be_v shadow_n so_o sure_o shall_v thy_o and_o i_o ascend_v thither_o if_o we_o be_v his_o though_o we_o sleep_v in_o the_o dust_n for_o a_o time_n as_o chir_v himself_o also_o do_v 2._o but_o while_o in_o this_o low_a valley_n the_o flood_n of_o great_a water_n be_v ready_a to_o overwhelm_v we_o the_o flood_n of_o persecution_n affliction_n desertion_n the_o overflow_a scourge_n of_o common_a calamity_n which_o put_v many_o of_o god_n people_n to_o some_o care_n and_o fear_n but_o as_o to_o this_o consider_v that_o true_a noah_n the_o lord_n provide_v a_o ark_n of_o safety_n for_o his_o people_n that_o the_o flood_n of_o great_a water_n may_v not_o overwhelm_v they_o psal_n 32.6_o see_z psal_n 124_o 15_a if_o it_o have_v not_o be_v the_o lord_n who_o be_v on_o our_o side_n if_o it_o have_v not_o be_v the_o lord_n who_o be_v on_o our_o side_n when_o man_n rise_v up_o against_o we_o then_o the_o water_n have_v overwhelm_v we_o the_o stream_n have_v go_v over_o our_o soul_n then_o the_o proud_a water_n have_v go_v over_o our_o soul_n but_o 3._o thou_o be_v a_o poor_a unworthy_a creature_n and_o god_n be_v angry_a or_o appear_v angry_a and_o how_o can_v i_o expect_v such_o salvation_n from_o he_o who_o have_v sin_v against_o he_o so_o as_o i_o have_v do_v to_o this_o remember_v what_o a_o high_a priest_n you_o have_v even_o jesus_n who_o be_v make_v a_o high_a priest_n for_o ever_o after_o the_o order_n of_o melchizedek_n therefore_o let_v we_o come_v with_o boldness_n to_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n it_o be_v the_o apostle_n inference_n heb._n 4.15_o 16._o the_o apostle_n say_v of_o melchizedek_n heb._n 7.4_o consider_v how_o great_a this_o man_n be_v it_o may_v be_v say_v much_o more_o of_o christ_n consider_v how_o great_a your_o high_a priest_n be_v how_o little_a soever_o thou_o be_v in_o thy_o own_o eye_n how_o unworthy_a soever_o the_o greatness_n and_o glory_n of_o your_o redeemer_n be_v enough_o to_o remove_v all_o discouragement_n some_o entrance_n beloved_n have_v be_v make_v into_o the_o personal_a type_n we_o be_v upon_o the_o individual_a person_n that_o be_v type_n before_o the_o law_n whereof_o eight_o be_v name_v adam_n enoch_n noah_n melchizedek_n abraham_n isaac_n jacob_n and_o joseph_n whereof_o only_o two_o have_v be_v speak_v to_o viz._n first_o adam_n second_o enoch_n we_o shall_v now_o proceed_v to_o the_o rest_n 3._o the_o three_o be_v noah_n who_o we_o do_v but_o touch_v upon_o the_o last_o time_n but_o shall_v endeavour_v now_o to_o clear_v it_o more_o full_o the_o story_n of_o noah_n be_v write_v in_o the_o 6_o 7_o 8_o and_o 9_o chapter_n of_o genesis_n and_o so_o famous_a it_o be_v among_o his_o posterity_n that_o the_o heathen_a have_v some_o break_a remembrance_n and_o tradition_n of_o it_o they_o have_v hear_v of_o a_o flood_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n ovid_n speak_v of_o they_o both_o in_o his_o metamorphosis_n and_o their_o bacchus_n the_o very_a name_n with_o a_o little_a alteration_n of_o the_o letter_n come_v from_o noah_n noachus_n boachus_n and_o janus_n from_o the_o hebrew_n jajin_n vinum_fw-la somewhat_o they_o have_v hear_v as_o it_o seem_v about_o his_o plant_n a_o vinyard_n and_o make_v wine_n that_o this_o history_n of_o noah_n have_v a_o typical_a respect_n you_o may_v see_v in_o 1_o pet._n 3.20_o 21._o in_o what_o respect_n be_v he_o a_o type_n in_o two_o thing_n chief_o 1._o in_o regard_n of_o his_o preach_v 2._o his_o save_v his_o household_n in_o the_o ark._n 1._o in_o regard_n of_o his_o preach_a he_o be_v a_o preacher_n of_o righteousness_n 2_o pet._n 2.5_o he_o give_v warning_n to_o the_o secure_a world_n for_o a_o hundred_o and_o twenty_o year_n together_o both_o by_o his_o word_n and_o action_n every_o stroke_n in_o the_o build_n of_o the_o ark_n have_v a_o voice_n and_o be_v a_o alarm_n to_o the_o world_n every_o day_n so_o christ_n who_o do_v preach_v by_o his_o spirit_n in_o the_o ministry_n of_o noah_n 1_o pet._n 3.19_o 20._o and_o when_o he_o come_v in_o the_o flesh_n he_o do_v preach_v and_o bring_v in_o everlasting_a righteousness_n dan._n 9.24_o and_o he_o have_v preach_v by_o
when_o he_o cause_v they_o to_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o his_o love_a kindness_n and_o shed_v abroad_o his_o love_n in_o their_o heart_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 4._o joseph_n supply_v all_o their_o want_n make_v provision_n for_o they_o every_o way_n he_o give_v they_o their_o corn_n without_o take_v their_o money_n wash_v they_o set_v they_o at_o his_o table_n and_o feed_v they_o gen._n 43.16_o 33_o 34._o give_v they_o victual_n and_o chariot_n for_o their_o journey_n with_o a_o charge_n not_o to_o fall_v out_o by_o the_o way_n chap._n 45.19_o 24._o and_o final_o place_v they_o in_o goshen_n in_o the_o best_a of_o the_o land_n there_o to_o dwell_v till_o they_o shall_v go_v to_o canaan_n the_o land_n of_o promise_n cap._n 47.11_o jesus_n christ_n do_v all_o this_o in_o a_o high_a way_n he_o give_v we_o all_o the_o good_a we_o need_v and_o that_o free_o without_o money_n or_o without_o price_n he_o wash_v and_o cleanse_v we_o inward_o by_o his_o spirit_n as_o well_o as_o outward_o by_o the_o water_n of_o baptism_n feed_v we_o at_o his_o table_n not_o only_o with_o bodily_a but_o with_o spiritual_a food_n give_v we_o his_o ordinance_n as_o chariot_n of_o salvation_n to_o bring_v we_o to_o himself_o and_o sign_n and_o seal_n of_o his_o love_n to_o we_o and_o of_o our_o love_n to_o he_o and_o to_o one_o another_o it_o be_v his_o great_a commandment_n to_o his_o disciple_n to_o love_v one_o another_o and_o final_o he_o plant_v we_o in_o goshen_n here_o in_o a_o state_n of_o light_n and_o grace_n till_o we_o come_v to_o the_o heavenly_a canaan_n to_o a_o state_n of_o glory_n thus_o do_v our_o true_a joseph_n provide_v for_o we_o 5._o yet_o after_o all_o this_o they_o have_v some_o secret_a fear_n and_o doubt_n of_o his_o love_n whereupon_o they_o seek_v pardon_n of_o their_o former_a sin_n but_o he_o give_v they_o renew_v assurance_n of_o it_o to_o quiet_a their_o fear_n and_o settle_v their_o doubt_a thought_n gen._n 50.15_o 21._o through_o the_o remembrance_n of_o their_o own_o gild_n and_o sin_n against_o he_o so_o poor_a soul_n when_o christ_n have_v speak_v peace_n yet_o there_o be_v oftentimes_o some_o secret_a fear_n and_o doubt_n remain_v or_o return_v upon_o they_o again_o after_o all_o his_o appearance_n when_o he_o appear_v unto_o they_o again_o in_o gallilee_n as_o matth._n 28.17_o it_o be_v say_v and_o when_o they_o see_v he_o they_o worship_v he_o but_o some_o doubt_v but_o in_o such_o as_o be_v the_o lord_n these_o fear_n and_o doubt_v set_v they_o upon_o the_o renew_a exercise_n of_o grace_n reflect_v and_o search_v their_o own_o heart_n and_o way_n and_o seek_v pardon_n of_o former_a sin_n and_o in_o this_o way_n the_o lord_n renew_v his_o love_n and_o give_v they_o new_a and_o fresh_a evidence_n and_o further_a assurance_n of_o it_o and_o bid_v they_o fear_v not_o and_o so_o quiet_v their_o heart_n again_o as_o joseph_n do_v his_o brethren_n who_o be_v the_o type_n or_o figure_n of_o he_o that_o be_v to_o come_v rom._n 5.14_o 1667._o aug._n 22._o sept._n 5._o 1667._o the_o individual_a person_n that_o be_v type_n of_o christ_n have_v be_v refer_v unto_o two_o class_n 1._o such_o as_o be_v before_o the_o law_n 2._o such_o as_o be_v under_o the_o law_n the_o typical_a person_n that_o be_v before_o the_o law_n have_v be_v speak_v to_o we_o be_v now_o to_o proceed_v as_o the_o lord_n shall_v enable_v unto_o typical_a person_n under_o the_o law_n and_o they_o be_v many_o and_o divers_a i_o shall_v not_o mention_v all_o but_o only_o as_o in_o the_o former_a sort_n some_o of_o the_o chief_a and_o most_o illustrious_a of_o they_o and_o because_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o matter_n will_v not_o only_o bear_v it_o but_o do_v partly_o lead_v unto_o it_o none_o of_o they_o give_v a_o full_a and_o perfect_a representation_n of_o the_o messiah_n and_o there_o be_v something_o of_o connexion_n remarkable_a in_o the_o history_n and_o action_n of_o divers_a of_o they_o i_o shall_v therefore_o put_v they_o together_o in_o pair_n or_o in_o several_a conjunction_n and_o constellation_n as_o it_o be_v whereby_o they_o will_v yield_v the_o great_a lustre_n and_o give_v a_o more_o clear_a and_o full_a representation_n of_o that_o glorious_a person_n who_o the_o lord_n ordain_v and_o design_v they_o to_o represent_v like_o the_o galaxia_fw-la in_o the_o heaven_n which_o philosopher_n conceive_v to_o be_v a_o conjunction_n or_o conglobation_n of_o many_o lesser_a star_n shine_v together_o which_o give_v that_o lustre_n which_o we_o call_v the_o via_fw-la lactea_fw-la the_o milky_a way_n in_o the_o heaven_n the_o conjoin_v or_o put_v of_o they_o thus_o together_o will_v be_v some_o help_n both_o to_o your_o uerstanding_n and_o memory_n now_o there_o be_v four_o eminent_a conjunction_n or_o constellation_n as_o it_o be_v for_o i_o know_v not_o well_o what_o fit_a word_n to_o express_v it_o by_o of_o typical_a person_n who_o shine_v like_o bright_a star_n in_o the_o night_n in_o those_o dark_a time_n under_o the_o law_n before_o the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n himself_o arise_v with_o light_n and_o heal_n in_o his_o wing_n the_o first_o be_v moses_n and_o josuah_n whereof_o the_o one_o deliver_v they_o out_o of_o egypt_n the_o other_o bring_v they_o into_o canaan_n a_o shadow_n both_o of_o the_o evil_n we_o be_v save_v from_o and_o of_o the_o good_a we_o be_v possess_v of_o by_o he_o who_o be_v the_o true_a moses_n and_o josuah_n the_o second_o constellation_n or_o conglobation_n of_o typical_a person_n be_v sampson_z david_n and_o solomon_n all_o which_o three_o put_v together_o gives_z a_o bright_a and_o glorious_a representation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n samson_n in_o his_o death_n and_o suffering_n david_n in_o his_o victory_n and_o conquest_n solomon_n in_o the_o peace_n and_o quiet_a establishment_n of_o his_o kingdom_n the_o three_o be_v elijah_n elisha_n and_o jonah_n three_o prophet_n the_o first_o whereof_o be_v a_o illustrious_a type_n of_o christ_n ascension_n the_o second_o of_o the_o continuance_n of_o his_o presence_n and_o spirit_n in_o his_o apostle_n and_o minister_n ever_o since_o for_o the_o spirit_n of_o elijah_n do_v rest_n upon_o elisha_n and_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o procure_a cause_n both_o of_o his_o ascension_n and_o the_o effusion_n of_o his_o spirit_n be_v shadow_v forth_o in_o jonah_n the_o four_o and_o last_o that_o i_o shall_v speak_v to_o be_v zerubbabel_n and_o jehoshuah_n one_o whereof_o be_v the_o prince_n and_o the_o other_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o both_o rebuilder_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o restorer_n of_o the_o collapse_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o those_o time_n 1._o first_o then_o for_o moses_n and_o joshuah_n the_o one_o as_o i_o say_v deliver_v they_o out_o of_o egypt_n the_o other_o bring_v they_o into_o canaan_n and_o so_o shadow_v forth_o both_o our_o deliverance_n from_o spiritual_a bondage_n and_o misery_n and_o the_o bring_n of_o we_o into_o a_o state_n of_o spiritual_a rest_n and_o happiness_n by_o jesus_n christ_n there_o be_v a_o prefiguration_n of_o the_o former_a in_o moses_n and_o of_o the_o latter_a in_o joshuah_n this_o moses_n the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o he_o as_o the_o great_a person_n upon_o all_o account_n that_o ever_o be_v in_o the_o world_n except_o jesus_n christ_n see_v the_o three_o last_o verse_n of_o deuteronomy_n and_o there_o arise_v not_o a_o prophet_n since_o in_o israel_n like_v unto_o moses_n who_o the_o lord_n know_v face_n to_o face_n in_o all_o the_o sign_n and_o wonder_n which_o the_o lord_n send_v he_o to_o do_v in_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n to_o pharaoh_n and_o all_o his_o servant_n and_o to_o all_o his_o land_n and_o in_o all_o that_o mighty_a hand_n and_o in_o all_o the_o great_a terror_n which_o moses_n show_v in_o the_o fight_n of_o all_o israel_n as_o to_o all_o humane_a and_o divine_a excellency_n and_o accomplishment_n and_o appearance_n of_o god_n in_o he_o there_o be_v never_o his_o fellow_n melchizedek_n indeed_o be_v great_a in_o one_o respect_n as_o to_o that_o shadow_n of_o eternity_n and_o unchangeable_a glory_n beforementioned_a solomon_n be_v great_a as_o to_o the_o outward_a peace_n and_o splendour_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o as_o to_o universal_a insight_n into_o all_o the_o depth_n and_o secret_n and_o mystery_n of_o nature_n but_o neither_o of_o they_o have_v such_o continual_a visible_a intercourse_n and_o communion_n with_o god_n in_o visible_a appearance_n to_o he_o upon_o all_o occasion_n neither_o of_o they_o wrought_v such_o miracle_n nor_o be_v they_o instrumental_a to_o so_o great_a a_o work_n of_o providence_n as_o the_o deliverance_n of_o israel_n out_o of_o egypt_n which_o with_o all_o the_o passage_n and_o circumstance_n belong_v to_o it_o be_v the_o great_a and_o the_o high_a dispensation_n of_o
a_o temporal_a saviour_n christ_n a_o spiritual_a saviour_n author_n of_o eternal_a redemption_n heb._n 9_o the_o analogy_n appear_v chief_o in_o five_o thing_n 1._o joshuah_n bring_v the_o people_n into_o canaan_n after_o moses_n his_o death_n which_o moses_n can_v not_o do_v be_v alive_a he_o divide_v the_o land_n among_o they_o assign_v to_o every_o one_o his_o portion_n so_o christ_n bring_v we_o to_o heaven_n which_o the_o law_n can_v not_o do_v rom._n 8.3_o and_o as_o joshuah_n go_v in_o himself_o before_o they_o so_o christ_n to_o heaven_n joh._n 14._o i_o go_v to_o prepare_v a_o place_n for_o you_o in_o my_o father_n house_n be_v many_o mansion_n heb._n 6._o ult_n whither_o the_o forerunner_n be_v enter_v for_o we_o and_o as_o when_o joshuah_n do_v this_o the_o cloud_n and_o manna_n cease_v which_o have_v be_v in_o moses_n his_o time_n of_o the_o manna_n it_o be_v express_v and_o the_o time_n when_o josh_n 5.12_o of_o the_o pillar_n of_o cloud_n and_o fire_n that_o it_o do_v cease_v be_v evident_a by_o many_o passage_n afterward_o in_o the_o sacred_a history_n but_o the_o time_n when_o be_v not_o set_v down_o probably_n it_o may_v be_v after_o they_o have_v pass_v jordan_n be_v divide_v by_o the_o ark_n and_o be_v on_o shore_n on_o the_o other_o side_n so_o shall_v ordinance_n cease_v when_o we_o come_v to_o heaven_n rev._n 21._o god_n himself_o be_v instead_o of_o all_o 2._o joshuah_n be_v a_o type_n of_o christ_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o miracle_n wrought_v by_o he_o we_o read_v of_o three_o 1._o he_o divide_v jordan_n josh_n 3._o but_o herein_o as_o in_o all_o thing_n christ_n have_v the_o pre-eminence_n for_o christ_n in_o the_o same_o jordan_n divide_v the_o heaven_n when_o he_o be_v baptize_v matth._n 3._o and_o he_o command_v the_o wind_n and_o sea_n and_o walk_v upon_o the_o water_n as_o upon_o dry_a ground_n 2._o moreover_o joshuah_n throw_v down_o the_o wall_n of_o jericho_n by_o the_o sound_n of_o ram_n horn_n a_o weak_a and_o a_o unlikely_a mean_n for_o so_o great_a a_o work_n yea_o ridiculous_a and_o contemptible_a in_o the_o eye_n of_o reason_n josh_n 6._o but_o it_o be_v do_v by_o faith_n heb._n 11.30_o so_o christ_n by_o the_o foolishness_n of_o preach_v subdue_v soul_n unto_o himself_o and_o throw_v down_o strong_a hold_n 2_o cor._n 10.4_o 5._o and_o as_o joshua_n do_v it_o again_o and_o again_o six_o day_n seven_o day_n before_o the_o wall_n fall_v so_o it_o be_v in_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n there_o must_v be_v assiduity_n in_o that_o work_n line_n upon_o line_n and_o precept_n upon_o precept_n and_o at_o last_o the_o strong_a hold_n be_v win_v and_o the_o sinner_n subdue_v unto_o the_o lord_n 3._o joshuah_n command_v the_o sun_n to_o stand_v still_o till_o he_o have_v slay_v his_o enemy_n josh_n 10.12_o 13_o ver_fw-la 14._o and_o there_o be_v no_o day_n like_o that_o before_o it_o or_o after_o it_o that_o the_o lord_n hearken_v unto_o the_o voice_n of_o a_o man._n so_o jesus_n christ_n when_o fight_v with_o principality_n and_o power_n upon_o the_o cross_n matth_n 27.45_o when_o the_o sun_n be_v ashamed_a and_o the_o moon_n confound_v and_o all_o the_o angel_n in_o heaven_n stand_v aghast_a thus_o you_o see_v how_o great_a a_o person_n this_o joshuah_n be_v in_o that_o all_o the_o creature_n all_o the_o element_n obey_v he_o the_o earth_n the_o wall_n of_o jericho_n prostrate_v themselves_o and_o fall_v before_o he_o the_o water_n also_o viz._n in_o jordan_n be_v at_o his_o command_n yea_o the_o heaven_n also_o the_o sun_n and_o moon_n obey_v he_o thus_o god_n magnify_v he_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o all_o israel_n as_o it_o be_v say_v josh_n 4.14_o but_o behold_v a_o great_a than_o joshuah_n be_v here_o for_o it_o be_v say_v of_o christ_n that_o god_n have_v give_v he_o a_o name_n above_o every_o name_n phil._n 2.9_o that_o in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n every_o knee_n shall_v bow_v of_o thing_n in_o heaven_n and_o thing_n in_o earth_n and_o thing_n under_o the_o earth_n ver_fw-la 10._o 3._o joshuah_n be_v a_o type_n of_o christ_n in_o regard_n of_o his_o conquest_n and_o victory_n over_o his_o enemy_n we_o read_v of_o five_o king_n at_o once_o subdue_v by_o he_o josh_n 10._o and_o he_o bid_v his_o captain_n tread_v upon_o their_o neck_n and_o cap._n 12._o of_o one_o and_o thirty_o king_n which_o he_o smite_v yet_o notwithstanding_o there_o be_v some_o few_o enemy_n leave_v though_o weak_a and_o inconsiderable_a but_o not_o one_o that_o dare_v or_o can_v oppose_v or_o disturb_v the_o public_a peace_n of_o god_n people_n yet_o they_o be_v leave_v for_o a_o time_n for_o their_o good_a lest_o the_o wild_a beast_n shall_v multiply_v upon_o they_o deut._n 7.22_o so_o christ_n jesus_n be_v a_o mighty_a conqueror_n he_o subdue_v all_o the_o enemy_n of_o his_o people_n see_v he_o describe_v rev._n 6.1_o 2._o conquer_a and_o to_o conquer_v not_o only_o five_o nor_o one_o and_o thirty_o but_o thousand_o of_o they_o one_o man_n be_v possess_v with_o a_o legion_n of_o devil_n but_o they_o be_v all_o cast_v forth_o by_o jesus_n christ_n and_o as_o christ_n so_o his_o follower_n be_v as_o joshuahs_n conqueror_n with_o and_o through_o he_o and_o he_o give_v believer_n to_o tread_v upon_o the_o neck_n of_o their_o own_o lust_n and_o of_o the_o devil_n temptation_n yet_o however_o there_o be_v some_o canaanite_n leave_v in_o the_o land_n some_o corruption_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o god_n people_n in_o this_o life_n to_o exercise_v their_o grace_n and_o to_o keep_v they_o humble_a which_o yet_o if_o it_o be_v not_o through_o their_o own_o careless_a negligence_n shall_v not_o disturb_v their_o peace_n with_o god_n but_o there_o be_v some_o enemy_n that_o be_v devote_v unto_o everlasting_a ruin_n and_o destruction_n irrecoverable_a by_o joshuah_n in_o the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n viz._n jericho_n cap_n 6.26_o which_o curse_n do_v not_o fall_v to_o the_o ground_n but_o be_v fulfil_v in_o hiel_n the_o bethelite_n 1_o king_n 16.34_o a_o shadow_n of_o the_o irreparable_a ruin_n and_o everlasting_a destruction_n of_o all_o the_o implacable_a enemy_n of_o god_n and_o his_o people_n and_o especial_o rome_n and_o antichrist_n rev._n 18.21_o babylon_n shall_v be_v cast_v down_o like_o a_o millstone_n into_o the_o sea_n never_o to_o rise_v more_o the_o curse_n of_o christ_n will_v fall_v upon_o such_o as_o endeavour_v to_o restore_v rome_n again_o and_o raise_v up_o the_o ruin_n that_o he_o have_v bring_v upon_o it_o for_o it_o be_v devote_v by_o our_o lord_n jesus_n the_o true_a joshuah_n to_o irreparable_a everlasting_a destruction_n 4._o though_o joshuah_n conquer_v and_o destroy_v resist_v enemy_n yet_o he_o save_v those_o who_o submit_v themselves_o as_o rahab_n and_o the_o gibeonite_n rahab_n cap._n 6._o the_o gibeonite_n cap._n 9_o though_o they_o act_v very_o sinful_o they_o come_v out_o of_o slavish_a fear_n and_o they_o dissemble_v but_o yet_o they_o do_v submit_v themselves_o so_o christ_n resist_v the_o proud_a but_o give_v grace_n to_o the_o humble_a that_o yield_v up_o themselves_o unto_o he_o though_o there_o be_v a_o mixture_n of_o much_o slavish_a fear_n and_o sinful_a selfishness_n and_o unbelief_n in_o their_o so_o do_v as_o mark_v 9.24_o 5._o joshuah_n give_v they_o rest_n fulfil_v and_o accomplish_v all_o the_o good_a promise_v cap._n 21.45_o and_o 23.14_o joshuah_n appeal_v to_o all_o their_o knowledge_n and_o conscience_n about_o it_o so_o when_o we_o come_v to_o heaven_n we_o shall_v see_v the_o truth_n and_o faithfulness_n of_o god_n we_o shall_v have_v all_o the_o promise_v accomplish_v through_o christ_n the_o true_a joshuah_n and_o be_v able_a to_o say_v with_o joy_n unspeakable_a not_o a_o word_n have_v fail_v and_o all_o through_o christ_n the_o true_a joshuah_n for_o in_o he_o all_o the_o promise_n be_v yea_o and_o amen_o 2_o cor._n 1.20_o and_o this_o will_v be_v rest_n for_o ever_o as_o they_o have_v rest_n so_o now_o believer_n enter_v into_o a_o everlasting_a rest_n heb._n 4.9_o 10_o 11._o but_o yet_o withal_o there_o be_v a_o great_a disparity_n between_o christ_n and_o joshuah_n and_o the_o rest_v they_o bring_v their_o follower_n into_o joshuah_n bring_v they_o but_o into_o a_o state_n of_o outward_a rest_n in_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n but_o this_o be_v not_o the_o true_a rest_n but_o christ_n give_v we_o a_o high_a rest_n in_o heaven_n by_o bring_v we_o into_o a_o state_n of_o grace_n and_o glory_n thus_o you_o see_v how_o eminent_o joshuah_n be_v a_o type_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 1667._o sept._n 12._o 1667._o who_o be_v the_o type_n or_o figure_n of_o he_o that_o be_v to_o come_v rom._n 5.14_o the_o second_o conglobation_n of_o typical_a person_n under_o the_o law_n be_v samson_n david_n and_o solomon_n three_o famous_a ruler_n among_o
and_o demas_n for_o a_o time_n 2._o elisha_n call_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n elizeus_fw-la luk._n 4._o he_o be_v a_o type_n of_o christ_n in_o three_o respect_n 1._o in_o that_o elisha_n in_o respect_n of_o elijah_n be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o continuation_n of_o the_o same_o person_n for_o he_o rise_v up_o complete_o in_o the_o same_o spirit_n the_o prophet_n discern_v it_o 2_o king_n 2.15_o the_o spirit_n of_o elijah_n do_v rest_n upon_o elisha_n so_o when_o christ_n depart_v and_o ascend_v up_o to_o heaven_n he_o leave_v the_o comforter_n in_o his_o stead_n joh._n 16._o and_o he_o leave_v the_o apostle_n and_o minister_n to_o carry_v on_o his_o work_n and_o pour_v forth_o his_o spirit_n upon_o they_o for_o that_o end_n or_o we_o may_v accommodate_v this_o with_o respect_n to_o john_n the_o baptist_n thus_o as_o elisha_n succeed_v elijah_n so_o do_v christ_n come_v after_o john_n the_o baptist_n and_o so_o elisha_n be_v in_o this_o respect_n a_o type_n of_o christ_n himself_o 2._o in_o regard_n of_o the_o remarkable_a vengeance_n and_o destruction_n that_o come_v upon_o his_o wicked_a enemy_n the_o child_n that_o mock_v he_o be_v devour_v by_o two_o she-bear_n 2_o king_n 2.23_o 24._o gehazi_n his_o treacherous_a servant_n smite_v with_o leprosy_n 2_o king_n 5.27_o so_o despiser_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v punish_v with_o most_o remarkable_a and_o dreadful_a destruction_n hear_v you_o despiser_n and_o wonder_v and_o perish_v act_v 13.41_o for_o i_o work_v a_o work_n in_o your_o day_n a_o work_n which_o you_o shall_v in_o no_o wise_n believe_v though_o a_o man_n declare_v it_o unto_o you_o incredible_a plague_n shall_v the_o despiser_n and_o rejecter_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o gospel_n be_v punish_v with_o and_o judas_n the_o traitor_n his_o servant_n you_o know_v what_o dreadful_a destruction_n come_v upon_o he_o act_v 1.18_o his_o bowel_n gush_v out_o through_o the_o horror_n of_o his_o conscience_n and_o the_o fury_n of_o the_o almighty_a rend_v his_o very_a body_n in_o piece_n as_o well_o as_o his_o soul_n from_o his_o body_n 3._o in_o regard_n of_o his_o miracle_n he_o and_o his_o predecessor_n elijah_n be_v the_o great_a worker_n of_o miracle_n except_o moses_n that_o ever_o we_o read_v of_o in_o scripture_n or_o that_o ever_o the_o lord_n raise_v up_o in_o his_o church_n for_o moses_n be_v to_o be_v the_o founder_n as_o it_o be_v of_o that_o church-estate_n and_o worship_n that_o be_v in_o those_o day_n and_o elijah_n and_o elisha_n be_v the_o preserver_n and_o restorer_n of_o it_o in_o a_o most_o degenerate_a and_o corrupt_a age._n the_o miracle_n of_o elisha_n be_v very_o great_a and_o many_o they_o be_v record_v in_o the_o second_o book_n of_o king_n in_o the_o 2_o 3_o 4_o 5_o 6_o and_o seven_o chapter_n and_o one_o more_o in_o chap._n 13._o they_o be_v about_o one_o and_o twenty_o in_o all_o there_o be_v three_o record_v in_o the_o second_o chapter_n viz._n his_o divide_v jordan_n with_o elijah_n mantle_n his_o heal_v the_o water_n of_o jericho_n the_o devour_a two_o and_o forty_o scoff_a child_n of_o those_o idolatrous_a parent_n the_o people_n at_o bethel_n by_o two_o she-bear_n in_o the_o three_o chapter_n there_o be_v another_o viz._n the_o overflow_a of_o the_o wilderness_n of_o edom_n with_o water_n crp._n 3.20_o see_v ver_fw-la 8._o to_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o moabite_n in_o the_o four_o chapter_n there_o be_v five_o more_o which_o be_v the_o analysis_n and_o content_n of_o that_o chapter_n viz._n 1._o his_o multiply_v the_o widow_n oil_n while_o she_o have_v any_o empty_a vessel_n to_o fill_v 2._o his_o give_v a_o son_n to_o that_o great_a and_o good_a woman_n the_o shunamite_n 3._o his_o raise_v her_o son_n when_o dead_a unto_o life_n again_o and_o this_o be_v the_o second_o person_n that_o ever_o be_v raise_v from_o the_o dead_a 4._o his_o heal_v the_o deadly_a pottage_n which_o have_v poison_v the_o student_n in_o the_o college_n at_o gilgal_n 5._o his_o feed_n of_o a_o hundred_o man_n with_o twenty_o loaf_n in_o the_o five_o chapter_n there_o be_v two_o more_o the_o cure_n of_o naaman_n leprosy_n and_o the_o smite_v of_o gehazi_n with_o that_o disease_n in_o the_o six_o chapter_n there_o be_v six_o more_o 1._o his_o cause_v iron_n to_o swim_v 2._o his_o disclose_v the_o secret_a counsel_n of_o the_o king_n of_o syria_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n 3._o a_o army_n of_o angel_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n for_o his_o defence_n at_o dothan_n 4._o the_o open_n of_o his_o servant_n eye_n to_o see_v they_o 5._o the_o smite_v of_o the_o syrian_n with_o blindness_n and_o 6._o the_o open_v their_o eye_n again_o in_o the_o seven_o chapter_n be_v three_o more_o the_o hideous_a which_o noise_n be_v hear_v and_o cause_v such_o a_o panic_n terror_n in_o the_o camp_n of_o the_o syrian_n that_o their_o whole_a army_n flee_v and_o the_o incredible_a plenty_n in_o samaria_n with_o the_o death_n of_o that_o unbelieve_a nobleman_n who_o have_v question_v whether_o god_n can_v do_v it_o and_o then_o last_o cap._n 13.21_o a_o dead_a man_n be_v restore_v to_o life_n by_o touch_v his_o bone_n and_o this_o be_v the_o three_o person_n that_o be_v raise_v from_o the_o dead_a all_o these_o miracle_n in_o general_n be_v presignification_n of_o what_o the_o messiah_n be_v to_o do_v in_o that_o kind_n and_o some_o of_o they_o be_v more_o particular_o fulfil_v and_o answer_v by_o the_o antitype_n as_o that_o of_o feed_v a_o hundred_o man_n with_o twenty_o loaf_n you_o know_v christ_n do_v that_o and_o more_o feed_v five_o thousand_o with_o five_o loaf_n and_o two_o fish_n matth._n 14.21_o and_o at_o another_o time_n four_o thousand_o with_o seven_o loaf_n and_o a_o few_o little_a fish_n matth._n 15.38_o his_o raise_v the_o dead_a to_o life_n whereof_o we_o have_v three_o instance_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o widow_n of_o sarepta_n her_o son_n the_o shunamite_n son_n and_o the_o man_n bury_v in_o elisha_n grave_n these_o be_v type_n and_o pledge_n of_o what_o christ_n shall_v do_v in_o raise_v the_o dead_a as_o in_o raise_v lazarus_n jairus_n his_o daughter_n the_o widow_n son_n of_o naim_n and_o his_o own_o bless_a body_n out_o of_o the_o grave_a and_o many_o saint_n that_o arise_v with_o he_o and_o those_o which_o the_o apostle_n raise_v by_o his_o name_n and_o final_o the_o raise_v all_o his_o elect_n unto_o eternal_a life_n and_o all_o the_o son_n of_o man_n unto_o judgement_n at_o the_o great_a day_n there_o may_v also_o be_v a_o spiritual_a application_n and_o accommodation_n of_o they_o as_o to_o the_o quicken_a of_o man_n soul_n the_o heal_n of_o the_o disease_n of_o the_o soul_n feed_v they_o with_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n pour_v into_o empty_a vessel_n empty_a soul_n the_o oil_n of_o gladness_n the_o joy_n and_o grace_n of_o his_o spirit_n 3._o jonah_n he_o i_o connect_v with_o elijah_n and_o elisha_n to_o make_v the_o type_n more_o complete_a and_o full_a some_o have_v conjecture_v that_o jonah_n be_v the_o widow_n son_n of_o zarephath_n who_o elijah_n raise_v from_o the_o dead_a 1_o king_n 17.22_o 23._o but_o this_o be_v but_o a_o conjecture_n without_o proof_n it_o be_v probable_a enough_o he_o may_v live_v about_o their_o time_n or_o perhaps_o somewhat_o after_o that_o he_o be_v a_o type_n of_o christ_n the_o scripture_n be_v express_v matth._n 12.39_o no_o sign_n shall_v be_v give_v they_o but_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o prophet_n jonah_n you_o may_v see_v how_o the_o type_n fit_v the_o antitype_n in_o four_o respect_n 1._o in_o his_o death_n he_o offer_v himself_o willing_o unto_o death_n to_o assuage_v the_o storm_n jon._n 1._o and_o so_o he_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o sea_n and_o devour_v by_o the_o whale_n so_o do_v christ_n to_o appease_v the_o tempest_n of_o god_n wrath._n and_o as_o upon_o jonahs_n be_v cast_v into_o the_o sea_n the_o sea_n cease_v from_o its_o rage_a cap._n 1.15_o and_o the_o seaman_n be_v save_v from_o drown_v so_o upon_o christ_n death_n god_n wrath_n be_v pacify_v and_o believer_n save_v from_o the_o wrath_n to_o come_v jonah_n have_v sore_a conflict_n and_o inward_a agony_n of_o spirit_n when_o he_o be_v under_o that_o shadow_n of_o death_n in_o the_o whale_n belly_n cap._n 2._o so_o have_v christ_n when_o he_o cry_v my_o god_n my_o god_n why_o have_v thou_o forsake_v i_o there_o be_v unutterable_a anguish_n in_o his_o soul_n those_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d unknown_a unconceivable_a suffering_n in_o his_o soul_n 2._o he_o be_v a_o type_n of_o christ_n in_o his_o burial_n for_o look_v as_o jonah_n be_v bury_v in_o the_o belly_n of_o the_o whale_n three_o day_n and_o three_o night_n so_o be_v christ_n in_o the_o belly_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o
and_o goodness_n of_o the_o lord_n so_o be_v israel_n moses_n indeed_o stick_v at_o this_o and_o so_o can_v not_o enter_v into_o canaan_n but_o we_o shall_v believe_v that_o there_o be_v water_n for_o rebel_n 1_o cor._n 10.11_o 1668._o april_n 23._o 1668._o a_o six_o typical_a thing_n among_o they_o of_o old_a be_v the_o brazen_a serpent_n the_o history_n whereof_o we_o have_v in_o numb_a 21.5_o 6_o 7_o 8._o the_o mystery_n and_o meaning_n of_o it_o we_o have_v by_o that_o infallible_a interpreter_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n himself_o in_o joh._n 3.14_o 15._o and_o so_o the_o paralleling_n and_o lay_v these_o two_o scripture_n together_o the_o one_o whereof_o declare_v the_o history_n of_o the_o type_n and_o the_o other_o reveal_v the_o mystery_n intend_v and_o aim_v at_o therein_o will_v be_v a_o great_a part_n of_o my_o discourse_n at_o this_o time_n you_o see_v in_o the_o history_n there_o be_v two_o thing_n the_o bodily_a disease_n and_o the_o remedy_n now_o this_o shadow_n forth_o the_o spiritual_a disease_n and_o remedy_n for_o the_o soul_n i_o shall_v speak_v first_o to_o the_o disease_n which_o be_v the_o deadly_a sting_a of_o fiery_a serpent_n for_o their_o ingratitude_n and_o murmur_n against_o the_o lord_n in_o this_o disease_n there_o be_v a_o shadow_n of_o the_o spiritual_a sickness_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n and_o let_v it_o not_o seem_v strange_a that_o they_o shall_v have_v a_o typical_a representation_n of_o spiritual_a evil_n for_o it_o have_v be_v former_o show_v when_o we_o open_v the_o nature_n of_o a_o type_n from_o rom._n 5.14_o that_o all_o the_o type_n be_v not_o to_o be_v restrain_v only_o to_o the_o messiahs_n person_n or_o to_o his_o benefit_n but_o they_o have_v dark_a and_o legal_a adumbration_n under_o the_o old_a testament_n of_o all_o those_o thing_n and_o truth_n which_o be_v more_o clear_o reveal_v under_o the_o new_a that_o this_o be_v indeed_o a_o typical_a disease_n be_v evident_a from_o the_o coherence_n that_o must_v needs_o be_v between_o the_o disease_n and_o the_o remedy_n i_o mean_v thus_o such_o as_o the_o remedy_n be_v such_o be_v the_o disease_n a_o outward_a remedy_n suppose_v and_o imply_v a_o bodily_a disease_n a_o spiritual_a remedy_n must_v needs_o relate_v to_o a_o spiritual_a disease_n but_o the_o remedy_n here_o be_v spiritual_a and_o typical_a for_o this_o our_o saviour_n be_v express_v joh._n 3.14_o therefore_o so_o be_v the_o disease_n now_o for_o the_o particular_n wherein_n it_o be_v so_o have_v this_o general_a ground_n and_o foundation_n in_o the_o scripture_n for_o it_o as_o to_o the_o particular_n we_o must_v beg_v of_o god_n spiritual_a wisdom_n to_o accommodate_v and_o apply_v thing_n rational_o and_o scriptural_o and_o not_o in_o a_o way_n of_o loose_a and_o wanton_a wit_n and_o fancy_n in_o the_o hope_n of_o who_o assistance_n through_o the_o help_n of_o your_o prayer_n i_o shall_v instance_n only_o in_o 5._o particular_n of_o spiritual_a instruction_n out_o of_o this_o type_n as_o to_o the_o disease_n of_o our_o soul_n 1._o that_o satan_n be_v indeed_o the_o old_a serpent_n 2._o that_o he_o be_v a_o fiery_a serpent_n 3._o that_o sin_n be_v the_o sting_n of_o this_o serpent_n 4._o this_o sting_n of_o sin_n be_v painful_a and_o deadly_a 5._o the_o lord_n suffer_v those_o most_o of_o all_o to_o be_v torment_v and_o plague_v by_o it_o who_o despise_v manna_n as_o a_o light_a food_n 1._o that_o satan_n be_v indeed_o the_o old_a serpent_n for_o this_o the_o scripture_n be_v express_v rev._n 12.9_o he_o be_v so_o represent_v in_o prophetical_a and_o typical_a scripture_n both_o because_o that_o be_v the_o first_o shape_n wherein_o he_o do_v appear_v as_o a_o devil_n in_o tempt_v and_o destroy_v our_o first_o parent_n and_o for_o the_o subtlety_n and_o venom_n of_o that_o beast_n and_o the_o curse_v inflict_v upon_o he_o in_o that_o appearance_n in_o dark_a place_n as_o among_o the_o pagan_n of_o old_a and_o among_o the_o american_n of_o late_a he_o have_v delight_v to_o appear_v unto_o they_o in_o that_o shape_n of_o a_o serpent_n therefore_o the_o pagan_a temple_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v haunt_v with_o serpent_n in_o so_o much_o that_o it_o grow_v into_o a_o phrase_n of_o speech_n among_o they_o sacer_n anguis_fw-la 2._o the_o devil_n be_v fit_o call_v seraphim_n or_o fiery_a burn_a serpent_n the_o serpent_n wherewith_o they_o be_v sting_v in_o that_o wilderness_n be_v such_o deut._n 8.15_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n speak_v of_o fiery_a fly_a serpent_n isa_n 14.29_o and_o 30.6_o the_o word_n in_o the_o text_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d have_v chashim_a haseraphim_n serpent_n burner_n numb_a 21.6_o or_o burn_a serpent_n the_o root_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d urere_fw-la the_o name_n serapis_n that_o egyptian_a idol_n may_v be_v derive_v from_o hence_o some_o derive_v from_o the_o hebrew_n saraph_n by_o inversion_n of_o letter_n the_o greek_a word_n praester_n which_o signify_v a_o kind_n of_o venomous_a serpent_n which_o be_v also_o call_v dipsas_n and_o causon_n with_o which_o he_o that_o be_v bite_v be_v torment_v with_o such_o a_o burn_a heat_n and_o thirst_n that_o though_o he_o drink_v never_o so_o much_o loc_n diascor_fw-la l._n 6._o cap._n 38_o and_o 40._o apud_fw-la aynsw_n in_o loc_n his_o thirst_n will_v not_o be_v quench_v or_o satisfy_v and_o the_o bite_n of_o these_o serpent_n be_v lest_o off_o by_o the_o most_o ancient_a physician_n as_o altogether_o incurable_a they_o be_v also_o fit_o call_v fiery_a serpent_n from_o their_o colour_n for_o they_o have_v a_o shine_a and_o glister_a skin_n as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v make_v of_o fire_n and_o we_o see_v it_o in_o our_o ordinary_a snake_n that_o seem_v to_o shine_v and_o sparkle_v against_o the_o sun_n so_o tailor_n on_o the_o type_n pag._n 305._o satan_n be_v fit_o so_o call_v as_o be_v a_o serpent_n of_o the_o worst_a kind_n a_o most_o terrible_a and_o deadly_a serpent_n hence_o he_o be_v elsewhere_o compare_v to_o a_o great_a red_a dragon_n rev._n 12._o upon_o the_o same_o account_n as_o here_o to_o a_o fiery_a serpent_n because_o he_o be_v such_o a_o dreadful_a enemy_n this_o name_n seraphim_n that_o be_v here_o use_v be_v apply_v to_o the_o holy_a angel_n isa_n 6.2_o for_o the_o spiritual_a brightness_n and_o burn_a heat_n and_o zeal_n and_o love_n to_o god_n that_o be_v in_o those_o bless_a spirit_n those_o pure_a flame_n he_o have_v make_v his_o angel_n spirit_n and_o his_o minister_n a_o flame_n of_o fire_n heb._n 1_o and_o satan_n himself_o be_v such_o a_o one_o at_o first_o though_o now_o by_o his_o fall_n he_o be_v but_o a_o fiery_a serpent_n he_o be_v a_o seraphim_n debase_v and_o fall_v below_o himself_o 3._o the_o sting_n of_o this_o serpent_n be_v sin_n therefore_o the_o temptation_n of_o this_o fiery_a serpent_n be_v call_v fiery_a dart_n ephes_n 6.16_o with_o which_o he_o sting_v the_o soul_n to_o death_n he_o have_v thrust_v his_o sting_n into_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n and_o poison_v it_o and_o make_v it_o like_o himself_o and_o he_o be_v continual_o tempt_v and_o thrust_v in_o his_o sting_n sin_n be_v call_v a_o sting_n 1_o cor._n 15._o the_o sting_n of_o death_n be_v sin_n 4._o sin_n the_o sting_n of_o this_o serpent_n be_v painful_a and_o deadly_a poison_n it_o both_o torment_n and_o kill_v it_o be_v true_a it_o be_v sweet_a poison_n while_n under_o the_o tongue_n but_o withal_o it_o be_v torment_v and_o mortal_a in_o the_o bowel_n job_n 20.12_o 13_o 14._o though_o sweet_a in_o his_o mouth_n it_o be_v the_o poison_n of_o asp_n within_o he_o sweet_a in_o the_o commission_n but_o torment_v and_o destructive_a afterward_o oh_o the_o pain_n it_o put_v the_o conscience_n of_o a_o sinner_n too_o deadly_a pain_n and_o anguish_n there_o be_v no_o anguish_n like_o it_o no_o poison_n so_o inflame_v so_o torment_v to_o the_o body_n as_o sin_n be_v to_o the_o soul_n 5._o the_o occasion_n of_o all_o this_o misery_n be_v their_o slight_n and_o murmur_v against_o the_o manna_n wherewith_o the_o lord_n have_v feed_v they_o from_o heaven_n there_o have_v be_v many_o murmur_n before_o upon_o other_o occasion_n but_o now_o they_o come_v to_o slight_v and_o despise_v manna_n wherewith_o the_o lord_n have_v feed_v they_o so_o miraculous_o for_o about_o eight_o and_o thirty_o year_n together_o for_o so_o some_o interpreter_n compute_v the_o time_n of_o this_o murmur_a all_o the_o while_n till_o now_o though_o that_o wilderness_n through_o which_o they_o travel_v be_v full_a of_o fiery_a serpent_n and_o scorpion_n and_o drought_n as_o deut._n 8.15_o yet_o the_o lord_n have_v not_o suffer_v any_o of_o they_o to_o be_v sting_v but_o now_o he_o let_v loose_v these_o fiery_a dragon_n to_o fly_v upon_o they_o as_o amos_n 9.3_o i_o will_v command_v the_o serpent_n and_o he_o
shall_v bite_v they_o and_o upon_o occasion_n of_o their_o ungrateful_a murmur_n against_o the_o manna_n numb_a 21.5_o the_o instruction_n we_o may_v learn_v and_o see_v in_o it_o be_v this_o that_o god_n let_v we_o loose_v those_o fiery_a serpent_n satan_n and_o their_o lust_n to_o sting_v the_o conscience_n and_o torment_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n for_o contempt_n of_o christ_n and_o gospel_n mercy_n when_o manna_n have_v be_v slight_v when_o christ_n be_v offer_v and_o reject_v than_o the_o serpent_n sting_v psal_n 81.11_o 12._o because_o israel_n will_v none_o of_o i_o therefore_o i_o give_v they_o up_o to_o their_o own_o heart_n lust_n have_v you_o never_o feel_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o type_n by_o woeful_a experience_n how_o sin_n have_v rage_v and_o get_v more_o strength_n when_o the_o gospel_n have_v be_v slight_v and_o offer_v of_o grace_n despise_v so_o much_o of_o the_o disease_n the_o deadly_a sting_n of_o these_o fiery_a serpent_n for_o their_o murmur_n now_o 2._o for_o the_o remedy_n the_o brazen_a serpent_n that_o christ_n be_v this_o brazen_a serpent_n himself_o declare_v joh._n 3._o 1._o it_o be_v make_v of_o brass_n and_o in_o the_o shape_n and_o form_n of_o a_o serpent_n yet_o not_o a_o real_a serpent_n it_o be_v not_o make_v of_o gold_n but_o only_o of_o brass_n which_o though_o it_o be_v a_o strong_a and_o bright_a metal_n yet_o be_v contemptible_a in_o outward_a appearance_n and_o most_o unlikely_a to_o have_v attain_v such_o a_o end_n to_o work_v such_o a_o cure_n so_o be_v christ_n strong_a and_o mighty_a and_o bright_a and_o glorious_a rev._n 1.15_o 16._o the_o brightness_n of_o his_o father_n glory_n heb._n 1.3_o yet_o a_o man_n and_o the_o son_n of_o man_n therefore_o low_a and_o mean_a in_o his_o outward_a appearance_n and_o despise_v of_o the_o world_n christ_n crucify_v be_v to_o the_o jew_n a_o stumble_a block_n and_o to_o the_o greek_n foolishness_n but_o to_o they_o that_o be_v save_v the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n and_o the_o power_n of_o god_n 1_o cor._n 1.23_o 24._o yea_o he_o condescend_v to_o appear_v in_o the_o similitude_n of_o sinful_a flesh_n for_o so_o the_o apostle_n most_o accurate_o express_v it_o rom._n 8.3_o he_o be_v count_v a_o sinner_n but_o he_o be_v indeed_o without_o sin_n heb._n 4.15_o as_o this_o brazen_a serpent_n be_v like_o a_o serpent_n yet_o have_v neither_o venom_n nor_o sting_n so_o christ_n appear_v like_o a_o sinner_n he_o come_v in_o the_o likeness_n of_o sinful_a flesh_n and_o yet_o know_v no_o sin_n 2_o cor._n 5.21_o but_o though_o he_o be_v not_o sinful_a yet_o he_o be_v indeed_o under_o the_o curse_n due_a to_o sin_n as_o the_o serpent_n be_v curse_v gen._n 3._o so_o christ_n become_v a_o curse_n for_o we_o gal._n 3.13_o 2._o this_o brazen_a serpent_n be_v a_o remedy_n and_o a_o cure_n provide_v of_o god_n in_o mere_a grace_n and_o sovereign_a mercy_n for_o ungrateful_a and_o unworthy_a rebel_n when_o some_o of_o they_o be_v sting_v to_o death_n and_o ready_a to_o perish_v for_o their_o contempt_n of_o manna_n and_o other_o of_o they_o be_v dead_a and_o go_v and_o past_a recovery_n for_o the_o same_o sin_n it_o be_v against_o the_o merit_n of_o their_o murmur_n when_o they_o speak_v against_o he_o and_o against_o moses_n in_o like_a manner_n do_v god_n give_v his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n of_o free_a and_o mere_a grace_n when_o we_o be_v enemy_n without_o and_o against_o our_o merit_n when_o so_o great_a a_o part_n of_o mankind_n perish_v without_o he_o in_o their_o own_o rebellion_n and_o especial_o for_o their_o contempt_n of_o the_o gospel_n joh._n 3.16_o god_n so_o love_v the_o world_n it_o be_v a_o most_o intense_a love_n to_o give_v his_o only_o beget_v son_n that_o whosoever_o believe_v on_o he_o may_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v eternal_a life_n 3._o the_o serpent_n must_v be_v lift_v up_o upon_o a_o pole_n numb_a 21._o that_o all_o israel_n may_v see_v it_o whether_o near_o or_o further_o off_o so_o christ_n be_v lift_v up_o joh._n 3.14_o as_o moses_n lift_v up_o the_o serpent_n in_o the_o wilderness_n even_o so_o must_v the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v lift_v up_o that_o be_v upon_o the_o cross_n joh._n 12.32_o 33._o and_o i_o if_o i_o be_v lift_v up_o from_o the_o earth_n will_v draw_v all_o man_n unto_o i_o this_o he_o speak_v signify_v what_o death_n he_o shall_v die_v and_o in_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o all_o man_n gal._n 3.1_o before_o who_o eye_n jesus_n christ_n have_v be_v evident_o set_v forth_o crucify_v among_o you_o both_o to_o those_o that_o be_v near_a and_o far_o of_o ephes_n 2.17_o 4._o this_o brazen_a serpent_n must_v be_v also_o look_v upon_o by_o the_o israelite_n when_o sting_v numb_a 21.8_o so_o must_v christ_n by_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n joh._n 3.15_o faith_n be_v often_o express_v unto_o we_o by_o that_o metaphor_n of_o look_v look_v unto_o i_o all_o you_o end_v of_o the_o earth_n and_o be_v save_v isa_n 45.22_o isa_n 65.1_o i_o say_v behold_v i_o behold_v i_o faith_n look_v with_o a_o fix_a eye_n and_o with_o a_o mourn_a eye_n a_o man_n spirit_n be_v much_o see_v and_o do_v much_o discover_v itself_o by_o his_o eye_n 5._o in_o this_o way_n it_o give_v heal_v unto_o those_o that_o be_v sting_v do_v look_v upon_o it_o who_o nothing_o else_o can_v heal_v moses_n and_o his_o law_n can_v not_o do_v it_o numb_a 21.8_o so_o christ_n mal._n 4.2_o unto_o you_o that_o fear_v my_o name_n shall_v the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n arise_v with_o heal_v under_o his_o wing_n psal_n 103_o who_o heal_v all_o thy_o disease_n and_o none_o but_o he_o can_v do_v it_o act._n 4.12_o there_o be_v no_o heal_n of_o a_o wound_a conscience_n but_o by_o jesus_n christ_n alone_o as_o lift_v up_o upon_o the_o cross_n and_o behold_v by_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n the_o brazen_a serpent_n be_v lift_v up_o be_v not_o enough_o but_o it_o must_v be_v look_v upon_o so_o christ_n must_v be_v believe_v on_o or_o else_o the_o soul_n can_v be_v heal_v ignorant_n soul_n that_o see_v not_o christ_n or_o that_o despise_v he_o shall_v not_o be_v save_v by_o he_o as_o if_o any_o of_o the_o people_n have_v say_v what_o virtue_n can_v there_o be_v in_o such_o a_o brazen_a serpent_n to_o health_n and_o so_o will_v not_o look_v up_o to_o it_o such_o they_o deserve_o perish_v so_o do_v unbeliever_n and_o despiser_n under_o the_o gospel_n though_o they_o be_v but_o weak_a and_o dim-eyed_a blear-eyed_a dim-sighted_a etc._n etc._n yet_o look_v up_o to_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n they_o be_v heal_v so_o though_o faith_n be_v weak_a yet_o be_v sincere_a it_o save_v though_o in_o the_o utmost_a part_n of_o the_o camp_n some_o say_v it_o take_v up_o twelve_o mile_n yet_o look_v unto_o i_o all_o the_o end_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o be_v save_v isa_n 45.22_o 6._o the_o brazen_a serpent_n retain_v this_o virtue_n only_a while_n institute_v by_o god_n for_o that_o end_n and_o therefore_o when_o the_o sacred_a stamp_n of_o institution_n be_v take_v off_o we_o read_v no_o more_o of_o any_o miracle_n wrought_v by_o it_o and_o hezekiah_n break_v it_o in_o piece_n 2._o king_n 18.4_o now_o this_o part_n of_o the_o history_n can_v be_v fit_o accommodate_v to_o christ_n himself_o but_o to_o his_o ordinance_n thus_o that_o the_o very_a same_o thing_n and_o action_n which_o be_v good_a and_o useful_a when_o god_n appoint_v they_o be_v useless_a yea_o abominable_a if_o there_o be_v no_o stamp_n of_o institution_n upon_o they_o thus_o we_o may_v fit_o apply_v it_o because_o the_o type_n as_o have_v be_v say_v relate_v to_o all_o gospel_n truth_n and_o the_o same_o truth_n shine_v forth_o in_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o those_o ancient_a type_n and_o shadow_n the_o lord_n then_o appoint_v minister_a garment_n for_o his_o priest_n and_o minister_n but_o for_o minister_n to_o use_v sacred_a vestment_n now_o be_v unlawful_a and_o abominable_a the_o lord_n then_o appoint_v a_o kind_n of_o legal_a hierarchy_n and_o spiritual_a supremacy_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n over_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n they_o be_v to_o act_v by_o the_o appointment_n of_o aaron_n and_o his_o son_n numb_a 4.19_o but_o for_o one_o gospel_n minister_n to_o claim_v a_o supremacy_n of_o jurisdiction_n over_o another_o gospel_n minister_n within_o his_o own_o charge_n or_o congregation_n this_o be_v that_o for_o which_o we_o just_o call_v the_o pope_n antichrist_n the_o lord_n then_o appoint_v the_o feast_n of_o tabernacle_n and_o the_o passover_n and_o pentecost_n but_o for_o we_o to_o keep_v these_o feast_n now_o under_o the_o name_n of_o christmas_n easter_n or_o whitsuntide_n or_o the_o like_a as_o the_o pope_n have_v teach_v we_o to_o do_v it_o be_v a_o far_o
to_o you_o that_o believe_v 3._o we_o may_v here_o see_v the_o glory_n of_o gospel_n truth_n and_o mystery_n and_o withal_o how_o dull_a and_o slow_a of_o heart_n we_o be_v to_o apprehend_v they_o in_o that_o the_o lord_n teach_v we_o and_o hold_v they_o forth_o in_o so_o great_a variety_n of_o spiritual_a representation_n to_o our_o weak_a and_o narrow_a understanding_n here_o be_v light_a and_o safety_n and_o strength_n and_o meat_n and_o drink_n and_o medicine_n and_o all_o lay_v up_o in_o christ_n and_o christ_n hereby_o hold_v forth_o unto_o we_o and_o all_o little_a enough_o to_o help_v we_o to_o a_o true_a and_o right_a idea_n of_o he_o 4._o here_o be_v very_o great_a and_o sweet_a encouragement_n from_o that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v this_o day_n to_o disease_a soul_n to_o repair_v to_o this_o physician_n whatever_o thy_o disease_n be_v go_v to_o he_o for_o help_v and_o that_o you_o may_v obtain_v help_n and_o heal_a virtue_n from_o he_o remember_v these_o three_o rule_n and_o take_v they_o along_o with_o you_o 1._o seek_v to_o he_o in_o his_o own_o mean_n and_o ordinance_n if_o he_o set_v his_o stamp_n upon_o a_o piece_n of_o copper_n as_o he_o do_v of_o old_a do_v not_o despise_v it_o if_o he_o send_v his_o angel_n into_o a_o pool_n or_o well_o of_o water_n do_v not_o say_v with_o naaman_n be_v not_o the_o water_n of_o abana_n and_o pharphar_n as_o good_a as_o the_o water_n of_o jordan_n be_v not_o other_o pool_n as_o good_a as_o the_o pool_n of_o bethesda_n they_o may_v be_v so_o in_o themselves_o and_o yet_o may_v not_o have_v the_o virtue_n that_o mean_a water_n have_v if_o the_o one_o be_v appoint_v of_o god_n for_o this_o use_n and_o the_o other_o not_o 2._o do_v not_o expect_v heal_v from_o the_o mean_n from_o the_o well_o or_o water_n of_o it_o but_o by_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o covenant_n move_v the_o water_n not_o from_o the_o ordinance_n but_o only_o from_o the_o blessing_n and_o presence_n of_o god_n in_o they_o 3._o be_v sure_a you_o be_v find_v wait_v his_o time_n and_o leisure_n wait_v at_o the_o pool_n of_o bethesda_n though_o you_o do_v not_o find_v help_n in_o 38_o year_n yet_o wait_v and_o be_v ever_o ready_a lest_o you_o be_v out_o of_o the_o way_n when_o the_o angel_n move_v the_o water_n 1668._o may_v 7._o &_o 21._o 1668._o 1_o cor._n 10.11_o the_o occasional_a type_n belove_v be_v refer_v to_o two_o head_n thing_n and_o action_n of_o typical_a thing_n we_o have_v speak_v that_o which_o follow_v next_o in_o order_n be_v occasional_a typical_a action_n before_o we_o enter_v into_o they_o it_o may_v be_v useful_a to_o recall_v to_o remembrance_n three_o thing_n former_o deliver_v 1._o that_o the_o type_n be_v not_o to_o be_v restrain_v only_o to_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n but_o they_o extend_v even_o to_o all_o new_a testament_n dispensation_n 2._o that_o there_o be_v a_o real_a historical_a verity_n in_o these_o typical_a action_n 3._o that_o they_o do_v serve_v for_o divers_a other_o end_n and_o use_n as_o well_o as_o for_o this_o typical_a use_n i_o must_v desire_v you_o to_o remember_v these_o three_o thing_n and_o to_o carry_v they_o along_o with_o you_o in_o all_o that_o shall_v be_v say_v they_o may_v be_v refer_v to_o two_o head_n 1._o typical_a deliverance_n to_o his_o people_n 2._o typical_a destruction_n of_o enemy_n which_o though_o they_o may_v be_v handle_v together_o yet_o for_o the_o great_a clearness_n and_o distinctness_n we_o may_v consider_v they_o several_o 1._o there_o be_v typical_a mercy_n deliverance_n preservation_n of_o his_o people_n of_o old_a which_o happen_v to_o they_o in_o type_n and_o be_v write_v for_o our_o instruction_n upon_o who_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n be_v come_v the_o lord_n intend_v those_o ancient_a dispensation_n to_o be_v type_n and_o pattern_n and_o pledge_n of_o what_o he_o intend_v to_o do_v for_o his_o people_n in_o the_o latter_a day_n there_o be_v many_o signal_n instance_n thereof_o in_o the_o story_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n i_o may_v here_o instance_n in_o the_o lord_n protect_v providence_n over_o the_o father_n and_o ancestor_n of_o that_o people_n viz._n abraham_n isaac_n and_o jacob_n in_o all_o their_o sojourning_n and_o journeying_n to_o and_o fro_o at_o the_o call_n of_o god_n psal_n 105.12_o 13_o 14_o 15._o when_o few_o in_o number_n and_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o enemy_n he_o suffer_v no_o man_n to_o do_v they_o harm_n mention_v as_o the_o first_o great_a and_o speak_a example_n how_o the_o lord_n will_v protect_v his_o people_n in_o all_o future_a time_n but_o to_o let_v pass_v the_o precedent_n give_v in_o particular_a person_n and_o to_o instance_n only_o in_o such_o dispensation_n as_o befall_v that_o whole_a people_n there_o be_v six_o famous_a dispensation_n of_o providence_n which_o happen_v unto_o they_o in_o type_n and_o be_v write_v for_o our_o instruction_n upon_o who_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n be_v come_v 1._o their_o deliverance_n out_o of_o egypt_n 2._o their_o passage_n through_o the_o red_a sea_n 3._o their_o march_v through_o the_o wilderness_n 4._o their_o passage_n through_o the_o river_n jordan_n under_o joshua_n conduct_n 5._o their_o entrance_n into_o canaan_n 6._o their_o deliverance_n out_o of_o babylon_n 1._o their_o deliverance_n out_o of_o egypt_n the_o history_n whereof_o be_v record_v in_o the_o book_n of_o exodus_fw-la this_o history_n may_v be_v typical_o apply_v three_o way_n 1._o unto_o christ_n himself_o and_o so_o it_o be_v express_o in_o mat._n 2.15_o it_o be_v quote_v out_o of_o hos_n 11.1_o those_o word_n be_v speak_v by_o the_o prophet_n hosea_n concern_v the_o deliverance_n of_o that_o people_n out_o of_o egypt_n but_o this_o be_v typical_o do_v to_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o full_a intent_n of_o it_o accomplish_v in_o christ_n the_o head_n and_o antitype_n and_o therefore_o be_v so_o apply_v by_o matthew_n look_v as_o israel_n in_o the_o infancy_n of_o that_o people_n go_v down_o into_o egypt_n and_o god_n bring_v they_o forth_o again_o so_o christ_n in_o his_o infancy_n flee_v thither_o and_o the_o lord_n call_v he_o back_o again_o 2._o here_o be_v also_o a_o shadow_n and_o representation_n of_o our_o spiritual_a deliverance_n out_o of_o spiritual_a bondage_n and_o misery_n under_o sin_n and_o satan_n and_o the_o world_n in_o a_o unregenerate_a estate_n unto_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n and_o glory_n the_o scripture_n hint_v this_o unto_o we_o in_o that_o it_o do_v express_o apply_v the_o terminus_n ad_fw-la quem_fw-la of_o their_o deliverance_n mystical_o and_o allegorical_o therefore_o the_o terminus_n à_fw-fr quo_fw-la be_v also_o mystical_a and_o allegorical_a for_o there_o be_v the_o same_o reason_n of_o both_o we_o make_v use_v of_o the_o like_a demonstration_n before_o upon_o the_o fiery_a serpent_n so_o here_o such_o as_o the_o rest_n be_v such_o be_v their_o bondage_n but_o the_o state_n they_o be_v bring_v into_o be_v a_o state_n of_o typical_a rest_n and_o peace_n in_o canaan_n it_o be_v make_v a_o type_n of_o another_o country_n even_o of_o heaven_n itself_o heb._n 11.16_o heb._n 4.8_o 9_o joshua_n do_v not_o give_v they_o rest_n but_o there_o remain_v a_o further_a rest_n to_o the_o people_n of_o god_n if_o their_o rest_n in_o canaan_n be_v a_o type_n of_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a rest_n then_o their_o bondage_n in_o egypt_n be_v a_o type_n of_o spiritual_a bondage_n sin_n as_o some_o have_v well_o say_v be_v indeed_o the_o egypt_n of_o the_o soul_n upon_o all_o account_n temptation_n to_o it_o act_n in_o it_o trouble_n for_o it_o be_v its_o house_n of_o bondage_n and_o vexation_n we_o be_v all_o by_o nature_n in_o a_o condition_n of_o spiritual_a slavery_n to_o sin_n and_o satan_n as_o israel_n be_v in_o outward_a slavery_n to_o their_o egyptian_a taskmaster_n and_o the_o lord_n redeem_v we_o spiritual_o as_o he_o do_v they_o literal_o hence_o in_o the_o preface_n to_o the_o ten_o commandment_n which_o be_v moral_a and_o perpetual_a the_o lord_n therein_o say_v to_o we_o and_o to_o all_o his_o people_n as_o well_o as_o to_o they_o i_o be_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n which_o bring_v thou_o forth_o out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n out_o of_o the_o house_n of_o bondage_n he_o redeem_v we_o out_o of_o another_o and_o worser_o egypt_n you_o may_v see_v the_o analogy_n a_o little_a more_o particular_o in_o 4._o thing_n 1._o they_o be_v under_o very_o cruel_a bondage_n the_o egyptian_n make_v they_o to_o serve_v with_o rigour_n exod._n 1.14_o they_o must_v make_v brick_n the_o monument_n whereof_o be_v think_v by_o some_o to_o be_v the_o pyramid_n so_o josephus_n report_v though_o some_o object_n that_o the_o pyramid_n be_v not_o make_v of_o brick_n to_o which_o it_o may_v be_v answer_v that_o what_o manner_n
place_n of_o execration_n by_o make_v it_o the_o stage_n of_o his_o fury_n and_o the_o field_n of_o his_o vengeance_n in_o hideous_a plague_n and_o judgement_n for_o here_o he_o destroy_v senacherib_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o that_o blaspheme_a army_n that_o damn_v roar_a crew_n here_o a_o hundred_o eighty_o five_o thousand_o of_o they_o be_v slay_v miraculous_o and_o their_o carcase_n as_o it_o seem_v burn_v with_o fire_n to_o prevent_v annoyance_n and_o infection_n and_o putrefaction_n of_o the_o air._n isa_n 30.31_o 33._o for_o tophet_n be_v prepare_v of_o old_a and_o in_o the_o same_o place_n again_o in_o another_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n fury_n when_o he_o do_v let_v loose_v the_o chaldean_n upon_o they_o the_o jew_n be_v slay_v in_o so_o great_a number_n till_o there_o be_v no_o room_n leave_v to_o bury_v they_o see_v jer._n 7.31_o 32_o 33._o from_o all_o which_o this_o place_n come_v to_o be_v the_o name_n of_o hell_n as_o be_v a_o place_n every_o way_n execrable_a and_o have_v be_v make_v by_o god_n the_o gate_n of_o hell_n as_o it_o be_v and_o the_o passage_n to_o eternal_a destruction_n by_o so_o many_o remarkable_a execution_n of_o his_o dreadful_a and_o direful_a displeasure_n in_o that_o place_n we_o do_v not_o find_v gehinnom_n use_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n for_o the_o name_n of_o hell_n as_o the_o learned_a have_v observe_v but_o hell_n get_v that_o name_n during_o the_o time_n of_o the_o second_o temple_n the_o forementioned_a ground_n and_o occasion_n of_o the_o name_n be_v not_o till_o about_o that_o time_n in_o be_v 41._o mede_n disc_n 7._o pag._n 41._o and_z according_o the_o name_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o jewish_a writer_n of_o that_o time_n and_o be_v use_v by_o our_o saviour_n as_o a_o name_n then_o vulgar_o know_v among_o the_o jew_n you_o see_v then_o what_o type_n of_o hell_n they_o have_v under_o the_o old_a testament_n namely_o the_o deluge_n sodom_n egypt_n and_o tophet_n you_o have_v hear_v also_o that_o they_o have_v five_o type_n of_o rome_n to_o wit_n sodom_n egypt_n jericho_n edom_n and_o babylon_n these_o be_v typical_a presignification_n of_o gospel_n enemy_n and_o gospel_n vengeance_n and_o now_o i_o have_v go_v through_o these_o occasional_a type_n whether_o thing_n or_o action_n whether_o typical_a mercy_n or_o typical_a vengeance_n that_o which_o next_o remain_v be_v those_o perpetual_a stand_a type_n which_o the_o scripture_n call_v everlasting_a statute_n for_o beside_o these_o occasional_a type_n which_o be_v exhibit_v in_o a_o transient_a way_n and_o do_v exist_v but_o for_o a_o time_n they_o have_v also_o other_o type_n that_o be_v of_o a_o more_o endure_a nature_n and_o do_v continue_v to_o the_o end_n of_o that_o old_a testament_n dispensation_n namely_o the_o whole_a ceremonial_a law_n whereof_o we_o shall_v speak_v hereafter_o the_o lord_n assist_v the_o gospel_n of_o the_o perpetual_a type_n 1668._o june_n 4_o and_z 7_o 1668._o heb._n 10.1_o for_o the_o law_n have_v a_o shadow_n of_o good_a thing_n to_o come_v and_o not_o the_o very_a image_n of_o the_o thing_n etc._n etc._n some_o entrance_n and_o progress_n have_v be_v make_v upon_o the_o type_n you_o have_v hear_v beloved_n what_o a_o type_n be_v the_o nature_n of_o it_o have_v be_v open_v from_o rom._n 5.14_o we_o have_v distribute_v they_o into_o two_o sort_n personal_n and_o real_a which_o distribution_n will_v carry_v we_o through_o this_o whole_a subject_n the_o personal_a type_n we_o have_v go_v through_o as_o brief_o as_o we_o can_v instance_v both_o in_o several_a individual_a person_n both_o before_o the_o law_n and_o under_o the_o law_n and_o in_o typical_a rank_n and_o order_n of_o man_n which_o be_v destine_v and_o ordain_v of_o god_n to_o represent_v and_o shadow_v forth_o he_o that_o be_v to_o come_v the_o real_a type_n we_o have_v also_o begin_v to_o speak_v unto_o and_o we_o distribute_v they_o into_o two_o sort_n occasional_a and_o perpetual_a occasional_a type_n be_v such_o as_o god_n give_v they_o upon_o special_a occasion_n the_o most_o of_o they_o before_o the_o ordinary_a and_o perpetual_a one_o be_v settle_v such_o as_o the_o pillar_n of_o cloud_n and_o fire_n manna_n the_o brazen_a serpent_n their_o pass_v through_o the_o red_a sea_n and_o other_o such_o like_a occasional_a and_o extraordinary_a dispensation_n of_o which_o we_o speak_v from_o 1_o cor._n 10.11_o all_o these_o thing_n happen_v unto_o they_o in_o type_n by_o the_o perpetual_a type_n we_o intend_v such_o as_o god_n by_o institution_n settle_v and_o state_v in_o that_o church_n to_o the_o end_n of_o that_o age_n of_o that_o whole_a old_a testament_n dispensation_n till_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n the_o truth_n substance_n and_o scope_n of_o they_o of_o these_o we_o be_v now_o to_o speak_v as_o the_o lord_n shall_v enable_v we_o it_o be_v the_o scripture_n phrase_n it_o call_v they_o perpetual_a statute_n or_o everlasting_a statute_n the_o phrase_n be_v first_o use_v as_o i_o remember_v in_o reference_n to_o circumcision_n which_o be_v call_v berith_n yolam_n a_o perpetual_a covenant_n gen._n 17.7_o 8._o afterward_o we_o have_v it_o again_o concern_v the_o passover_n exod._n 12.14_o 17._o which_o be_v there_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d statutum_n saeculi_fw-la a_o everlasting_a statute_n see_v likewise_o exod._n 27.21_o and_o 28.43_o a_o statute_n for_o ever_o and_o 29.9_o a_o perpetual_a statute_n so_o levit._n 3.17_o and_o 24.9_o a_o everlasting_a statute_n levit._n 16_o 34._o and_o indeed_o this_o phrase_n of_o speech_n do_v occur_v between_o twenty_o and_o thirty_o time_n in_o the_o book_n of_o moses_n it_o shall_v be_v a_o perpetual_a statute_n or_o a_o everlasting_a statute_n or_o a_o statute_n for_o ever_o throughout_o your_o generation_n that_o be_v a_o stand_a type_n and_o not_o mere_o transient_a and_o occasional_a only_o there_o have_v be_v some_o mistake_n and_o misunderstanding_n of_o this_o phrase_n which_o must_v be_v clear_v before_o we_o leave_v it_o the_o unbelieve_a jew_n have_v seem_v to_o interpret_v and_o understand_v it_o concern_v a_o absolute_a eternity_n which_o have_v be_v one_o occasion_n or_o pretence_n allege_v by_o they_o for_o their_o stumble_n at_o christ_n and_o at_o the_o gospel_n because_o he_o have_v remove_v and_o take_v away_o the_o law_n of_o ceremony_n but_o beside_o many_o other_o thing_n that_o may_v be_v say_v to_o show_v the_o weakness_n and_o folly_n of_o their_o pretence_n in_o this_o matter_n i_o shall_v but_o note_v these_o two_o thing_n 1._o that_o this_o word_n for_o ever_o be_v often_o use_v in_o scripture_n for_o a_o limit_a duration_n as_o for_o instance_n it_o be_v use_v for_o duration_n till_o the_o year_n of_o jubilee_n exod._n 21.6_o he_o shall_v be_v a_o servant_n for_o ever_o that_o be_v only_o till_o the_o year_n of_o jubilee_n in_o case_n he_o live_v so_o long_o for_o than_o he_o be_v to_o go_v free_a by_o virtue_n of_o that_o law_n levit._n 25.13_o 28_o 40_o 41._o sometime_o it_o be_v use_v for_o a_o continuance_n during_o life_n as_o 1_o sam._n 1.22_o that_o he_o may_v appear_v before_o the_o lord_n and_o there_o abide_v for_o ever_o explain_v vers_fw-la 28._o therefore_o also_o i_o have_v lend_v he_o to_o the_o lord_n as_o long_o as_o he_o live_v sometime_o it_o be_v use_v for_o duration_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n dispensation_n for_o all_o the_o land_n which_o thou_o see_v to_o thou_o will_v i_o give_v it_o and_o to_o thy_o seed_n for_o ever_o gen._n 13.15_o the_o land_n give_v to_o thy_o seed_n for_o ever_o which_o can_v be_v interpret_v concern_v a_o unlimited_a eternity_n unless_o they_o will_v say_v that_o god_n have_v break_v his_o promise_n for_o they_o have_v be_v eject_v and_o cast_v forth_o of_o that_o land_n these_o sixteen_o hundred_o year_n 1_o king_n 8.13_o i_o have_v sure_o build_v thou_o a_o house_n to_o dwell_v in_o a_o settle_a place_n for_o thou_o to_o abide_v in_o for_o ever_o psal_n 132.14_o this_o be_v my_o rest_n for_o ever_o here_o will_v i_o dwell_v for_o i_o have_v desire_v it_o he_o do_v not_o dwell_v nor_o manifest_v his_o presence_n there_o now_o but_o god_n have_v give_v they_o up_o to_o invincible_a perverseness_n and_o darkness_n and_o prejudice_n in_o this_o particular_a 2._o there_o be_v manifest_a intimation_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n that_o these_o ceremonial_a law_n be_v not_o to_o continue_v always_o but_o to_o cease_v and_o be_v abolish_v in_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n jer._n 3._o they_o shall_v say_v no_o more_o the_o ark_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o the_o lord_n jer._n 31._o not_o according_a to_o the_o covenant_n that_o i_o make_v with_o their_o father_n but_o this_o shall_v be_v the_o covenant_n i_o will_v put_v my_o law_n in_o their_o inward_a part_n and_o write_v it_o in_o their_o heart_n etc._n etc._n but_o
so_o much_o for_o the_o explication_n of_o this_o distinction_n of_o the_o type_n into_o occasional_a and_o perpetual_a you_o see_v the_o true_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o it_o and_o what_o clear_a scripture_n ground_n there_o be_v for_o it_o these_o perpetual_a type_n or_o everlasting_a statute_n be_v no_o other_o but_o that_o which_o we_o call_v the_o law_n of_o moses_n or_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n whereof_o this_o text_n speak_v and_o lay_v down_o this_o proposition_n doct._n that_o the_o law_n have_v a_o shadow_n of_o future_a good_a thing_n but_o not_o the_o very_a image_n of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v assert_v and_o hold_v forth_o though_o in_o other_o word_n but_o to_o the_o same_o scope_n and_o sense_n in_o other_o scripture_n as_o rom._n 10.4_o christ_n be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o law_n for_o righteousness_n to_o every_o one_o that_o believe_v joh._n 1.17_o the_o law_n come_v by_o moses_n that_o be_v the_o law_n as_o oppose_v to_o grace_n and_o truth_n but_o grace_n and_o truth_n by_o jesus_n christ_n truth_n here_o be_v not_o oppose_v to_o falsehood_n for_o moses_n speak_v no_o lie_n but_o to_o shadow_n and_o shadowy_a promise_n and_o so_o the_o truth_n of_o they_o be_v the_o performance_n or_o accomplishment_n of_o they_o in_o opposition_n to_o the_o bare_a shadow_n and_o typical_a promise_n of_o they_o and_o this_o be_v call_v grace_n because_o there_o be_v so_o much_o of_o that_o in_o the_o gospel_n and_o so_o little_a of_o it_o but_o on_o the_o contrary_a much_o of_o rigour_n and_o terror_n in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n so_o the_o sense_n amount_v to_o thus_o much_o that_o moses_n deliver_v law_n that_o be_v shadow_n and_o ceremony_n which_o be_v but_o legal_a and_o dark_a and_o rigorous_a but_o christ_n bring_v in_o grace_n and_o truth_n that_o be_v the_o real_a and_o sweet_a accomplishment_n and_o performance_n of_o all_o the_o good_a that_o moses_n have_v promise_v in_o that_o dark_a and_o low_a and_o legal_a way_n which_o be_v consonant_a to_o that_o we_o have_v here_o in_o the_o text_n that_o the_o law_n have_v the_o shadow_n but_o not_o the_o very_a image_n of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o here_o be_v four_o thing_n to_o be_v clear_v 1._o what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o law_n 2._o what_o by_o these_o future_a good_a thing_n 3._o what_o by_o the_o shadow_n which_o the_o law_n have_v and_o the_o very_a image_n of_o they_o which_o the_o law_n want_v 4._o what_o be_v the_o particular_a several_a part_n of_o this_o law_n of_o ceremony_n these_o perpetual_a or_o everlasting_a statute_n quest_n 1._o what_o be_v here_o mean_v by_o the_o law_n ans_fw-fr a_o law_n be_v a_o rule_n of_o act_v give_v by_o a_o superior_a who_o have_v authority_n and_o power_n of_o command_v to_o his_o inferior_a this_o be_v the_o general_a nature_n of_o a_o law_n god_n therefore_o be_v the_o supreme_a lord_n and_o absolute_a sovereign_n over_o all_o his_o creature_n be_v the_o great_a lawgiver_n james_n 4.12_o there_o be_v one_o lawgiver_n who_o be_v able_a to_o save_v and_o to_o destroy_v all_o those_o to_o who_o god_n commit_v power_n over_o other_o may_v be_v say_v to_o give_v law_n to_o they_o except_o ordinary_a officer_n in_o the_o church_n who_o he_o have_v entrust_v no_o further_o but_o only_o with_o the_o execution_n of_o his_o law_n promulgate_v and_o record_v by_o himself_o by_o his_o extraordinary_a officer_n in_o the_o write_a word_n but_o magistrate_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v legislator_n as_o to_o civil_a law_n of_o who_o moses_n be_v the_o first_o that_o deliver_v law_n in_o write_v to_o the_o people_n under_o he_o which_o he_o receive_v from_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n now_o the_o law_n deliver_v by_o moses_n be_v refer_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o three_o head_n moral_a ceremonial_a and_o judicial_a which_o be_v express_v by_o three_o word_n thorah_n or_o mitsvah_n chuquim_n and_o mishpatim_o which_o word_n be_v sometime_o use_v and_o put_v together_o in_o the_o scripture_n to_o signify_v these_o three_o sort_n of_o law_n deut._n 6.1_o mitsvah_n chuquim_n and_o mishpatim_fw-la the_o same_o word_n deut._n 26.17_o see_v ezra_n 7.10_o mal._n 4.4_o thorah_n asher_n tsivithi_n the_o law_n which_o i_o command_v the_o first_o sort_n of_o law_n viz._n moral_a respect_v they_o as_o man_n the_o second_o as_o a_o church_n the_o three_o as_o a_o commonwealth_n the_o first_o sort_n viz._n the_o moral_a law_n be_v still_o in_o force_n and_o bind_v unto_o all_o man_n in_o all_o age_n the_o three_o sort_n viz._n judicial_a law_n be_v of_o a_o mix_a nature_n some_o be_v hedge_n as_o it_o be_v and_o fence_n to_o the_o moral_a law_n and_o some_o to_o the_o ceremonial_a and_o so_o they_o participate_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o those_o law_n to_o who_o defence_n they_o serve_v the_o judicial_n that_o serve_v to_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o moral_a law_n have_v something_o of_o moral_a equity_n and_o reason_n in_o they_o and_o so_o be_v still_o in_o force_n as_o that_o he_o that_o shed_v man_n blood_n by_o man_n shall_v his_o blood_n be_v shed_v this_o be_v a_o fence_n which_o god_n have_v set_v about_o the_o six_o commandment_n and_o so_o remain_v in_o force_n in_o all_o nation_n to_o all_o time_n and_o age_n unto_o this_o day_n but_o other_o of_o these_o judicial_n be_v set_v as_o fence_n about_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n and_o so_o must_v needs_o be_v fall_v together_o with_o it_o now_o the_o law_n of_o which_o the_o text_n speak_v it_o be_v not_o the_o moral_a nor_o the_o judicial_a as_o such_o but_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n of_o moses_n call_v ephes_n 2.15_o the_o law_n of_o commandment_n contain_v in_o ordinance_n and_o col._n 2.14_o the_o hand_n write_v of_o ordinance_n this_o text_n can_v intend_v the_o moral_a law_n for_o that_o have_v no_o shadow_n of_o gospel_n benefit_n nor_o the_o judicial_a law_n as_o such_o for_o part_n of_o it_o be_v a_o appendix_n to_o the_o moral_a law_n and_o the_o other_o part_n be_v only_o for_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o ceremony_n but_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n be_v here_o intend_a for_o that_o be_v of_o a_o shadowy_a nature_n it_o have_v a_o shadow_n of_o good_a thing_n to_o come_v quest_n 2._o what_o be_v these_o future_a good_a thing_n ans_fw-fr it_o be_v the_o good_a thing_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v future_a upon_o a_o double_a account_n 1._o future_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o law_n and_o old_a testament_n time_n 2._o future_a in_o respect_n of_o this_o life_n so_o future_a good_a thing_n be_v eternal_a good_a thing_n calvin_n in_o loc_n see_v 1_o joh._n 3.2_o it_o do_v not_o yet_o appear_v what_o we_o shall_v be_v though_o we_o have_v the_o foretaste_n and_o beginning_n of_o they_o already_o yet_o the_o perfection_n of_o they_o be_v future_a reserve_v in_o heaven_n for_o we_o quest_n 3._o what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o shadow_n of_o these_o future_a benefit_n and_o what_o by_o the_o very_a image_n of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o ans_fw-fr in_o a_o word_n a_o shadow_n here_o be_v a_o dark_a and_o weak_a resemblance_n and_o representation_n of_o thing_n but_o the_o very_a image_n of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o be_v a_o clear_a and_o better_a representation_n of_o they_o the_o apostle_n use_v this_o metaphor_n of_o a_o shadow_n concern_v the_o moysaicall_a ceremony_n col._n 2.17_o in_o opposition_n to_o christ_n the_o body_n and_o substance_n thereof_o here_o he_o oppose_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d allude_v as_o it_o seem_v to_o the_o rude_a draught_n and_o first_o delineation_n of_o a_o picture_n by_o the_o painter_n and_o to_o the_o full_a perfection_n thereof_o when_o draw_v forth_o in_o all_o its_o lineament_n and_o colour_n and_o whole_a proportion_n so_o the_o shadow_n be_v the_o first_o rude_a draught_n the_o image_n be_v a_o more_o lively_a and_o exact_a representation_n so_o the_o dark_a shadow_n be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o law_n the_o more_o lively_a image_n to_o the_o gospel_n the_o thing_n themselves_o be_v in_o heaven_n so_o some_o interpreter_n carry_v it_o vid._n mayer_n calvin_n in_o loc_n and_o the_o apostle_n have_v some_o expression_n look_v that_o way_n in_o other_o scripture_n as_o when_o he_o say_v that_o here_o we_o see_v but_o in_o a_o glass_n dark_o that_o be_v the_o glass_n of_o gospel_n administration_n wherein_o we_o see_v the_o lively_a image_n and_o picture_n as_o it_o be_v of_o christ_n crucify_v gal._n 3.1_o 2._o cor._n 3.18_o see_v as_o in_o a_o glass_n he_o be_v there_o compare_v the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n but_o in_o heaven_n we_o shall_v see_v face_n to_o face_n see_v 1_o cor._n 13.12_o under_o the_o law_n they_o have_v no_o more_o but_o the_o shadow_n but_o now_o under_o the_o gospel_n we_o have_v the_o very_a image_n we_o
of_o those_o former_a dispensation_n therefore_o how_o shall_v we_o escape_v if_o after_o so_o many_o way_n of_o teach_v we_o do_v not_o receive_v instruction_n see_v heb._n 2.3_o 4._o the_o gospel_n of_o circumcision_n 1666._o october_n 30._o 1666._o act_n 7.8_o and_o he_o give_v he_o the_o covenant_n of_o circumcision_n and_o so_o abraham_n beget_v isaac_n and_o circumcise_v he_o the_o eight_o day_n and_o isaac_n beget_v jacob_n and_o jacob_n beget_v the_o twelve_o patriarch_n this_o excellent_a sermon_n and_o apology_n of_o stephen_n the_o first_o martyr_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o scope_n of_o it_o be_v to_o show_v they_o the_o variety_n of_o god_n dispensation_n towards_o his_o people_n together_o with_o the_o various_a rebellion_n and_o opposition_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n against_o he_o and_o so_o to_o convince_v they_o that_o the_o scope_n and_o tendency_n of_o they_o all_o be_v to_o lead_v to_o jesus_n christ_n and_o that_o as_o former_a dispensation_n have_v be_v despise_v so_o be_v this_o which_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n he_o go_v over_o the_o history_n of_o the_o church_n from_o abraham_n time_n to_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n in_o sundry_a most_o eminent_a and_o principal_a dispensation_n of_o god_n towards_o his_o church_n in_o this_o verse_n he_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o dispensation_n of_o god_n to_o abraham_n he_o have_v show_v before_o how_o he_o have_v call_v abraham_n out_o of_o his_o own_o country_n how_o he_o have_v promise_v he_o a_o possession_n the_o land_n of_o canaan_n how_o he_o have_v foretell_v the_o affliction_n of_o his_o seed_n for_o four_o hundred_o year_n and_o their_o deliverance_n afterward_o how_o the_o lord_n have_v give_v he_o the_o covenant_n of_o circumcision_n and_o how_o under_o the_o influence_n of_o this_o covenant_n isaac_n be_v bear_v and_o jacob_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o patriarch_n and_o he_o give_v he_o the_o covenant_n of_o circumcision_n i_o shall_v give_v you_o no_o other_o doctrine_n but_o the_o word_n themselves_o doct._n that_o god_n give_v to_o abraham_n the_o covenant_n of_o circumcision_n that_o be_v the_o doctrine_n that_o which_o i_o do_v design_n and_o intend_v be_v a_o little_a explanation_n of_o circumcision_n and_o of_o the_o covenant_n thereof_o for_o that_o be_v the_o phrase_n here_o and_o that_o in_o reference_n to_o our_o attendance_n upon_o god_n in_o this_o ordinance_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n circumcision_n which_o we_o be_v now_o to_o wait_v upon_o he_o in_o to_o open_v to_o you_o the_o nature_n of_o circumcision_n you_o know_v there_o be_v a_o outward_a and_o a_o inward_a part_n of_o it_o as_o there_o be_v in_o all_o other_o sign_n and_o sacrament_n whatsoever_o something_o must_v be_v speak_v 1._o of_o the_o sign_n the_o nature_n of_o the_o external_a ordinance_n 2._o of_o the_o covenant_n that_o it_o relate_v to_o and_o 3._o what_o those_o respect_n be_v wherein_o it_o do_v relate_v to_o that_o covenant_n 1._o for_o the_o external_a part_n of_o this_o ordinance_n of_o circumcision_n it_o be_v the_o cut_v away_o the_o foreskin_n of_o the_o flesh_n of_o abraham_n and_o his_o male_a seed_n upon_o the_o eight_o day_n the_o first_o institution_n of_o this_o ordinance_n be_v record_v gen._n 17.10_o 11._o this_o be_v my_o covenant_n which_o you_o shall_v keep_v between_o i_o and_o you_o and_o thy_o seed_n after_o thou_o every_o man_n child_n among_o you_o shall_v be_v circumcise_v and_o you_o shall_v circumcise_v the_o flesh_n of_o your_o foreskin_n etc._n etc._n the_o lord_n do_v appoint_v the_o seal_n of_o this_o covenant_n to_o be_v in_o that_o part_n of_o the_o body_n in_o his_o infinite_a wisdom_n and_o sovereignty_n a_o thing_n which_o carnal_a reason_n will_v despise_v there_o seem_v to_o be_v two_o principal_a account_n of_o it_o 1._o because_o those_o member_n of_o the_o body_n be_v so_o much_o abuse_v to_o sin_n in_o the_o way_n of_o uncleanness_n and_o filthiness_n therefore_o the_o lord_n will_v now_o sanctify_v they_o and_o separate_v a_o seed_n and_o generation_n to_o himself_o and_o usual_o the_o great_a wrath_n of_o god_n to_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v express_v by_o give_v they_o up_o to_o abuse_v those_o part_n of_o the_o body_n the_o world_n be_v grow_v very_o degenerate_a and_o the_o lord_n be_v resolve_v to_o leave_v a_o monument_n a_o everlasting_a monument_n of_o his_o wrath_n for_o those_o sin_n in_o all_o age_n and_o therefore_o destroy_v sodom_n gen._n 18._o and_o before_o this_o destruction_n he_o appoint_v this_o seal_n and_o ordinance_n 2._o another_o account_n of_o it_o be_v this_o that_o it_o may_v be_v a_o sure_a and_o a_o strong_a wall_n of_o partition_n between_o the_o jewish_a and_o gentle_a nation_n of_o the_o world_n it_o make_v the_o partition_n wall_n the_o sure_a because_o carnal_a reason_n can_v not_o but_o despise_v such_o a_o ordinance_n those_o that_o know_v not_o god_n have_v no_o spiritual_a sense_n of_o the_o thing_n therefore_o we_o find_v the_o heathen_n scoff_v at_o it_o as_o horat._n curtosque_fw-la judaeos_fw-la &_o credat_fw-la judaeus_n apella_n because_o by_o their_o carnal_a reason_n they_o can_v not_o see_v the_o reason_n of_o it_o therefore_o when_o the_o lord_n will_v have_v both_o unite_a to_o jesus_n christ_n in_o one_o body_n he_o abolish_v circumcision_n this_o ordinance_n be_v dispense_v to_o the_o male_n the_o female_n be_v include_v and_o comprehend_v in_o the_o male_n and_o as_o full_o and_o clear_o comprehend_v in_o they_o as_o the_o land_n and_o the_o tree_n be_v say_v to_o be_v circumcise_a so_o be_v all_o the_o daughter_n of_o abraham_n as_o they_o come_v of_o circumcise_a parent_n and_o marry_v to_o circumcise_a husband_n and_o their_o son_n be_v circumcise_v so_o that_o it_o be_v a_o circumcise_a nation_n and_o people_n it_o be_v to_o be_v do_v upon_o the_o eight_o day_n after_o the_o birth_n of_o the_o child_n and_o so_o in_o this_o text_n he_o give_v he_o the_o covenant_n of_o circumcision_n and_o so_o abraham_n beget_v isaac_n and_o circumcise_v he_o the_o eight_o day_n the_o reason_n of_o this_o limitation_n may_v be_v partly_o because_o of_o the_o infant_n state_n of_o the_o church_n in_o those_o time_n therefore_o the_o lord_n teach_v they_o and_o limit_v they_o even_o in_o such_o small_a particular_n which_o be_v now_o leave_v to_o be_v determine_v only_o by_o the_o general_a rule_n of_o the_o word_n even_o the_o particular_a time_n and_o season_n of_o our_o circumcision_n it_o be_v think_v also_o this_o may_v have_v some_o further_a mystery_n in_o it_o in_o reference_n to_o the_o christian_a sabbaoth_n which_o be_v the_o eight_o day_n in_o one_o respect_n the_o first_o in_o other_o way_n of_o number_v and_o to_o respect_v a_o new_a state_n and_o life_n after_o that_o the_o complete_a and_o full_a number_n of_o the_o day_n of_o this_o life_n here_o be_v go_v through_o after_o the_o week_n be_v end_v the_o week_n of_o this_o life_n here_o we_o come_v to_o heaven_n and_o glory_n which_o be_v one_o thing_n intimate_v in_o circumcision_n as_o you_o will_v hear_v afterward_o but_o so_o much_o for_o the_o external_a part_n of_o this_o ordinance_n the_o cut_n off_o the_o foreskin_n of_o abraham_n and_o his_o male_a seed_n and_o that_o upon_o the_o eight_o day_n 2._o to_o speak_v a_o little_a to_o the_o mystery_n of_o this_o ordinance_n the_o meaning_n of_o it_o the_o spirit_n of_o this_o external_a dispensation_n for_o beside_o the_o shell_n there_o be_v a_o kernel_n beside_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o law_n of_o the_o ordinance_n there_o be_v much_o spiritual_a mystery_n intend_v and_o aim_v at_o in_o it_o now_o than_o what_o be_v the_o mystery_n of_o circumcision_n the_o inward_a part_n of_o it_o that_o be_v the_o covenant_n and_o he_o give_v he_o the_o covenant_n of_o circumcision_n so_o that_o circumcision_n be_v the_o covenant_n and_o it_o be_v the_o same_o expression_n where_o this_o ordinance_n be_v first_o institute_v you_o shall_v have_v my_o covenant_n in_o your_o flesh_n gen._n 17._o it_o be_v call_v a_o covenant_n as_o other_o sign_n and_o sacrament_n be_v it_o be_v a_o sacramental_a phrase_n the_o lamb_n be_v call_v the_o passover_n the_o bread_n the_o body_n the_o wine_n the_o blood_n of_o christ_n so_o circumcision_n be_v the_o covenant_n of_o it_o but_o what_o covenant_n be_v it_o that_o circumcision_n do_v relate_v to_o this_o be_v the_o great_a question_n you_o know_v there_o be_v two_o covenant_n that_o of_o work_n and_o grace_n now_o circumcision_n be_v not_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n but_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o carnal_a covenant_n and_o a_o covenant_n of_o work_n take_v these_o five_o consideration_n to_o make_v good_a that_o ground_n before_o we_o proceed_v any_o further_o for_o if_o it_o be_v the_o covenant_n of_o work_n it_o cut_v off_o all_o that_o be_v
i_o shall_v prove_v each_o particular_a out_o of_o plain_a scripture_n 1._o that_o great_a seed_n that_o be_v not_o only_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n but_o the_o son_n of_o god_n this_o be_v the_o first_o and_o chief_a seed_n here_o intend_v gal_n 3.16_o he_o say_v not_o as_o to_o seed_n but_o to_o thy_o seed_n which_o be_v christ_n such_o a_o seed_n in_o who_o all_o nation_n be_v bless_v now_o it_o be_v in_o christ_n only_o that_o all_o nation_n be_v bless_v therefore_o he_o be_v this_o promise_a seed_n the_o lord_n have_v not_o before_o limit_v the_o seed_n messiah_n to_o any_o particular_a family_n but_o leave_v it_o at_o large_a so_o far_o as_o appear_v among_o the_o whole_a race_n of_o mankind_n it_o be_v say_v to_o adam_n the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n there_o be_v then_o no_o further_o limitation_n till_o noah_n time_n and_o then_o in_o abraham_n time_n the_o lord_n limit_n the_o covenant_n to_o his_o seed_n it_o be_v afterward_o confine_v to_o judah_n one_o of_o the_o twelve_o tribe_n at_o last_o the_o lord_n go_v further_o to_o one_o family_n in_o judah_n namely_o david_n but_o here_o he_o limit_n it_o to_o abraham_n that_o of_o he_o shall_v come_v that_o great_a and_o bless_a seed_n this_o be_v the_o main_a thing_n indeed_o as_o without_o which_o all_o other_o promise_n can_v never_o be_v bestow_v and_o fulfil_v but_o through_o he_o they_o be_v yea_o and_o amen_o abraham_n see_v my_o day_n and_o rejoice_v he_o see_v the_o messiah_n be_v to_o come_v of_o his_o loin_n this_o be_v the_o seed_n in_o who_o he_o believe_v and_o by_o which_o he_o be_v save_v 2._o there_o be_v a_o church-seed_n promise_v the_o meaning_n be_v this_o that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v continue_v in_o his_o race_n and_o posterity_n the_o true_a religion_n shall_v be_v settle_v there_o there_o be_v other_o godly_a person_n before_o and_o after_o we_o read_v of_o melchisedech_n and_o job_n and_o his_o friend_n and_o it_o be_v very_o like_a there_o may_v be_v other_o and_o when_o god_n have_v settle_v salvation_n to_o abraham_n it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o all_o other_o to_o join_v themselves_o to_o that_o church_n the_o lord_n entail_v by_o covenant_n all_o his_o ordinance_n to_o abraham_n and_o his_o posterity_n he_o give_v they_o his_o statute_n and_o judgement_n he_o choose_v they_o to_o be_v a_o peculiar_a people_n a_o people_n to_o the_o lord_n and_o that_o be_v a_o church_n a_o society_n entrust_v and_o invest_v with_o the_o ordinance_n and_o thus_o he_o deal_v with_o they_o he_o show_v his_o statute_n to_o israel_n this_o be_v no_o small_a privilege_n and_o mercy_n to_o enjoy_v the_o ordinance_n this_o be_v call_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n this_o christ_n threaten_v the_o jew_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v take_v from_o they_o and_o give_v to_o other_o people_n mat._n 21.43_o that_o be_v god_n will_v settle_v his_o church_n among_o the_o gentile_n and_o give_v they_o his_o ordinance_n and_o that_o this_o be_v a_o privilege_n we_o see_v by_o that_o expression_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n wherein_o he_o mention_n it_o as_o a_o part_n of_o the_o dreadful_a misery_n of_o the_o ephesian_n that_o they_o be_v alien_n to_o the_o common_a wealth_n of_o israel_n 3._o there_o be_v a_o three_o thing_n intend_v and_o that_o be_v a_o believe_a seed_n such_o as_o shall_v be_v true_o godly_a and_o of_o this_o the_o apostle_n speak_v in_o gal._n 3.7_o know_v you_o therefore_o that_o they_o which_o be_v of_o faith_n be_v the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n so_o that_o all_o true_a believer_n be_v his_o seed_n in_o that_o sense_n he_o be_v call_v the_o father_n of_o the_o faithful_a all_o believer_n be_v his_o posterity_n there_o be_v multitude_n that_o be_v true_o godly_a of_o abraham_n seed_n and_o all_o that_o be_v godly_a be_v his_o seed_n they_o walk_v in_o his_o step_n they_o be_v the_o seed_n of_o the_o covenant_n they_o be_v spiritual_o relate_v to_o he_o he_o be_v the_o pattern_n and_o typical_a head_n of_o that_o covenant_n in_o which_o we_o do_v all_o believe_v the_o pattern_n of_o faith_n to_o we_o he_o be_v call_v our_o father_n it_o be_v say_v of_o he_o that_o he_o believe_v against_o sense_n and_o reason_n this_o be_v not_o write_v for_o his_o sake_n alone_o but_o for_o we_o also_o that_o we_o may_v follow_v his_o step_n 4._o there_o be_v include_v in_o this_o covenant_n a_o engraft_a seed_n it_o be_v the_o apostle_n expression_n in_o rom._n 11.17_o i_o mean_v a_o seed_n not_o only_o of_o the_o jew_n but_o of_o the_o gentile_n god_n do_v not_o only_o engage_v to_o abraham_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v church_n of_o his_o own_o natural_a seed_n and_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v saint_n of_o his_o natural_a seed_n but_o that_o the_o gentile_n shall_v be_v ingraft_v into_o his_o covenant_n and_o so_o become_v his_o seed_n thou_o be_v a_o wild_a olive_n tree_n be_v graft_v in_o among_o they_o and_o partake_v of_o the_o root_n and_o fatness_n of_o the_o olive_n tree_n god_n do_v above_o and_o beyond_o the_o ordinary_a course_n of_o thing_n ingraft_v the_o gentile_n into_o that_o covenant_n that_o he_o have_v once_o make_v with_o abraham_n and_o thus_o you_o see_v what_o the_o seed_n be_v which_o the_o lord_n do_v promise_v in_o the_o covenant_n whereof_o circumcision_n be_v the_o seal_n he_o do_v promise_v to_o give_v to_o abraham_n that_o seed_n first_o and_o chief_o that_o seed_n who_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o a_o church_n seed_n and_o a_o believe_a seed_n and_o not_o only_o a_o seed_n of_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o jew_n but_o a_o seed_n ingraft_v into_o that_o grace_n and_o covenant_n from_o among_o the_o gentile_n we_o have_v go_v through_o two_o branch_n of_o the_o covenant_n the_o three_o be_v this_o 3._o that_o god_n will_v give_v a_o inheritance_n to_o he_o and_o they_o this_o be_v the_o three_o part_n of_o god_n covenant_n with_o he_o it_o be_v the_o great_a desire_n in_o nature_n to_o have_v child_n and_o it_o be_v a_o good_a desire_n it_o be_v of_o god_n and_o what_o do_v parent_n desire_v next_o a_o comfortable_a inheritance_n for_o they_o and_o this_o do_v the_o lord_n promise_v to_o abraham_n and_o in_o that_o text_n which_o have_v be_v so_o often_o allege_v god_n first_o promise_n to_o make_v he_o exceed_o fruitful_a and_o then_o i_o will_v give_v to_o thou_o and_o thy_o seed_n after_o thou_o the_o land_n wherein_o thou_o be_v yet_o a_o stranger_n the_o lord_n promise_v a_o inheritance_n and_o that_o inheritance_n be_v the_o land_n of_o canaan_n now_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o this_o be_v a_o temporal_a or_o spiritual_a inheritance_n doubtless_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o promise_v to_o abraham_n canaan_n mere_o as_o a_o temporal_a inheritance_n but_o as_o a_o spiritual_a inheritance_n canaan_n be_v not_o as_o other_o land_n be_v a_o mere_a outward_a thing_n but_o it_o be_v a_o typical_a land_n it_o be_v the_o land_n of_o emmanuel_n it_o be_v the_o land_n of_o glory_n canaan_n be_v a_o type_n of_o heaven_n and_o in_o that_o respect_n it_o be_v that_o they_o do_v so_o earnest_o prize_v it_o and_o look_v upon_o it_o as_o be_v heaven_n in_o a_o earthly_a shadow_n therefore_o jacob_n and_o joseph_n must_v needs_o be_v bury_v there_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n assure_v we_o they_o do_v seek_v a_o better_a country_n they_o profess_v themselves_o stranger_n and_o pilgrim_n here_o upon_o earth_n they_o that_o say_v such_o thing_n declare_v plain_o they_o seek_v another_o country_n which_o be_v a_o heavenly_a one_o wherefore_o god_n be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o be_v call_v their_o god_n it_o be_v a_o heavenly_a city_n who_o builder_n and_o maker_n be_v god_n so_o that_o under_o that_o shadow_n the_o lord_n do_v promise_v heaven_n to_o abraham_n and_o this_o be_v the_o three_o part_n of_o this_o covenant_n this_o land_n of_o canaan_n be_v call_v the_o mountain_n of_o holiness_n what_o expression_n can_v be_v high_o dan._n 11._o and_o therefore_o the_o saint_n do_v look_v beyond_o that_o to_o another_o country_n you_o see_v what_o the_o covenant_n be_v and_o what_o be_v the_o principal_a thing_n and_o branch_n of_o it_o that_o god_n shall_v be_v his_o god_n that_o god_n shall_v give_v he_o a_o seed_n and_o that_o god_n shall_v give_v a_o inheritance_n to_o he_o and_o they_o you_o see_v what_o the_o covenant_n be_v that_o circumcision_n do_v relate_v to_o now_o the_o last_o thing_n that_o be_v propound_v be_v this_o what_o respect_v it_o be_v that_o circumcision_n have_v to_o this_o covenant_n he_o give_v he_o the_o covenant_n of_o circumcision_n for_o this_o note_v these_o five_o thing_n 1._o circumcision_n respect_v the_o covenant_n as_o the_o seal_n or_o sacrament_n of_o initiation_n into_o the_o covenant_n the_o reason_n of_o
concern_v this_o ordinance_n which_o circumcision_n do_v hold_v forth_o he_o be_v not_o a_o christian_n which_o be_v one_o outward_o neither_o be_v that_o baptism_n which_o be_v outward_a in_o the_o flesh_n but_o he_o be_v a_o christian_n that_o be_v one_o inward_o and_o baptism_n be_v that_o of_o the_o heart_n in_o the_o spirit_n and_o not_o in_o the_o letter_n who_o praise_n be_v not_o of_o man_n but_o of_o god_n the_o apostle_n scope_n be_v to_o depress_v the_o external_a part_n of_o the_o ordinance_n as_o of_o no_o worth_n and_o value_n separate_v from_o or_o compare_v with_o the_o spiritual_a part_n so_o it_o be_v with_o our_o ordinance_n that_o we_o do_v enjoy_v under_o the_o new-testament_n what_o be_v the_o wash_n away_o of_o the_o filth_n of_o the_o body_n if_o the_o heart_n be_v not_o wash_v but_o it_o be_v as_o circumcision_n be_v to_o they_o a_o aggravation_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o condemnation_n i_o will_v punish_v say_v god_n jer._n 9.25_o 26._o all_v they_o which_o be_v circumcise_v together_o with_o the_o uncircumcised_a egypt_n and_o judah_n and_o edom_n and_o the_o child_n of_o ammon_n and_o moab_n and_o all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o utmost_a corner_n that_o dwell_v in_o the_o wilderness_n for_o all_o these_o nation_n be_v uncircumcised_a and_o all_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n be_v uncircumcised_a in_o heart_n so_o god_n will_v punish_v the_o baptise_a with_o the_o unbaptised_a together_o for_o many_o people_n be_v unbaptise_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o many_o of_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n many_o profess_v christian_n be_v not_o baptize_v in_o heart_n they_o have_v the_o circumcision_n but_o not_o the_o covenant_n of_o circumcision_n they_o have_v the_o water_n but_o not_o the_o spirit_n of_o baptism_n therefore_o take_v heed_n of_o separate_v the_o outward_a part_n from_o the_o inward_a part_n of_o the_o ordinance_n do_v not_o rest_v in_o the_o external_a privilege_n but_o look_v after_o the_o spirit_n and_o blessing_n of_o every_o ordinance_n get_v god_n to_o wash_v thy_o heart_n and_o the_o heart_n of_o thy_o seed_n it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o have_v thy_o body_n wash_v if_o thy_o heart_n and_o soul_n be_v not_o wash_v from_o its_o filth_n the_o gospel_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n 1668._o june_n 14._o 1668._o levit._fw-la 7.37_o 38._o this_o be_v the_o law_n of_o the_o burn_a offering_n of_o the_o meat_n offer_v and_o of_o the_o sin_n offer_v and_o of_o the_o trespass-offering_a and_o of_o the_o consecration_n and_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o peace_n offering_n etc._n etc._n the_o perpetual_a statute_n of_o the_o law_n of_o ceremony_n have_v be_v refer_v to_o five_o general_a head_n 1._o the_o initiate_a seal_n of_o circumcision_n 2._o the_o legal_a offering_n and_o sacrifice_n and_o purification_n 3._o the_o temple_n 4._o the_o priesthood_n 5._o the_o festival_n of_o the_o initiate_a seal_n of_o those_o time_n we_o have_v former_o speak_v from_o act._n 7.8_o that_o which_o next_o follow_v in_o the_o method_n propound_v be_v the_o legal_a offering_n concern_v which_o the_o text_n lay_v down_o two_o assertion_n or_o point_n of_o doctrine_n 1._o that_o there_o be_v a_o divine_a institution_n and_o command_n of_o god_n for_o the_o offering_n and_o sacrifice_n that_o be_v under_o the_o law_n 2._o that_o there_o be_v six_o kind_n or_o sort_n of_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n under_o the_o law_n viz._n the_o burn_a offering_n etc._n etc._n this_o be_v the_o scope_n of_o vers_fw-la 37._o the_o former_a doctrine_n be_v the_o scope_n of_o the_o 38_o but_o that_o which_o be_v last_o mention_v in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o text_n be_v first_o in_o order_n of_o consideration_n doct._n 1._o that_o there_o be_v a_o divine_a institution_n and_o command_n of_o god_n for_o the_o offering_n and_o sacrifice_n that_o be_v under_o the_o law_n the_o text_n indeed_o speak_v proper_o of_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n but_o there_o be_v a_o general_a truth_n in_o the_o proposition_n concern_v all_o their_o sacrifice_n and_o all_o the_o sort_n and_o kind_n of_o they_o this_o book_n of_o leviticus_n begin_v thus_o and_o he_o call_v vaikra_fw-mi that_o be_v the_o lord_n he_o call_v by_o a_o audible_a voice_n from_o his_o dwell_n place_v the_o throne_n of_o his_o glory_n which_o be_v upon_o the_o mercy_n seat_n between_o the_o cherubim_n as_o he_o have_v promise_v exod._n 25.22_o see_v numb_a 7.89_o it_o be_v true_a it_o be_v say_v jer._n 7.22_o concern_v burnt-offering_n or_o sacrifice_n that_o god_n command_v they_o not_o etc._n etc._n but_o the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n be_v comparative_a though_o the_o grammar_n of_o the_o word_n sound_v as_o if_o it_o be_v negative_a it_o can_v be_v explain_v better_a than_o the_o old_a note_n have_v do_v it_o show_v that_o it_o be_v not_o his_o chief_a intent_n and_o purpose_n that_o they_o shall_v offer_v sacrifice_n but_o that_o they_o shall_v regard_v wherefore_o they_o be_v ordain_v to_o wit_n to_o be_v join_v to_o the_o word_n as_o seal_n and_o confirmation_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n in_o christ_n for_o without_o the_o word_n they_o be_v vain_a and_o unprofitable_a to_o open_v this_o doctrine_n a_o little_a to_o you_o we_o must_v first_o consider_v what_o a_o sacrifice_n or_o a_o offer_n be_v now_o a_o offer_n in_o general_n be_v any_o thing_n present_v to_o the_o lord_n to_o become_v peculiar_o he_o and_o to_o be_v typical_a of_o christ_n and_o gospel_n mystery_n the_o former_a part_n of_o the_o description_n extend_v to_o anti_n typical_a offering_n as_o well_o as_o typical_a to_o gospel_n as_o well_o as_o legal_a offering_n for_o our_o soul_n and_o body_n and_o all_o our_o service_n be_v offer_v and_o present_v to_o the_o lord_n but_o not_o as_o type_n and_o shadow_n of_o another_o gospel_n but_o they_o become_v his_o in_o a_o spiritual_a and_o peculiar_a propriety_n as_o they_o of_o old_a do_v their_o offering_n by_o be_v offer_v become_v the_o lord_n they_o presenting_z and_o the_o lord_n accept_v they_o therefore_o they_o be_v call_v holy_a as_o be_v separate_v to_o the_o lord_n separated_z and_o set_v apart_o from_o common_a use_n to_o holy_a use_n hence_o they_o be_v call_v gift_n quorbanim_fw-la as_o be_v give_v to_o the_o lord_n â_fw-la quarab_n appropinquavit_fw-la so_o in_o in_o the_o text_n their_o oblation_n or_o their_o corban_n see_v mark_v 7.11_o all_o this_o hold_v true_a of_o gospel_n offering_n under_o the_o new_a testament_n but_o the_o legal_a offering_n be_v set_v apart_o for_o god_n with_o respect_n to_o christ_n and_o his_o great_a sacrifice_n and_o offer_v of_o himself_o up_o unto_o god_n for_o we_o they_o all_o have_v some_o relation_n to_o this_o either_o as_o to_o the_o thing_n itself_o or_o the_o bless_a effect_n and_o fruit_n of_o it_o some_o have_v distinguish_v they_o into_o three_o sort_n 1._o such_o as_o be_v offer_v at_o the_o brazen_a altar_n or_o the_o altar_n of_o burnt-offering_a which_o represent_v the_o death_n and_o suffering_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 2._o such_o as_o be_v offer_v in_o the_o sanctuary_n more_o near_o to_o the_o holy_a of_o holies_n viz._n the_o shewbread_n and_o the_o incense_n at_o the_o altar_n of_o incense_n which_o have_v respect_n to_o his_o intercession_n for_o we_o at_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n in_o the_o virtue_n and_o by_o the_o merit_n of_o that_o sacrifice_n which_o he_o before_o have_v shed_v and_o offer_v up_o to_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n for_o we_o 3._o such_o as_o be_v offer_v in_o the_o holy_a of_o holies_n where_o the_o high_a priest_n come_v upon_o some_o extraordinary_a and_o special_a occasion_n which_o do_v represent_v the_o full_a attainment_n of_o the_o end_n of_o both_o the_o former_a namely_o our_o full_a access_n unto_o and_o communion_n with_o god_n through_o the_o influence_n both_o of_o the_o death_n and_o oblation_n as_o likewise_o of_o the_o prayer_n and_o intercession_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n for_o we_o the_o two_o latter_a of_o these_o we_o shall_v speak_v unto_o when_o we_o come_v to_o those_o part_n of_o the_o temple_n where_o these_o service_n be_v to_o be_v perform_v but_o the_o first_o sort_n viz._n the_o sacrifice_n and_o offering_n at_o the_o brazen_a altar_n we_o be_v now_o to_o speak_v unto_o these_o sacrifice_n that_o be_v offer_v at_o the_o brazen_a altar_n be_v common_o distribute_v into_o two_o sort_n propitiatory_a and_o eucharistical_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o sacrifice_n of_o expiation_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o thanksgiving_n psal_n 107.22_o it_o be_v the_o former_a sort_n whereof_o the_o text_n speak_v and_o they_o be_v here_o call_v corban_n a_o term_n which_o as_o some_o affirm_v be_v usual_o appropriate_v to_o this_o sort_n of_o offering_n though_o the_o notation_n and_o original_a signification_n of_o it_o be_v more_o general_a for_o the_o open_n whereof_o unto_o you_o i_o
shall_v first_o give_v you_o a_o short_a description_n of_o they_o and_o then_o annex_v some_o additional_a rule_n for_o the_o further_o enlighten_v and_o illustration_n of_o they_o and_o first_o you_o may_v see_v the_o nature_n of_o they_o in_o this_o short_a description_n these_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n be_v holy_a of_o holiness_n or_o offering_n most_o holy_a to_o the_o lord_n for_o atonement_n or_o for_o the_o appease_n of_o his_o wrath_n by_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n to_o shadow_v forth_o the_o true_a atonement_n and_o expiation_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o death_n of_o jesus_n and_o our_o reconciliation_n to_o and_o communion_n with_o god_n through_o he_o 1._o that_o they_o be_v holy_a of_o holiness_n or_o offering_n most_o holy_a to_o the_o lord_n it_o be_v the_o phrase_n which_o the_o scripture_n use_v concern_v they_o leu._n 2.3_o 10._o so_o be_v call_v in_o the_o law_n those_o sacred_a thing_n which_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v touch_v and_o those_o meat_n whereof_o none_o be_v to_o eat_v but_o only_o the_o consecrate_a priest_n in_o the_o holy_a place_n near_o the_o altar_n deodat_n in_o loc_n quodesh_a quodeshim_n only_o there_o be_v some_o limitation_n about_o the_o peace-offering_a of_o which_o afterward_o it_o be_v a_o distinction_n that_o do_v occur_v in_o leu._n 21.22_o he_o shall_v eat_v the_o bread_n of_o his_o god_n both_o of_o the_o most_o holy_a and_o of_o the_o holy_a the_o old_a note_n be_v this_o the_o most_o holy_a as_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n the_o holy_a as_o of_o the_o ten_o and_o first_o fruit_n deodat_n thus_o most_o holy_a as_o be_v the_o shewbread_n the_o meat-offering_n the_o part_n of_o sin-offering_n and_o trespass_n offering_n holy_n such_o as_o be_v the_o first_o fruit_n tithe_n and_o offering_n of_o thanksgiving_n by_o holy_a of_o holiness_n be_v mean_v most_o holy_a that_o language_n elegant_o express_v the_o superlative_a degree_n by_o such_o a_o reduplication_n as_o king_n of_o king_n song_n of_o song_n heaven_n of_o heaven_n that_o be_v the_o most_o excellent_a in_o their_o kind_n so_o holy_a of_o holies_n that_o be_v most_o holy_a the_o other_o sort_n be_v but_o holy_a or_o holiness_n of_o praise_n quodesh_a hillulim_fw-la as_o the_o phrase_n be_v in_o leu._n 19.24_o you_o shall_v count_v the_o fruit_n thereof_o as_o uncircumcised_a three_o year_n but_o in_o the_o four_o year_n all_o the_o fruit_n thereof_o shall_v be_v holiness_n of_o praise_n to_o the_o lord_n the_o ground_n of_o this_o double_a degree_n of_o holiness_n seem_v to_o be_v chief_o this_o the_o more_o immediate_a and_o direct_a relation_n they_o have_v to_o the_o person_n action_n and_o suffering_n of_o the_o messiah_n the_o more_o holy_a these_o legal_a thing_n of_o old_a be_v therefore_o these_o sacrifice_n of_o expiation_n relate_v direct_o to_o the_o great_a work_n of_o our_o redemption_n and_o reconciliation_n unto_o god_n by_o the_o death_n of_o his_o son_n they_o be_v holy_a of_o holiness_n unto_o the_o lord_n 2._o the_o end_n of_o they_o be_v atonement_n of_o their_o sin_n or_o appease_v the_o offend_a justice_n of_o god_n hence_o they_o be_v say_v to_o have_v a_o sweet_a smell_n leu._n 1.9_o gen._n 8.21_o this_o be_v the_o phrase_n leu._n 1.4_o lecapper_n to_o make_v atonement_n apply_v to_o christ_n rom._n 3.25_o 1_o joh._n 2.2_o and_o it_o be_v a_o phrase_n often_o use_v hence_o arise_v the_o distinction_n of_o sacrifice_n from_o their_o end_n and_o use_n some_o be_v for_o atonement_n as_o these_o whereof_o we_o now_o speak_v and_o other_o for_o thanksgiving_n of_o which_o something_o may_v be_v speak_v hereafter_o if_o the_o lord_n will_n god_n be_v angry_a with_o sinner_n justice_n be_v provoke_v and_o burn_v like_o fire_n therefore_o some_o satisfaction_n must_v be_v make_v that_o justice_n may_v be_v satisfy_v and_o god_n atone_v and_o reconcile_v to_o the_o sinner_n 3._o this_o atonement_n be_v make_v by_o the_o death_n or_o destruction_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n this_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o all_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n nothing_o can_v atone_v god_n nothing_o can_v appease_v offend_v justice_n but_o death_n and_o destruction_n the_o sacrifice_n must_v be_v destroy_v either_o in_o whole_a or_o in_o part_n and_o this_o be_v do_v by_o fire_n hence_o they_o be_v call_v fire-offering_n or_o offering_n make_v by_o fire_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ignitiones_n fireing_n oblatio_fw-la ignita_fw-la and_o if_o they_o be_v live_v creature_n they_o must_v be_v slay_v and_o kill_v hence_o call_v zebachim_n in_o greek_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v a_o slaughter_a offer_v in_o which_o sense_n zebach_n be_v contradistinguish_v unto_o mincha_fw-mi the_o former_a be_v of_o live_a creature_n the_o latter_a of_o meat_n and_o drink_v but_o in_o both_o there_o be_v a_o destruction_n of_o the_o thing_n sacrifice_v either_o by_o fire_n if_o it_o be_v of_o inanimate_a thing_n or_o if_o it_o be_v a_o live_a creature_n both_o by_o blood_n and_o fire_n 4._o the_o end_n and_o design_n of_o all_o this_o be_v to_o prefigure_v and_o represent_v the_o death_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o our_o reconciliation_n unto_o god_n thereby_o for_o the_o law_n have_v threaten_v death_n for_o sin_n and_o the_o blood_n of_o bull_n and_o goat_n can_v not_o take_v away_o sin_n heb._n 10._o some_o of_o the_o very_a pagan_n have_v have_v so_o much_o glimmering_n of_o light_n as_o to_o subscribe_v to_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o and_o thence_o satan_n triumph_v over_o the_o fall_v son_n of_o man_n and_o abuse_v and_o pervert_v their_o conviction_n seduce_v they_o in_o the_o distress_n and_o horror_n of_o their_o conscience_n even_o to_o sacrifice_n man_n to_o appease_v their_o angry_a god_n wherein_o the_o act_v upon_o this_o principle_n quod_fw-la pro_fw-la vita_fw-la hominis_fw-la nisi_fw-la vita_fw-la hominis_fw-la reddatur_fw-la non_fw-la posse_fw-la aliter_fw-la deorum_fw-la immortalium_fw-la numen_fw-la placari_fw-la arbitrantur_fw-la as_o caesar_n de_fw-fr bell._n gal._n lib._n 6._o report_n of_o the_o ancient_a druid_n they_o think_v that_o unless_o the_o life_n of_o man_n be_v sacrifice_v for_o his_o life_n the_o deity_n of_o the_o immortal_a god_n can_v not_o otherwise_o be_v appease_v with_fw-mi lee_n temple_n pag._n 332._o homer_n also_o ibid._n wherein_o the_o old_a pagan_n have_v more_o light_a than_o the_o apostate_n jew_n have_v at_o this_o day_n christ_n therefore_o be_v call_v a_o sacrifice_n ephes_n 5.2_o 1_o cor._n 5.7_o christ_n our_o paschal_n lamb_n be_v sacrifice_v for_o we_o and_o as_o they_o refer_v direct_o unto_o christ_n himself_n so_o the_o scripture_n teach_v we_o to_o apply_v they_o in_o a_o low_a way_n to_o the_o saint_n also_o who_o soul_n and_o body_n and_o service_n be_v live_v sacrifice_n acceptable_a unto_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n rom._n 12.1_o heb._n 13._o with_o such_o sacrifice_n god_n be_v well_o please_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n do_v placare_fw-la deum_fw-la appease_v a_o incense_a god_n our_o sacrifice_n do_v but_o placere_fw-la deo_fw-la please_v a_o appease_v god_n thus_o you_o see_v the_o description_n make_v good_a in_o these_o four_o thing_n put_v together_o wherein_o you_o see_v the_o nature_n of_o these_o legal_a offering_n and_o sacrifice_n that_o they_o be_v holy_a of_o holiness_n or_o offering_n most_o holy_a to_o the_o lord_n for_o atonement_n or_o for_o the_o appease_n of_o his_o wrath_n by_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n to_o shadow_v forth_o the_o true_a atonement_n and_o expiation_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o death_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o so_o much_o for_o the_o nature_n of_o they_o which_o be_v the_o first_o enquiry_n for_o further_a rule_n of_o illustration_n which_o be_v the_o second_o take_v these_o proposition_n prop._n 1_o that_o the_o institution_n of_o they_o be_v present_o after_o the_o sin_n and_o fall_n of_o man_n but_o the_o renew_a institution_n and_o further_a direction_n and_o regulation_n of_o they_o be_v by_o moses_n unto_o israel_n i_o say_v the_o first_o institution_n of_o they_o be_v present_o after_o the_o sin_n and_o fall_n of_o man_n for_o there_o neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v any_o use_n of_o they_o before_o the_o first_o intimation_n though_o somewhat_o obscure_a that_o we_o have_v of_o they_o be_v in_o gen._n 3.21_o the_o lord_n make_v they_o coat_n of_o skin_n and_o clothe_v they_o but_o they_o can_v not_o wear_v the_o skin_n until_o the_o beast_n be_v slay_v and_o slay_v they_o be_v it_o be_v like_o for_o sacrifice_n there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o they_o for_o food_n at_o that_o time_n nor_o any_o mention_n of_o the_o use_n of_o such_o food_n till_o noah_n time_n after_o the_o flood_n gen._n 9_o but_o we_o read_v of_o sacrifice_n more_o plain_o gen._n 4.4_o where_o abel_n be_v say_v to_o have_v bring_v a_o offer_n to_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o firstling_n of_o his_o flock_n and_o of_o
the_o fat_a thereof_o which_o be_v a_o godly_a man_n he_o neither_o will_v nor_o dare_v have_v do_v have_v not_o the_o lord_n appoint_v it_o so_o likewise_o noah_n gen._n 8.20_o 21._o build_v a_o altar_n unto_o the_o lord_n and_o take_v of_o every_o clean_a beast_n and_o of_o every_o clean_a fowl_n and_o offer_v burn_v offering_n on_o the_o altar_n and_o the_o lord_n smell_v a_o sweet_a savour_n so_o abraham_n isaac_n jacob._n god_n acceptance_n of_o noah_n sacrifice_n and_o before_o that_o of_o abel_n be_v a_o sufficient_a proof_n and_o evidence_n of_o his_o have_v institute_v and_o appoint_v they_o for_o cultus_fw-la non_fw-la institutus_fw-la non_fw-la aest_n acceptus_fw-la worship_n not_o command_v be_v not_o accept_v see_v likewise_o exod._n 10.25_o and_o 18.12_o where_o they_o be_v use_v among_o the_o jew_n before_o the_o give_v of_o the_o law_n upon_o mount_n sinai_n but_o from_o this_o ancient_a institution_n with_o some_o further_a help_n from_o the_o jew_n the_o heathen_a have_v a_o traditional_a dead_a knowledge_n of_o this_o truth_n but_o as_o they_o forget_v and_o lose_v the_o true_a object_n to_o who_o they_o shall_v have_v offer_v up_o their_o sacrifice_n so_o they_o have_v nothing_o but_o a_o dead_a form_n of_o sacrifice_n whole_o pervert_v from_o their_o true_a and_o right_a end_n and_o use_v therefore_o god_n by_o moses_n restore_v and_o renew_v this_o great_a institution_n therefore_o the_o text_n say_v vers_fw-la ult_n this_o be_v the_o law_n which_o the_o lord_n command_v moses_n in_o the_o day_n that_o he_o command_v the_o child_n of_o israel_n to_o offer_v their_o oblation_n unto_o the_o lord_n the_o institution_n be_v so_o corrupt_v that_o there_o be_v need_n of_o some_o renew_a light_n and_o reformation_n about_o it_o but_o be_v of_o so_o great_a antiquity_n before_o there_o be_v any_o tabernacle_n or_o temple_n or_o priesthood_n or_o festival_n appoint_v therefore_o i_o put_v offering_n and_o sacrifice_n before_o the_o rest_n the_o institution_n of_o they_o be_v much_o more_o ancient_a prop._n 2._o in_o this_o renew_a institution_n and_o regulation_n of_o their_o offering_n and_o sacrifice_n there_o be_v sundry_a adjunct_n and_o ceremony_n some_o whereof_o be_v require_v and_o some_o severe_o forbid_v to_o be_v add_v to_o they_o all_o which_o be_v mystical_a and_o significant_a it_o may_v be_v true_o say_v of_o they_o which_o have_v be_v false_o boast_v concern_v humane_a ceremony_n that_o they_o be_v neither_o dark_a nor_o dumb_a but_o mystical_a and_o significant_a and_o fit_a to_o stir_v up_o the_o dull_a mind_n of_o man_n to_o the_o remembrance_n of_o his_o duty_n towards_o god_n by_o some_o special_a and_o notable_a signification_n whereby_o he_o may_v be_v edify_v they_o have_v their_o spiritual_a signification_n by_o god_n intendment_n and_o appointment_n as_o indeed_o it_o be_v god_n prerogative_n to_o appoint_v mystical_a and_o significant_a ceremony_n in_o his_o worship_n that_o they_o have_v so_o will_v appear_v in_o the_o particular_n both_o ex_fw-la natura_fw-la rei_fw-la from_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o the_o thing_n itself_o and_o by_o conference_n of_o sundry_a other_o scripture_n by_o the_o light_n whereof_o we_o must_v search_v and_o find_v out_o the_o interpretation_n they_o may_v be_v interpret_v and_o apply_v many_o of_o they_o to_o the_o church_n in_o a_o secondary_a way_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o union_n and_o communion_n it_o have_v with_o christ_n as_o well_o as_o unto_o christ_n himself_o primary_o and_o chief_o the_o adjunct_n require_v and_o annex_v to_o they_o be_v many_o which_o will_v come_v to_o be_v speak_v to_o when_o we_o come_v to_o the_o several_a sort_n and_o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n only_o some_o general_n may_v be_v now_o mention_v defer_v the_o explication_n of_o they_o to_o the_o place_n where_o their_o institution_n be_v first_o mention_v as_o 1._o they_o be_v all_o tie_v and_o appropriate_v by_o divine_a institution_n to_o the_o brazen_a altar_n at_o the_o door_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n this_o be_v a_o new_a addition_n in_o moses_n his_o reformation_n for_o they_o have_v sacrifice_n as_o have_v be_v show_v from_o the_o first_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n after_o the_o entrance_n of_o sin_n but_o there_o be_v no_o tabernacle_n nor_o one_o only_a altar_n appoint_v and_o institute_v till_o moses_n his_o time_n 2._o another_o appurtenance_n of_o all_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v salt_n levit._n 2.13_o mark_v 9.49_o every_o sacrifice_n be_v salt_v with_o salt_n 3._o music_n temple_n music_n both_o vocal_a and_o instrumental_a whereof_o the_o former_a sort_n indeed_o be_v moral_a but_o the_o latter_a ceremonial_a while_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v offer_v the_o trumpet_n be_v sound_v and_o other_o musical_a instrument_n 4._o incense_n as_o soon_o as_o they_o have_v offer_v the_o sacrifice_n and_o the_o music_n and_o trumpet_n cease_v the_o priest_n go_v into_o the_o holy_a place_n to_o offer_v incense_n and_o the_o people_n without_o pray_v 5._o many_o ceremonious_a action_n partly_o of_o the_o sinner_n that_o bring_v the_o sacrifice_n but_o chief_o of_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n in_o order_v and_o sacrifice_v of_o it_o and_o here_o among_o the_o rest_n the_o ceremony_n of_o purification_n from_o legal_a and_o ceremonial_a uncleanness_n may_v come_v to_o be_v consider_v such_o as_o these_o be_v the_o adjunct_n require_v the_o adjunct_n forbid_v be_v in_o general_a any_o conformity_n or_o compliance_n with_o the_o pagan_n in_o their_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n deut._n 12.4_o 30.31.32_o you_o shall_v not_o do_v so_o unto_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n what_o thing_n soever_o i_o command_v you_o observe_v to_o do_v it_o thou_o shall_v not_o add_v thereto_o nor_o diminish_v from_o it_o so_o rev._n 14.9_o 10._o compliance_n with_o popish_a worship_n be_v forbid_v under_o pain_n of_o god_n wrath._n particular_o two_o thing_n be_v severe_o interdict_v and_o forbid_v in_o all_o their_o sacrifice_n except_o some_o peculiar_a case_n of_o which_o afterward_o leaven_n and_o honey_n levit._n 2.11_o the_o mystery_n of_o all_o which_o we_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o open_a to_o you_o by_o the_o help_n of_o christ_n in_o our_o further_a progress_n upon_o this_o subject_a prop._n 3._o the_o occasion_n upon_o which_o they_o be_v to_o be_v offer_v be_v of_o all_o sort_n i_o shall_v but_o instance_n in_o four_o head_n of_o thing_n as_o 1._o confer_v ser_n of_o the_o burnt-offering_a on_o levit._n 1._o 1._o when_o under_o guilt_n of_o sin_n for_o this_o be_v the_o direct_a intent_n and_o scope_n of_o they_o all_o they_o be_v to_o offer_v a_o sacrifice_n for_o reconciliation_n 2._o for_o the_o obtain_n of_o any_o needful_a mercy_n and_o for_o the_o prevent_n and_o remove_v of_o any_o judgement_n or_o danger_n either_o impend_a or_o inflict_v as_o 1_o sam._n 7.9_o 10._o samuel_n offer_v a_o lamb_n for_o a_o burn_a offer_v and_o it_o find_v great_a acceptance_n with_o god_n when_o israel_n be_v fight_v against_o the_o philistine_n so_o the_o israelite_n judg._n 20.26_o when_o seek_v unto_o god_n by_o fast_v and_o prayer_n for_o success_n and_o victory_n in_o their_o war_n against_o the_o benjamite_n so_o david_n to_o remove_v the_o plague_n 2._o sam._n 24._o ult_n the_o neglect_n whereof_o in_o great_a enterprise_n have_v sometime_o cause_v a_o good_a cause_n to_o miscarry_v as_o judge_n 20.26_o this_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v one_o of_o the_o fatal_a error_n in_o their_o management_n of_o it_o the_o two_o former_a time_n for_o we_o read_v not_o that_o they_o offer_v sacrifice_n till_o their_o three_o attempt_n 3._o to_o testify_v their_o joy_n and_o thankfulness_n for_o mercy_n receive_v as_o noah_n when_o he_o come_v out_o of_o the_o ark_n gen._n 8.20_o and_o solomon_n when_o he_o have_v obtain_v wisdom_n 1_o king_n 3.15_o 4._o in_o the_o institute_v season_n of_o they_o for_o beside_o vow_n and_o free_a will-offering_n upon_o such_o emergency_n of_o providence_n as_o those_o before_o mention_v there_o be_v many_o case_n wherein_o they_o be_v institute_v and_o require_v as_o when_o a_o priest_n be_v to_o be_v consecrate_a a_o unclean_a person_n to_o be_v purify_v any_o festival_n or_o holiday_n to_o be_v celebrate_v they_o have_v all_o their_o respective_a sacrifice_n and_o offering_n appoint_v by_o the_o law_n thus_o you_o see_v the_o nature_n of_o these_o legal_a sacrifice_n as_o also_o the_o first_o institution_n the_o adjunct_n and_o occasion_n of_o they_o as_o to_o the_o several_a sort_n and_o kind_n of_o they_o the_o next_o doctrine_n will_v inform_v you_o viz._n doct._n 2._o that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o propitiation_n under_o the_o law_n may_v be_v refer_v to_o these_o six_o kind_n or_o sort_n namely_o the_o burnt-offering_a the_o meat_n offer_v the_o sin_z offering_z the_o trespass-offering_a the_o offer_n of_o consecration_n and_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o peace-offering_n they_o be_v and_o may_v be_v several_a way_n distinguish_v and_o
distribute_v but_o i_o shall_v content_v myself_o at_o present_a with_o this_o distribution_n in_o the_o text_n and_o shall_v speak_v unto_o they_o as_o the_o lord_n shall_v enable_v i_o in_o the_o order_n wherein_o the_o text_n have_v set_v they_o down_o before_o we_o the_o word_n whereof_o be_v a_o short_a recapitulation_n of_o the_o general_a head_n of_o the_o seven_o first_o chapter_n of_o this_o book_n all_o which_o treat_v upon_o these_o several_a sort_n of_o sacrifice_n and_o offering_n with_o the_o rule_n and_o rite_n appertain_v to_o they_o which_o have_v be_v deliver_v and_o lay_v down_o at_o large_a the_o text_n conclude_v and_o wind_n up_o all_o thus_o this_o be_v the_o law_n of_o the_o burnt-offering_a and_o of_o the_o meat-offering_a etc._n etc._n quest_n wherein_o lie_v the_o difference_n between_o these_o several_a kind_n and_o sort_n of_o sacrifice_n ans_fw-fr there_o be_v some_o thing_n wherein_o they_o all_o agree_v namely_o in_o all_o those_o general_a thing_n before_o mention_v in_o the_o description_n and_o explication_n of_o they_o as_o 1._o they_o be_v all_o offer_v at_o the_o brazen_a altar_n and_o so_o be_v offering_n of_o a_o low_a nature_n also_o but_o 2._o these_o be_v all_o quodesh_a quodeshim_n most_o holy_a holy_a of_o holiness_n 3._o they_o be_v all_o ishim_n offering_n make_v by_o fire_n 4._o they_o be_v all_o propitiatory_a they_o do_v serve_v for_o expiation_n and_o atonement_n therefore_o they_o differ_v not_o in_o the_o general_a nature_n or_o in_o the_o general_a scope_n and_o intent_n of_o they_o which_o be_v the_o same_o in_o all_o namely_o to_o shadow_v forth_o christ_n in_o his_o death_n as_o the_o true_a sacrifice_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o in_o other_o mystery_n of_o his_o wisdom_n and_o grace_n and_o love_n in_o the_o gospel_n of_o our_o salvation_n but_o the_o difference_n consist_v in_o three_o thing_n 1._o partly_o in_o the_o different_a matter_n of_o they_o as_o a_o ox_n or_o a_o sheep_n in_o some_o flower_n and_o wine_n in_o other_o of_o they_o 2._o partly_o in_o the_o particular_a end_n and_o design_n and_o occasion_n of_o they_o some_o be_v for_o sin_n of_o ignorance_n as_o the_o sin_n offer_v some_o for_o sin_n against_o knowledge_n as_o trespass_n offering_n some_o for_o consecration_n of_o the_o priest_n etc._n etc._n 3._o partly_o yea_o principal_o in_o the_o different_a ceremony_n accompany_v they_o some_o be_v cut_v in_o piece_n as_o sheep_n and_o ox_n but_o some_o be_v only_o slit_v in_o the_o middle_n but_o not_o cut_v asunder_o as_o bird_n and_o various_a other_o ceremony_n there_o be_v as_o you_o will_v see_v further_o when_o we_o come_v to_o open_v and_o explain_v the_o several_a sort_n and_o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n at_o present_a i_o shall_v conclude_v with_o two_o word_n of_o use_n from_o all_o that_o have_v be_v say_v use_v 1_o let_v we_o learn_v this_o great_a lesson_n to_o keep_v close_o to_o the_o rule_n of_o divine_a institution_n in_o matter_n of_o worship_n i_o beseech_v you_o mark_v the_o text_n how_o emphatical_a the_o expression_n be_v this_o be_v the_o law_n of_o all_o the_o several_a sort_n of_o sacrifice_n which_o the_o lord_n command_v moses_n when_o he_o command_v the_o child_n of_o israel_n to_o offer_v their_o oblation_n etc._n etc._n as_o they_o do_v nothing_o but_o what_o the_o lord_n command_v moses_n so_o we_o shall_v do_v nothing_o but_o what_o christ_n have_v command_v we_o make_v that_o your_o great_a enquiry_n in_o all_o thing_n that_o concern_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n have_v the_o lord_n command_v it_o be_v the_o command_n go_v forth_o from_o mount_n zion_n for_o it_o yea_o or_o no_o the_o apostle_n be_v limit_v mat._n 28._o ult_n in_o their_o preach_n to_o teach_v only_o what_o christ_n have_v command_v they_o have_v they_o teach_v their_o own_o invention_n they_o have_v exceed_v their_o commission_n they_o have_v not_o be_v faithful_a to_o their_o trust_n but_o they_o be_v faithful_a in_o teach_v and_o transmit_v to_o the_o church_n what_o the_o lord_n himself_o have_v teach_v and_o command_v they_o 1_o cor._n 11.23_o what_o i_o receive_v of_o the_o lord_n that_o i_o deliver_v unto_o you_o that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n the_o same_o night_n in_o which_o he_o be_v betray_v take_v bread_n etc._n etc._n when_o a_o minister_n baptise_v with_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n or_o any_o such_o like_a superstition_n he_o can_v say_v i_o receive_v this_o from_o the_o lord_n practice_v nothing_o which_o the_o word_n do_v not_o require_v omit_v nothing_o that_o the_o word_n do_v require_v whatever_o worldly_a trouble_n or_o danger_n you_o incur_v use_v 2._o see_v the_o worth_n and_o value_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o it_o for_o the_o justification_n and_o salvation_n of_o lose_a sinner_n for_o what_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o all_o these_o offering_n and_o sacrifice_n whereof_o they_o have_v so_o great_a a_o multitude_n and_o so_o many_o several_a sort_n and_o kind_n of_o they_o under_o the_o law_n but_o to_o lead_v we_o by_o the_o hand_n to_o jesus_n christ_n to_o the_o true_a sacrifice_n and_o atonement_n that_o be_v in_o his_o death_n and_o blood_n for_o he_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n 1_o joh._n 2.2_o this_o be_v the_o scope_n and_o design_n of_o they_o all_o for_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o such_o sacrifice_n shall_v do_v the_o work_n of_o make_v satisfaction_n to_o divine_a justice_n and_o reconcile_a god_n and_o sinner_n therefore_o they_o be_v not_o to_o terminate_v their_o thought_n there_o but_o to_o look_v beyond_o they_o to_o jesus_n christ_n in_o who_o both_o we_o and_o they_o be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n that_o this_o be_v the_o scope_n of_o they_o appear_v throughout_o the_o new_a testament_n therefore_o christ_n be_v call_v a_o sacrifice_n ephes_n 5.2_o and_o a_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n 1_o joh._n 2.2_o and_o hence_o the_o apostle_n so_o argue_v heb._n 9.13_o 14._o if_o the_o blood_n of_o bull_n and_o goat_n and_o the_o ash_n of_o a_o heiser_n sprinkle_v the_o unclean_a sanctifi_v to_o the_o purify_n of_o the_o flesh_n how_o much_o more_o shall_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n who_o through_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n offer_v himself_o with_o out_o spot_n to_o god_n purge_v your_o conscience_n from_o dead_a work_n to_o serve_v the_o live_a god_n the_o gospel_n of_o the_o burnt-offering_a 1668._o june_n 21_o and_o 28._o 1668._o levit._fw-la cap._n 1._o of_o the_o burnt-offering_a yola_n the_o first_o sort_n of_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n under_o the_o law_n be_v the_o burn_v offer_v this_o be_v set_v down_o first_o in_o that_o enumeration_n of_o they_o leu._n 7.37_o and_o teach_v first_o in_o this_o book_n as_o be_v the_o chief_a and_o of_o most_o common_a and_o continual_a use_n i_o shall_v speak_v to_o it_o somewhat_o the_o more_o large_o because_o it_o will_v give_v light_n unto_o the_o other_o sort_n of_o sacrifice_n that_o follow_v wherein_o we_o may_v be_v more_o brief_a the_o institution_n of_o it_o be_v record_v in_o this_o place_n i_o know_v not_o how_o to_o speak_v to_o it_o better_o than_o in_o the_o way_n of_o a_o exposition_n upon_o this_o chapter_n borrow_v also_o some_o further_a light_n out_o of_o other_o scripture_n and_o out_o of_o other_o chapter_n of_o this_o book_n and_o particular_o the_o 6_o where_o some_o thing_n be_v further_o explain_v it_o be_v call_v the_o burnt-offering_a or_o the_o whole_a burnt-offering_a because_o it_o be_v to_o be_v whole_o burn_v and_o consume_v in_o the_o fire_n except_o only_o the_o skin_n in_o hebrew_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d from_o the_o root_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ascendit_fw-la because_o be_v whole_o burn_v it_o ascend_v and_o go_v up_o to_o heaven_n in_o smoke_n and_o vapour_n in_o greek_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o special_a occasion_n upon_o which_o it_o be_v to_o be_v offer_v be_v many_o and_o various_a sacrifice_n confer_v on_o leu._n 7.37_o 38._o of_o the_o general_a occasion_n of_o sacrifice_n they_o may_v be_v refer_v to_o three_o head_n 1._o such_o as_o be_v providential_a as_o upon_o all_o emergent_a occasion_n when_o they_o have_v gild_n or_o judgement_n to_o be_v remove_v or_o prevent_v or_o mercy_n to_o be_v bestow_v and_o acknowledge_v of_o these_o see_v leu._n 22.18_o 2._o such_o incidental_a occasion_n wherein_o they_o be_v require_v by_o the_o law_n as_o at_o the_o consecration_n of_o priest_n exod._n 29.18_o and_o of_o the_o levite_n numb_a 8.12_o at_o the_o purification_n of_o unclean_a person_n and_o upon_o several_a other_o occasion_n 3._o at_o their_o state_v festival_n and_o appoint_a season_n which_o be_v both_o daily_a weekly_o monthly_a and_o anniversary_n of_o which_o hereafter_o among_o the_o rest_n there_o be_v a_o constant_a burnt-offering_a every_o day_n or_o
rather_o two_o burnt-offering_n the_o one_o in_o the_o morning_n and_o the_o other_o at_o evening_n exod._n 29.38_o 42._o numb_a 28.3_o 4._o call_v the_o juge_n sacrificium_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d whereof_o daniel_n speak_v how_o it_o be_v profane_o interrupt_v by_o antiochus_n dan._n 8.11_o 12._o the_o end_n of_o it_o as_o of_o the_o rest_n be_v atonement_n reconciliation_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n verse_n 9_o a_o savour_n of_o rest_n or_o a_o sweet_a savour_n for_o as_o a_o sweet_a smell_n refresh_v and_o quiet_v the_o sense_n so_o christ_n oblation_n appease_v god_n spirit_n ainsw_n in_o loc_n hence_o be_v that_o phrase_n ezra_n 6.9_o 10._o sacrifice_n of_o rest_n or_o of_o sweet_a savour_n to_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n so_o ephes_n 5.2_o christ_n give_v himself_o for_o we_o a_o offer_v and_o a_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n for_o a_o sweet_a smell_a savour_n the_o law_n and_o ordinance_n of_o the_o burnt-offering_a be_v either_o concern_v the_o matter_n of_o it_o or_o the_o action_n to_o be_v perform_v about_o it_o which_o be_v different_a according_a to_o the_o different_a matter_n of_o it_o will_v come_v in_o under_o the_o several_a sort_n of_o matter_n whereof_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v to_o consist_v which_o be_v in_o general_a clean_a creature_n this_o rule_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v in_o all_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o it_o be_v very_o ancient_a for_o we_o read_v of_o this_o distinction_n of_o beast_n into_o clean_a and_o unclean_a even_o in_o noah_n time_n gen._n 7.2_o and_o gen._n 8.20_o there_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o cleanness_n of_o the_o irrational_a creature_n clean_o for_o sacrifice_n and_o clean_o for_o food_n of_o the_o cleanness_n for_o food_n we_o read_v in_o leu._n 11._o which_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v then_o first_o appoint_v for_o to_o the_o son_n of_o noah_n there_o be_v no_o such_o restriction_n give_v but_o a_o large_a and_o general_a commission_n to_o eat_v any_o wholesome_a flesh_n gen._n 9.3_o every_o move_a thing_n that_o live_v shall_v be_v meat_n for_o you_o but_o the_o cleanness_n and_o uncleanness_n for_o sacrifice_n seem_v to_o have_v be_v from_o the_o very_a first_o institution_n of_o sacrifice_n the_o rule_n whereof_o in_o general_n be_v this_o that_o there_o be_v no_o wild_a beast_n or_o fowl_n no_o ravenous_a carnivorous_a beast_n or_o bird_n of_o prey_n allow_v in_o sacrifice_n but_o such_o as_o be_v of_o the_o mild_a sort_n the_o reason_n whereof_o be_v think_v to_o be_v partly_o from_o their_o property_n be_v more_o harmless_a and_o innocent_a more_o useful_a and_o profitable_a and_o serviceable_a creature_n to_o man_n use_n and_o so_o fit_a to_o signify_v the_o like_a thing_n in_o christ_n and_o in_o his_o people_n and_o partly_o because_o of_o man_n peculiar_a possession_n and_o propriety_n in_o they_o be_v more_o full_o in_o his_o power_n and_o possession_n than_o the_o wild_a beast_n of_o the_o field_n or_o if_o no_o reason_n for_o it_o can_v be_v assign_v we_o must_v acquiesce_v in_o the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o god_n so_o ordain_v and_o appoint_v as_o why_o not_o a_o hen_n as_o well_o as_o a_o young_a pigeon_n how_o abominable_a it_o be_v to_o transgress_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o their_o sacrifice_n you_o may_v see_v by_o those_o expression_n in_o isai_n 66.3_o he_o that_o kill_v a_o ox_n be_v as_o if_o he_o slay_v a_o man_n he_o that_o sacrifice_v a_o lamb_n as_o if_o he_o cut_v off_o a_o dog_n neck_n he_o that_o offer_v a_o oblation_n as_o if_o he_o offer_v swine_n blood_n in_o all_o which_o the_o lord_n express_v the_o great_a detestation_n by_o those_o resemblance_n and_o comparison_n but_o in_o this_o the_o heathen_a great_o corrupt_v themselves_o for_o as_o they_o forget_v and_o lose_v the_o true_a object_n of_o worship_n offer_v their_o sacrifice_n to_o devil_n and_o not_o unto_o god_n 1_o cor._n 10.20_o so_o they_o sacrifice_v all_o sort_n of_o creature_n without_o any_o difference_n of_o clean_a or_o unclean_a even_a swine_n wherein_o the_o jew_n also_o do_v corrupt_v themselves_o at_o least_o so_o far_o as_o to_o the_o eat_n of_o it_o as_o appear_v out_o of_o isai_n 65.4_o yea_o they_o proceed_v so_o far_o as_o to_o sacrifice_v man_n their_o son_n and_o daughter_n a_o horrible_a thing_n which_o the_o lord_n command_v not_o and_o which_o never_o come_v into_o his_o heart_n jer._n 7.31_o for_o as_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o the_o blood_n of_o bull_n and_o goat_n shall_v take_v away_o sin_n so_o neither_o can_v the_o blood_n of_o man_n do_v it_o but_o only_o of_o that_o man_n who_o be_v god_n also_o act._n 20.28_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o burnt-offering_a which_o be_v approve_v and_o appoint_v of_o god_n be_v of_o three_o sort_n of_o the_o herd_n that_o be_v the_o big_a sort_n of_o cattle_n and_o of_o the_o flock_n that_o be_v the_o lesser_a sort_n of_o cattle_n and_o of_o the_o fowl_n and_o so_o this_o chapter_n divide_v itself_o into_o these_o three_o part_n 1._o the_o burnt-offering_a of_o the_o herd_n to_o vers_n 10._o 2._o the_o burnt-offering_a of_o the_o flock_n vers_fw-la 10._o to_o vers_n 14._o 3._o the_o burnt-offering_a of_o fowl_n vers_fw-la 14._o to_o the_o end_n 1._o the_o burnt-offering_a of_o the_o herd_n we_o may_v here_o consider_v the_o matter_n of_o it_o and_o the_o action_n to_o be_v perform_v about_o it_o 1._o the_o matter_n of_o the_o offer_n be_v a_o bullock_n a_o male_a without_o blemish_n vers_fw-la 3._o see_v this_o law_n repeat_v and_o confirm_v leu._n 22.20_o to_o 24._o see_v mal._n 1.7_o 8_o 14._o and_o be_v so_o vehement_o insist_v on_o we_o may_v well_o think_v it_o be_v not_o without_o some_o special_a mystery_n the_o best_a and_o most_o perfect_a be_v fit_a for_o so_o great_a a_o god_n moreover_o this_o do_v also_o figure_n and_o represent_v jesus_n christ_n his_o perfection_n in_o himself_o and_o we_o in_o he_o he_o be_v a_o male_a and_o without_o spot_n or_o blemish_n 1_o pet._n 1.19_o a_o sacrifice_n of_o absolute_a purity_n and_o perfection_n and_o the_o like_a expression_n be_v use_v concern_v christ_n mystical_a in_o ephes_n 5.27_o without_o spot_n or_o wrinkle_n or_o any_o such_o thing_n holy_a and_o without_o blemish_n we_o shall_v be_v so_o perfect_o at_o that_o day_n and_o in_o this_o life_n in_o some_o degree_n there_o be_v a_o perfection_n of_o sincerity_n here_o there_o be_v a_o blameless_a spotless_a conversation_n as_o the_o burnt-offering_n of_o old_a so_o shall_v we_o and_o all_o our_o sacrifice_n and_o offering_n to_o the_o lord_n be_v we_o shall_v serve_v he_o with_o the_o best_a we_o have_v the_o best_a of_o our_o time_n and_o strength_n the_o vigour_n of_o our_o spirit_n the_o utmost_a improvement_n of_o all_o our_o ability_n in_o his_o service_n and_o to_o his_o glory_n we_o shall_v sacrifice_v all_o to_o he_o 2._o the_o action_n to_o be_v perform_v about_o it_o for_o the_o lord_n be_v please_v to_o ordain_v and_o appoint_v sundry_a mystical_a and_o significant_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n to_o be_v use_v about_o the_o burnt-offering_a which_o be_v full_a of_o teach_v and_o spiritual_a mystery_n for_o what_o have_v be_v vain_o and_o false_o boast_v and_o arrogate_a to_o religious_a ceremony_n of_o man_n devise_v it_o be_v most_o true_a concern_v these_o divine_a ceremony_n that_o they_o be_v neither_o dark_a nor_o dumb_a but_o mystical_a and_o significant_a and_o fit_a to_o stir_v up_o the_o dull_a mind_n of_o man_n to_o the_o remembrance_n of_o his_o duty_n towards_o god_n by_o some_o special_a and_o notable_a signification_n whereby_o he_o may_v be_v edify_v i_o shall_v enumerate_v they_o with_o some_o short_a hint_n of_o instruction_n from_o they_o in_o nine_o particular_n as_o they_o lie_v before_o we_o in_o the_o text_n which_o mention_n at_o least_o nine_o ceremonial_a action_n about_o the_o burnt-offering_a 1._o the_o offerer_n be_v to_o bring_v it_o to_o the_o door_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o congregation_n before_o the_o lord_n 2._o lay_v his_o hand_n upon_o it_o 3._o the_o priest_n must_v kill_v it_o 4._o he_o must_v pour_v out_o the_o blood_n and_o sprinkle_v it_o round_o about_o 5._o flay_v and_o cut_v it_o in_o piece_n 6._o the_o piece_n to_o be_v salt_v 7._o the_o leg_n and_o inward_o wash_v 8._o all_o must_v be_v lay_v upon_o the_o altar_n and_o burn_v with_o fire_n and_o 9_o the_o ash_n carry_v out_o of_o the_o camp_n into_o a_o clean_a place_n 1._o the_o offerer_n be_v to_o bring_v it_o to_o the_o door_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o congregation_n before_o the_o face_n of_o the_o lord_n vers_fw-la 3._o great_a weight_n be_v lay_v upon_o this_o leu._n 17.1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o 5_o 6_o 7_o 8_o and_o 9_o we_o may_v learn_v three_o or_o four_o thing_n out_o of_o this_o 1._o here_o be_v a_o voluntary_a act_n of_o the_o offerer_n for_o
the_o priest_n be_v not_o to_o go_v to_o he_o to_o fetch_v it_o but_o the_o man_n himself_o be_v to_o bring_v it_o vers_fw-la 3._o of_o his_o own_o voluntary_a will_n so_o christ_n die_v willing_o and_o offer_v up_o himself_o a_o sacrifice_n and_o a_o whole_a burnt-offering_a unto_o god_n for_o we_o ephes_n 5.2_o joh._n 10.18_o i_o lay_v down_o my_o life_n of_o myself_o so_o shall_v we_o in_o all_o our_o service_n be_v a_o willing_a people_n we_o shall_v come_v before_o the_o lord_n with_o willing_a mind_n when_o we_o present_v our_o corban_n our_o gift_n service_n and_o oblation_n to_o he_o god_n love_v a_o cheerful_a giver_n 2_o cor._n 9.7_o 2._o this_o lead_v we_o by_o the_o hand_n and_o point_v every_o way_n to_o jesus_n christ_n as_o the_o cause_n of_o our_o acceptance_n with_o the_o lord_n in_o that_o they_o be_v to_o bring_v it_o to_o the_o door_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o congregation_n to_o be_v offer_v upon_o the_o altar_n which_o stand_v there_o for_o christ_n be_v both_o the_o door_n and_o the_o tabernacle_n and_o the_o altar_n and_o the_o priest_n he_o be_v the_o door_n of_o the_o sheep_n joh._n 10.7_o and_o he_o be_v the_o true_a tabernacle_n and_o the_o sanctuary_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v pitch_v and_o not_o man_n heb._n 8.2_o a_o great_a and_o more_o perfect_a tabernacle_n not_o make_v with_o hand_n heb._n 9.11_o and_o he_o be_v the_o altar_n heb._n 13.10_o which_o sanctify_v the_o gift_n and_o make_v it_o accept_v mat._n 23.19_o and_o christ_n be_v the_o priest_n also_o that_o present_v and_o offer_v up_o our_o sacrifice_n to_o the_o lord_n he_o be_v often_o call_v a_o priest_n and_o our_o great_a high_a priest_n this_o therefore_o teach_v we_o that_o all_o our_o access_n unto_o and_o acceptation_n with_o the_o lord_n be_v only_o in_o and_o through_o jesus_n christ_n it_o be_v through_o he_o alone_o that_o our_o service_n and_o sacrifice_n be_v accept_v there_o be_v no_o acceptance_n out_o of_o christ_n for_o he_o that_o neglect_v this_o be_v to_o be_v cut_v off_o leu._n 17.8_o 9_o 3._o they_o be_v to_o bring_v it_o hither_o before_o the_o face_n of_o the_o lord_n or_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n this_o refer_v to_o the_o holy_a of_o all_o where_o god_n dwell_v and_o where_o his_o presence_n do_v appear_v so_o the_o meaning_n be_v that_o we_o be_v to_o see_v god_n in_o all_o our_o service_n and_o to_o eye_n the_o presence_n of_o god_n and_o that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v see_v there_o and_o there_o only_o even_o in_o and_o by_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n luk._n 1.75_o that_o we_o may_v serve_v he_o before_o he_o 2_o cor._n 4.6_o the_o light_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n in_o the_o face_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 4._o the_o tabernacle_n be_v a_o type_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v often_o call_v the_o tabernacle_n and_o temple_n and_o house_n of_o god_n we_o be_v to_o worship_n god_n in_o his_o church_n in_o the_o assembly_n of_o his_o people_n heb._n 10.25_o and_o 12.22_o 23._o so_o much_o for_o the_o first_o ceremonial_a action_n about_o the_o burnt-offering_a 2._o the_o sinner_n that_o bring_v the_o sacrifice_n be_v to_o lay_v his_o hand_n upon_o the_o head_n of_o it_o vers_fw-la 4._o this_o be_v not_o require_v in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o fowl_n but_o only_o of_o beast_n see_v the_o like_a exod._n 29.10_o there_o be_v some_o controversy_n here_o whether_o he_o be_v to_o lay_v on_o his_o right_a hand_n or_o his_o left_a hand_n or_o both_o but_o see_v it_o be_v in_o the_o singular_a number_n and_o see_v it_o be_v express_o command_v that_o the_o priest_n shall_v lay_v on_o both_o his_o hand_n leu._n 16.21_o that_o be_v both_o for_o his_o own_o sin_n and_o the_o people_n therefore_o it_o be_v think_v by_o some_o not_o improbable_o that_o when_o any_o of_o the_o people_n offer_v he_o lay_v on_o but_o one_o hand_n but_o whether_o the_o right_a or_o the_o left_a we_o may_v suppose_v that_o whatsoever_o be_v not_o limit_v by_o god_n be_v leave_v at_o liberty_n this_o ceremony_n relate_v to_o the_o confession_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o translation_n of_o the_o guilt_n of_o it_o upon_o the_o sacrifice_n the_o offerer_n in_o this_o ceremony_n disburthen_v himself_o of_o sin_n and_o put_v over_o his_o own_o gild_n upon_o the_o sacrifice_n so_o it_o be_v explain_v leu._n 16.21_o he_o shall_v lay_v on_o his_o hand_n and_o confess_v over_o he_o the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n so_o christ_n have_v bear_v our_o sin_n and_o carry_v our_o sorrow_n isa_n 53.4_o 5._o and_o we_o be_v to_o confess_v our_o sin_n over_o he_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o through_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o sacrifice_n it_o shall_v be_v forgive_v we_o 1_o joh._n 1.7_o 9_o 3._o the_o sacrifice_n must_v be_v kill_v and_o slay_v and_o that_o upon_o the_o north_n side_n of_o the_o altar_n vers_fw-la 5._o and_o vers_n 11._o it_o be_v question_v here_o who_o do_v this_o whether_o he_o that_o bring_v the_o offer_n or_o the_o priest_n but_o doubtless_o it_o be_v the_o priest_n for_o it_o be_v say_v of_o he_o that_o kill_v the_o offer_n that_o he_o shall_v stay_v it_o vers_fw-la 5_o 6._o but_o that_o be_v the_o priest_n work_n and_o to_o the_o kill_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o beast_n answer_v the_o wring_v off_o the_o head_n of_o sacrifice_a fowl_n but_o this_o be_v express_o affirm_v to_o be_v the_o priest_n work_n vers_fw-la 15._o only_o this_o we_o find_v that_o the_o levite_n be_v add_v to_o the_o priest_n to_o assist_v they_o and_o help_v they_o in_o the_o whole_a work_n of_o their_o ministry_n numb_a 8.19_o and_o we_o find_v it_o often_o record_v that_o they_o do_v so_o 2_o chron._n 29.34_o therefore_o in_o vers_n 22._o of_o that_o chap._n where_o the_o killer_n and_o the_o priest_n be_v distinguish_v it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v concern_v the_o people_n as_o if_o they_o have_v kill_v the_o offering_n but_o rather_o the_o levite_n see_v likewise_o 1_o chron._n 23.28_o 31._o and_o 2_o chron._n 35.10_o 11._o so_o much_o for_o the_o literal_a explication_n of_o this_o ceremony_n now_o for_o the_o mystery_n and_o meaning_n of_o it_o what_o may_v be_v note_v from_o hence_o concern_v action_n and_o administration_n proper_o and_o peculiar_o ministerial_a we_o shall_v observe_v when_o we_o come_v to_o that_o place_n to_o the_o legal_a priesthood_n and_o ministry_n but_o it_o be_v plain_a and_o obvious_a that_o it_o hold_v forth_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n the_o messiah_n be_v slay_v and_o cut_v off_o dan._n 9.26_o his_o soul_n be_v make_v a_o offer_n for_o sin_n isa_n 53.10_o as_o to_o that_o circumstance_n of_o kill_v it_o on_o the_o north_n side_n of_o the_o altar_n vers_fw-la 11._o the_o same_o rule_n be_v give_v concern_v the_o sin-offering_a leu._n 6.25_o and_o the_o trespass_n offer_v leu._n 7.1_o 2._o there_o be_v various_a application_n of_o this_o some_o think_v there_o be_v no_o further_a mystery_n in_o it_o but_o that_o the_o tabernacle_n door_n and_o the_o altar_n be_v so_o situate_a and_o place_v that_o on_o the_o north_n side_n there_o be_v more_o space_n for_o such_o act_n as_o require_v most_o room_n as_o the_o kill_n and_o dress_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n do_v so_o our_o own_o annotator_n but_o other_o conceive_v this_o law_n be_v not_o without_o something_o of_o mystery_n in_o it_o some_o note_n how_o their_o great_a trouble_n and_o suffering_n be_v from_o the_o north_n jeremiah_n see_v a_o seething_n pot_n and_o the_o face_n thereof_o be_v towards_o the_o north._n jer._n 1.13_o and_o then_o vers_n 14._o out_o of_o the_o north_n a_o evil_n shall_v break_v forth_o upon_o all_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o land_n therefore_o some_o conceive_v that_o to_o restrain_v the_o evil_n and_o judgement_n of_o god_n the_o offering_n be_v slay_v on_o the_o north_n side_n of_o the_o altar_n also_o that_o the_o situation_n of_o the_o temple_n be_v on_o the_o north_n side_n of_o the_o city_n psal_n 48.2_o mount_v zion_n on_o the_o side_n of_o the_o north._n moreover_o here_o be_v no_o regard_n have_v to_o the_o sun_n and_o to_o the_o east_n but_o thither_o the_o ash_n be_v carry_v forth_o as_o vers_n 16._o whereas_o the_o heathen_a be_v accustom_v to_o sacrifice_n and_o to_o direct_v their_o worship_n towards_o the_o east_n and_o towards_o the_o sun_n which_o they_o make_v a_o idol_n of_o in_o opposition_n to_o which_o idolatry_n as_o some_o conceive_v the_o lord_n appoint_v his_o people_n to_o sacrifice_v towards_o the_o north._n and_o last_o the_o gospel_n have_v prevail_v more_o in_o the_o northern_a hemisphere_n of_o the_o world_n which_o also_o be_v more_o inhabit_v than_o in_o the_o southern_a ezekiel_n in_o his_o vision_n of_o the_o holy_a city_n do_v first_o describe_v the_o
leave_v for_o any_o excuse_n if_o they_o can_v bring_v a_o ox_n the_o lord_n will_v accept_v a_o couple_n of_o turtle_n dove_n or_o young_a pigeon_n the_o lord_n accept_v these_o small_a sacrifice_n from_o the_o poor_a as_o well_o as_o great_a from_o the_o rich_a sort_n of_o people_n see_v verse_n 17._o it_o be_v of_o a_o sweet_a savour_n to_o the_o lord_n this_o offer_v be_v bring_v by_o the_o parent_n of_o jesus_n christ_n luke_n 2.24_o as_o to_o the_o build_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n he_o that_o can_v not_o offer_v gold_n or_o silk_n or_o purple_n may_v bring_v goat_n hair_n exod._n 35.5_o 6._o therefore_o let_v not_o poor_a people_n be_v discourage_v alas_o i_o have_v no_o estate_n i_o have_v no_o part_n nor_o learning_n it_o may_v be_v so_o but_o god_n accept_v of_o mean_a service_n where_o there_o be_v but_o mean_a ability_n for_o if_o there_o be_v first_o a_o willing_a mind_n it_o be_v accept_v according_a to_o that_o a_o man_n have_v and_o not_o according_a to_o that_o he_o have_v not_o 2_o cor._n 8.12_o i_o may_v add_v that_o the_o burden_n be_v much_o easy_a under_o the_o gospel_n god_n do_v not_o put_v we_o upon_o such_o costly_a service_n such_o a_o chargeable_a religion_n as_o they_o be_v under_o the_o law_n especial_o in_o these_o latter_a day_n there_o be_v not_o a_o servant_n in_o a_o family_n but_o may_v be_v able_a to_o buy_v a_o bible_n and_o so_o to_o read_v the_o word_n of_o god_n now_o for_o the_o particular_n they_o be_v of_o two_o sort_n lesser_a cattle_n and_o fowl_n concern_v the_o offer_n of_o the_o lesser_a sort_n of_o cattle_n there_o be_v nothing_o peculiar_a in_o the_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n thereof_o save_v only_o that_o of_o kill_v it_o at_o the_o north_n side_n of_o the_o altar_n which_o belong_v indeed_o to_o other_o sacrifice_n also_o and_o be_v therefore_o speak_v to_o before_o upon_o the_o burnt-offering_a of_o the_o big_a sort_n of_o cattle_n the_o three_o and_o last_o part_n of_o the_o chapter_n be_v concern_v the_o burnt-offering_a of_o bird_n or_o fowl_n vers_fw-la 14_o to_o the_o end_n we_o be_v to_o note_v here_o what_o bird_n they_o be_v and_o what_o be_v the_o ceremonial_a action_n about_o they_o the_o bird_n be_v not_o raven_n and_o vulture_n and_o such_o like_a but_o dove_n and_o pigeon_n and_o sparrow_n at_o least_o in_o that_o peculiar_a case_n of_o the_o leprosy_n leu._n 14._o the_o dove_n be_v often_o commend_v in_o the_o scripture_n for_o innocency_n and_o harmlesness_n mat._n 10.16_o be_v you_o wise_a as_o serpent_n and_o harmless_a as_o dove_n the_o spirit_n appear_v as_o a_o dove_n mat._n 3.16_o so_o be_v the_o saint_n psal_n 74.19_o deliver_v not_o the_o soul_n of_o thy_o turtle_n dove_n and_o often_o in_o the_o song_n of_o solomon_n my_o love_n my_o dove_n all_o the_o practical_a application_n i_o shall_v make_v of_o it_o shall_v be_v this_o believer_n themselves_o be_v live_a sacrifice_n unto_o god_n but_o if_o thy_o sacrifice_n be_v accept_v thou_o must_v be_v a_o dove_n not_o a_o bird_n of_o prey_n but_o harmless_a as_o dove_n the_o ceremonious_a action_n about_o they_o aim_v at_o the_o same_o general_a scope_n with_o the_o ceremonious_a action_n about_o the_o burnt-offering_a of_o cattle_n whereof_o we_o speak_v before_o and_o divers_a of_o they_o be_v the_o same_o there_o be_v only_o three_o differ_v ceremony_n in_o the_o burn_a offer_v of_o fowl_n whereof_o we_o be_v now_o to_o speak_v 1._o that_o the_o priest_n shall_v wring_v off_o his_o head_n vers_n 15._o which_o the_o old_a geneva_n note_n explain_v thus_o the_o hebrew_a word_n signify_v to_o pinch_v off_o with_o the_o nail_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ungue_fw-la secuit_fw-la it_o occure_v only_o here_o and_o in_o leu._n 5.8_o where_o the_o same_o rule_n be_v give_v concern_v the_o trespass-offering_a the_o rule_n concern_v the_o burnt-offering_a of_o cattle_n be_v only_o to_o kill_v they_o that_o be_v with_o the_o sacrifice_a knife_n to_o cut_v the_o throat_n and_o so_o let_v out_o the_o life_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o then_o cut_v off_o the_o head_n and_o cut_v all_o the_o part_n asunder_o as_o vers_n 5_o 8._o the_o reason_n of_o this_o difference_n in_o the_o outward_a ceremony_n seem_v to_o be_v from_o the_o different_a matter_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n both_o aim_v at_o the_o same_o general_a scope_n viz._n to_o shadow_n forth_o the_o suffering_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o violence_n do_v to_o he_o for_o and_o by_o our_o sin_n for_o as_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o turtle_n dove_n be_v wring_v out_o with_o violence_n so_o be_v the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n when_o he_o make_v his_o soul_n a_o offer_n for_o sin_n some_o note_n further_o that_o the_o head_n be_v not_o to_o be_v quite_o wring_v off_o as_o the_o part_n be_v not_o to_o be_v divide_v asunder_o of_o which_o by_o and_o by_o 2._o the_o priest_n be_v to_o pluck_v away_o his_o crop_n with_o his_o feather_n and_o cast_v it_o beside_o the_o altar_n on_o the_o east_n part_n by_o the_o place_n of_o the_o ash_n vers_fw-la 16._o why_o to_o the_o east_n they_o have_v a_o place_n on_o the_o east_n side_n of_o the_o court_n to_o which_o they_o carry_v forth_o the_o ash_n because_o this_o be_v the_o further_a off_o from_o the_o holy_a of_o holies_n for_o the_o temple_n stand_v direct_o west_n as_o you_o may_v see_v ezek._n 8.16_o which_o the_o lord_n do_v in_o opposition_n to_o the_o common_a idolatry_n of_o those_o time_n which_o be_v wont_a to_o worship_v towards_o the_o east_n there_o be_v therefore_o a_o place_n eastward_o from_o the_o tabernacle_n where_o they_o throw_v the_o filth_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n as_o in_o reverence_n of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n as_o far_o as_o may_v be_v from_o the_o ark_n of_o the_o testimony_n we_o must_v abandon_v whatsoever_o be_v unclean_a when_o we_o come_v into_o god_n presence_n all_o filthiness_n must_v be_v remove_v far_o away_o out_o of_o his_o sight_n as_o we_o come_v to_o a_o holy_a god_n in_o a_o holy_a duty_n so_o we_o shall_v come_v in_o a_o holy_a manner_n and_o with_o holy_a heart_n i_o will_v wash_v my_o hand_n in_o innocency_n and_o so_o will_v i_o compass_v thy_o altar_n o_o lord_n psal_n 26.6_o 3._o he_o shall_v cleave_v it_o with_o the_o wing_n but_o shall_v not_o divide_v asunder_o vers_fw-la 17_o cleave_v it_o that_o be_v long_a way_n so_o as_o there_o be_v a_o wing_n on_o each_o side_n this_o ceremony_n of_o not_o divide_v the_o fowl_n be_v very_o ancient_a for_o abraham_n use_v it_o gen._n 15.10_o and_o in_o reference_n to_o the_o same_o scope_n it_o be_v that_o the_o head_n and_o body_n be_v not_o quite_o disjoin_v but_o only_o the_o neck_n pinch_v with_o the_o priest_n nail_n now_o what_o be_v there_o in_o christ_n the_o anti-type_n that_o may_v answer_v this_o not_o a_o bone_n be_v break_v joh._n 19.33_o 36._o moreover_o the_o divine_a and_o humane_a nature_n be_v never_o total_o separate_v notwithstanding_o all_o his_o suffering_n though_o his_o soul_n be_v separate_v from_o his_o body_n yet_o neither_o soul_n nor_o body_n be_v separate_v from_o the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o incomprehensible_o and_o ineffable_o unite_v when_o in_o the_o grave_a and_o in_o the_o dust_n of_o death_n his_o deity_n as_o the_o head_n or_o principal_a part_n be_v not_o divide_v from_o his_o humane_a nature_n nor_o be_v he_o who_o be_v the_o head_n of_o his_o church_n divide_v from_o his_o mystical_a body_n by_o all_o his_o suffering_n but_o remain_v indissoluble_o and_o everlasting_o unite_v to_o they_o so_o much_o for_o the_o explication_n of_o the_o burnt-offering_a whether_o of_o the_o herd_n or_o flock_v or_o fowl_n with_o the_o ceremony_n appertain_v to_o they_o now_o for_o the_o use_n of_o all_o use_v 1_o see_v here_o the_o difference_n between_o god_n ceremony_n and_o man_n between_o religious_a ceremony_n of_o divine_a institution_n and_o of_o humane_a invention_n divine_a ceremony_n be_v full_a of_o light_n full_a of_o spirit_n full_a of_o gospel_n marrow_n and_o mystery_n but_o humane_a ceremony_n in_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n be_v full_a of_o darkness_n and_o vanity_n thick_a darkness_n there_o be_v no_o light_n no_o signification_n in_o they_o as_o man_n can_v bless_v their_o own_o ceremony_n and_o make_v they_o effectual_a for_o spiritual_a end_n so_o they_o can_v so_o much_o as_o make_v they_o suitable_a and_o significant_a they_o be_v common_o so_o foolish_a so_o impertinent_a and_o ridiculous_a that_o it_o be_v hardly_o sit_v to_o name_v they_o in_o a_o pulpit_n lest_o they_o provoke_v laughter_n as_o for_o instance_n for_o i_o will_v give_v you_o a_o instance_n or_o two_o because_o there_o be_v a_o holy_a scorn_n and_o a_o holy_a laughter_n a_o man_n must_v wear_v a_o white_a garment_n in_o a_o ridiculous_a manner_n
way_n of_o retribution_n for_o mercy_n receive_v leu._n 7.11_o 12._o of_o which_o psal_n 107.22_o and_o let_v they_o sacrifice_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o thanksgiving_n and_o declare_v his_o work_n with_o rejoice_v heb._n 13.15_o by_o he_o therefore_o let_v we_o offer_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n to_o god_n continual_o acknowledge_v christ_n in_o all_o our_o mercy_n 2._o another_o end_n of_o the_o peace-offering_n be_v for_o the_o impetration_n or_o obtain_n of_o mercy_n want_v either_o in_o the_o way_n of_o a_o vow_n or_o a_o freewil-offering_a leu._n 7.16_o judg._n 20.26_o the_o tribe_n in_o their_o fast_a for_o obtain_v victory_n against_o the_o benjamite_n offer_a peace-offering_n in_o the_o way_n of_o a_o freewil-offering_a psal_n 56.12_o thy_o vow_n be_v upon_o i_o o_o god_n i_o will_v render_v praise_n unto_o thou_o or_o i_o will_v pay_v confession_n unto_o thou_o that_o be_v he_o will_v in_o a_o way_n of_o praise_n offer_v the_o peace-offering_n that_o he_o have_v vow_v so_o jonah_n 2.9_o but_o i_o will_v sacrifice_v unto_o thou_o with_o the_o voice_n of_o thanksgiving_n i_o will_v pay_v that_o i_o have_v vow_v salvation_n be_v of_o the_o lord_n gen._n 28.20_o 21_o 22._o the_o ten_o of_o all_o that_o god_n shall_v give_v he_o jacob_n vow_v to_o give_v to_o god_n that_o be_v as_o a_o peace-offering_a the_o difference_n between_o a_o vow_n and_o a_o freewil-offering_a be_v only_o this_o that_o in_o the_o freewil-offering_a they_o do_v present_v the_o thing_n itself_o unto_o the_o lord_n but_o in_o a_o vow_n they_o do_v first_o promise_v it_o be_v it_o may_v be_v not_o in_o a_o capacity_n to_o perform_v it_o at_o that_o time_n as_o jonah_n in_o the_o whale_n belly_n and_o then_o when_o the_o deliverance_n be_v bestow_v and_o the_o prayer_n hear_v and_o grant_v they_o pay_v their_o vow_n unto_o the_o lord_n hence_o some_o have_v thus_o refer_v and_o compare_v these_o three_o sort_n of_o offering_n hitherto_o describe_v and_o direct_v in_o this_o book_n that_o as_o the_o burnt-offering_a cap._n 1._o principal_o figure_v our_o reconciliation_n to_o god_n by_o the_o death_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o meat-offering_a cap._n 2._o have_v a_o special_a respect_n to_o our_o sanctification_n in_o he_o before_o god_n so_o this_o peace-offering_a signify_v both_o christ_n oblation_n of_o himself_o whereby_o he_o become_v our_o peace_n and_o our_o salvation_n and_o likewise_o our_o oblation_n of_o praise_n thanksgiving_n and_o prayer_n unto_o god_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o our_o trouble_n temptation_n and_o spiritual_a conflict_n which_o we_o fight_v by_o faith_n in_o this_o world_n so_o that_o in_o this_o sacrifice_n we_o come_v bold_o to_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n that_o we_o may_v receive_v mercy_n and_o find_v grace_n to_o help_v in_o time_n of_o need_n as_o heb._n 4.16_o therefore_o some_o have_v note_v that_o this_o sacrifice_n of_o peace-offering_a be_v often_o add_v under_o the_o law_n to_o other_o sort_n of_o sacrifice_n because_o beside_o the_o expiation_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n there_o must_v be_v a_o effectual_a application_n of_o the_o atonement_n in_o a_o way_n of_o actual_a communion_n with_o god_n in_o a_o way_n of_o grace_n and_o peace_n through_o jesus_n christ_n christ_n do_v not_o only_o procure_v peace_n for_o we_o but_o communicate_v and_o apply_v it_o to_o we_o here_o be_v a_o actual_a participation_n and_o a_o exercise_n of_o mutual_a communion_n between_o god_n and_o the_o priest_n and_o the_o offerer_n feast_v together_o quest_n what_o be_v the_o time_n and_o season_n when_o they_o offer_v and_o be_v to_o offer_v peace_n offering_n ans_fw-fr they_o be_v either_o occasional_a or_o more_o state_v the_o occasional_a time_n be_v either_o 1._o in_o thanksgiving_n or_o 2._o as_o vow_n or_o 3._o as_o freewil-offering_n which_o be_v former_o speak_v to_o the_o more_o state_v time_n be_v such_o as_o these_o 1._o at_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o priest_n one_o of_o the_o ram_n be_v call_v a_o peace_n offer_v exod._n 29.28_o and_o at_o the_o first_o consecration_n of_o aaron_n and_o his_o family_n leu._n 9.4_o also_o a_o bullock_n and_o a_o ram_n for_o peace_n offering_n to_o sacrifice_v before_o the_o lord_n 2._o at_o the_o expiration_n of_o a_o nazaretical_a vow_n numb_a 6.14_o one_o lamb_n without_o blemish_n for_o a_o peace_n offer_v 3._o at_o the_o dedication_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n each_o of_o the_o twelve_o prince_n of_o the_o twelve_o tribe_n of_o israel_n bring_v for_o a_o sacrifice_n of_o peace_n offering_n two_o ox_n five_o ram_n five_o he_o goat_n of_o the_o first_o year_n numb_a 7.17_o so_o at_o the_o dedication_n of_o the_o temple_n by_o solomon_n 1_o king_n 8.62_o 63._o solomon_n offer_v a_o sacrifice_n of_o peace-offering_n which_o he_o offer_v unto_o the_o lord_n two_o and_o twenty_o thousand_o ox_n and_o a_o hundred_o and_o twenty_o thousand_o sheep_n 4._o in_o the_o feast_n of_o first_o fruit_n two_o lamb_n of_o the_o first_o year_n for_o a_o sacrifice_n of_o peace-offering_n leu._n 23.19_o as_o for_o the_o offering_n at_o the_o purification_n of_o a_o leper_n the_o two_o bird_n leu._n 14._o it_o differ_v so_o much_o from_o the_o ordinary_a rule_n of_o the_o peace-offering_n that_o it_o can_v well_o be_v annumerate_v to_o they_o but_o it_o be_v a_o peculiar_a sacrifice_n of_o purification_n of_o which_o we_o shall_v speak_v hereafter_o so_o likewise_o the_o passover_n lamb._n exod._n 12._o though_o eucharistical_a yet_o can_v well_o be_v reduce_v to_o the_o peace_n offering_n or_o to_o any_o of_o the_o six_o ordinary_a kind_n but_o be_v indeed_o a_o peculiar_a sacrifice_n have_v other_o rite_n than_o what_o belong_v to_o the_o peace_n offer_v 3._o the_o matter_n of_o the_o peace_n offer_v it_o be_v either_o of_o the_o herd_n or_o of_o the_o flock_n either_o of_o the_o big_a or_o of_o the_o lesser_a sort_n of_o cattle_n either_o lamb_n or_o goat_n there_o be_v no_o peace-offering_a of_o fowl_n as_o there_o be_v of_o turtle_n dove_n and_o young_a pigeon_n in_o the_o burnt-offering_a the_o reason_n whereof_o be_v think_v to_o be_v because_o this_o be_v to_o be_v divide_v among_o so_o many_o to_o god_n and_o the_o priest_n and_o the_o offerer_n but_o in_o bird_n be_v so_o small_a this_o division_n can_v not_o so_o convenient_o be_v make_v moreover_o it_o must_v be_v without_o blemish_n and_o this_o be_v require_v before_o in_o the_o burnt-offering_a and_o indeed_o in_o all_o their_o sacrifice_n and_o final_o the_o peace_n offer_v it_o may_v be_v either_o male_a or_o female_a which_o be_v otherwise_o in_o the_o law_n of_o the_o burnt-offering_a that_o be_v to_o be_v male_n only_o cap_n 1.3_o this_o interpreter_n do_v apply_v spiritual_o to_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n in_o christ_n in_o who_o there_o be_v neither_o male_a nor_o female_a gal._n 3.28_o he_o that_o accept_v a_o female_a in_o his_o sacrifice_n do_v not_o exclude_v woman_n from_o his_o service_n they_o be_v not_o exclude_v from_o his_o love_n and_o therefore_o shall_v not_o count_v themselves_o free_v from_o his_o law_n it_o be_v a_o good_a speech_n of_o a_o woman_n that_o be_v a_o martyr_n jesus_n christ_n suffer_v as_o much_o for_o the_o redeem_n of_o our_o soul_n as_o he_o do_v for_o man_n and_o therefore_o why_o shall_v not_o we_o have_v as_o much_o courage_n as_o they_o to_o suffer_v for_o he_o god_n be_v no_o respecter_n of_o person_n 4._o the_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o peace-offering_a they_o be_v of_o two_o sort_n 1._o common_a unto_o this_o with_o other_o offering_n 2._o peculiar_a to_o the_o peace-offering_n as_o to_o the_o former_a sort_n there_o be_v five_o sacred_a ceremony_n require_v here_o which_o be_v mention_v before_o in_o the_o burnt-offering_a cap._n 1._o and_o according_o be_v there_o explain_v as_o 1._o it_o must_v be_v bring_v to_o the_o door_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o congregation_n 2._o the_o owner_n must_v lay_v his_o hand_n upon_o it_o 3._o it_o must_v be_v kill_v 4._o the_o blood_n shed_v and_o sprinkle_v upon_o the_o altar_n round_o about_o 5._o burn_v it_o upon_o the_o altar_n all_o which_o have_v be_v explain_v before_o when_o we_o be_v upon_o the_o burnt-offering_a we_o may_v now_o proceed_v to_o the_o second_o sort_n viz._n 2._o such_o rite_n as_o be_v here_o first_o mention_v as_o have_v some_o peculiar_a respect_n to_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o peace-offering_n now_o these_o may_v be_v reduce_v to_o four_o head_n 1._o the_o division_n of_o it_o into_o three_o part_n namely_o between_o god_n and_o the_o priest_n and_o the_o people_n 2._o the_o limitation_n of_o time_n for_o eat_v the_o priest_n and_o people_n part_n to_o wit_n upon_o the_o same_o day_n or_o the_o next_o 3._o the_o addition_n of_o leaven_n 4._o the_o prohibition_n of_o fat_a and_o blood_n these_o be_v the_o sacred_a rite_n
sin_n and_o that_o the_o sin_n and_o error_n of_o a_o anoint_a priest_n be_v of_o the_o worst_a and_o great_a guilt_n this_o be_v here_o teach_v and_o hold_v forth_o both_o by_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o sin-offering_a and_o by_o the_o rite_n belong_v to_o it_o as_o to_o the_o matter_n the_o priest_n must_v have_v as_o great_a a_o sacrifice_n for_o a_o sin_n offer_v as_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o people_n collective_o consider_v a_o young_a bullock_n be_v the_o sin-offering_a for_o the_o priest_n and_o it_o be_v no_o more_o but_o a_o young_a bullock_n for_o the_o whole_a congregation_n and_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n as_o to_o the_o rite_n for_o the_o several_a sort_n of_o sinner_n for_o the_o sin-offering_a for_o the_o priest_n and_o for_o the_o body_n of_o the_o people_n be_v to_o be_v sprinkle_v before_o the_o veil_n and_o upon_o the_o altar_n of_o incense_n but_o that_o for_o the_o ruler_n and_o for_o private_a person_n be_v not_o sprinkle_v before_o the_o veil_n nor_o upon_o the_o incense_n altar_n but_o only_o upon_o the_o altar_n of_o burnt-offering_a vers_fw-la 25_o 30_o 34._o for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a congregation_n as_o be_v more_o heinous_a require_v a_o more_o solemn_a manner_n of_o atonement_n so_o our_o annotator_n on_o leu._n 4.25_o it_o be_v a_o error_n of_o the_o stoic_a philosopher_n of_o old_a that_o peccata_fw-la sunt_fw-la aequalia_fw-la all_o sin_n be_v equal_a it_o be_v true_a sin_n be_v a_o privation_n but_o there_o be_v degree_n in_o privation_n there_o be_v total_a and_o partial_a privation_n as_o in_o the_o twilight_n and_o dim_a sightedness_n every_o sin_n deviate_v and_o swerve_v from_o the_o rule_n of_o righteousness_n but_o there_o be_v degree_n of_o rectitude_n and_o curvity_n some_o crooked_a line_n depart_v further_o off_o from_o the_o strait_a line_n and_o some_o come_v near_o to_o it_o so_o it_o be_v in_o sin_n the_o sin_n of_o a_o minister_n do_v receive_v peculiar_a aggravation_n and_o be_v great_a in_o many_o respect_n than_o the_o sin_n of_o other_o man_n for_o they_o to_o be_v covetous_a and_o greedy_a after_o the_o world_n for_o they_o to_o be_v of_o a_o unbrother_o impose_v spirit_n that_o be_v ambitious_a and_o contentious_a it_o be_v worse_a than_o in_o other_o man_n and_o that_o especial_o in_o two_o respect_n which_o be_v both_o hint_v in_o the_o text._n 1._o because_o of_o their_o anoint_v or_o separation_n unto_o office_n whereby_o they_o stand_v near_o to_o god_n than_o other_o do_v be_v to_o minister_v to_o he_o in_o his_o holy_a thing_n 2._o because_o their_o sin_n and_o error_n have_v usual_o a_o very_a pernicious_a influence_n upon_o the_o people_n either_o to_o seduce_v or_o scandalize_v they_o many_o will_v be_v ready_a to_o follow_v their_o pernicious_a way_n hence_o some_o read_v and_o understand_v the_o word_n vers_fw-la 3._o if_o he_o sin_v to_o cause_v the_o people_n to_o err_v or_o to_o bring_v public_a judgement_n upon_o they_o hence_o many_o be_v so_o apt_a to_o plead_v such_o a_o minister_n think_v it_o lawful_a and_o such_o a_o one_o do_v it_o and_o why_o may_v not_o i_o see_v 1_o sam._n 2.17_o 24._o how_o the_o sin_n of_o minister_n do_v scandalize_v the_o people_n cause_v they_o to_o transgress_v some_o of_o they_o in_o like_a manner_n and_o other_o to_o abhor_v and_o despise_v the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o this_o make_v minister_n sin_n great_a before_o the_o lord_n but_o people_n shall_v consider_v that_o a_o anoint_a priest_n may_v sin_v and_o err_v and_o their_o error_n oftentimes_o do_v much_o hurt_n this_o be_v a_o second_o instruction_n 3._o the_o whole_a church_n may_v err_v vers_fw-la 13._o this_o be_v another_o assertion_n of_o the_o papist_n that_o their_o church_n can_v err_v a_o strange_a and_o wonderful_a assertion_n do_v not_o the_o whole_a church_n err_v when_o they_o crucify_v christ_n and_o they_o do_v err_v fundamental_o yet_o the_o jew_n be_v then_o the_o only_a true_a church_n and_o people_n of_o god_n in_o the_o world_n therefore_o it_o be_v very_o unsafe_a to_o pin_v your_o faith_n upon_o the_o church_n sleeve_n or_o upon_o the_o minister_n sleeve_n either_o for_o both_o church_n and_o minister_n may_v err_v it_o be_v not_o safe_a to_o be_v lead_v mere_o by_o multitude_n or_o by_o example_n exod._n 23.2_o thou_o shall_v not_o follow_v a_o multitude_n to_o do_v evil_a neither_o shall_v thou_o speak_v in_o a_o cause_n to_o decline_v after_o many_o to_o wrest_v judgement_n yea_o a_o true_a church_n may_v in_o time_n err_v so_o far_o and_o degenerate_a so_o deep_o as_o that_o they_o may_v cease_v to_o be_v a_o church_n as_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n for_o instance_n the_o lord_n have_v say_v unto_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n as_o he_o threaten_v by_o the_o prophet_n hosea_n lo-ruhamah_a and_o lo-ammi_a i_o will_v not_o have_v mercy_n on_o you_o and_o you_o be_v not_o my_o people_n hos_fw-la 1.6_o 9_o and_o cap._n 2.2_o plead_v with_o your_o mother_n plead_v for_o she_o be_v not_o my_o wife_n neither_o be_o i_o her_o husband_n the_o church_n of_o the_o two_o tribe_n also_o be_v now_o in_o the_o same_o condition_n with_o the_o other_o ten_o zech._n 11.10_o and_o i_o take_v my_o staff_n even_o beauty_n and_o cut_v it_o asunder_o that_o i_o may_v break_v my_o covenant_n which_o i_o have_v make_v with_o all_o the_o people_n the_o meaning_n be_v that_o he_o will_v discovenant_v and_o unchurch_n they_o but_o yet_o he_o will_v at_o last_o restore_v they_o but_o will_v you_o see_v a_o instance_n of_o a_o church_n which_o god_n have_v reject_v and_o unchurch_v and_o which_o shall_v never_o be_v restore_v any_o more_o behold_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v once_o a_o true_a church_n and_o the_o pastor_n thereof_o a_o true_a minister_n when_o paul_n write_v his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n sixteen_o hundred_o year_n ago_o but_o now_o so_o far_o decline_v from_o their_o first_o estate_n and_o from_o the_o primitive_a and_o scripture_n pattern_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v become_v the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o head_n of_o that_o church_n be_v antichrist_n see_v rev._n 13._o they_o be_v set_v forth_o under_o the_o notion_n of_o two_o wild_a and_o venomous_a beast_n the_o first_o beast_n in_o that_o chapter_n which_o have_v ten_o horn_n etc._n etc._n be_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o second_o beast_n with_o two_o horn_n be_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n the_o first_o be_v babylon_n and_o the_o second_o antichrist_n the_o truth_n be_v they_o have_v err_v so_o far_o that_o except_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n when_o they_o crucify_v jesus_n christ_n i_o think_v there_o be_v never_o any_o church_n that_o err_v so_o much_o as_o this_o church_n that_o pretend_v they_o can_v err_v 4._o instruction_n that_o the_o elder_n and_o public_a person_n act_v and_o be_v to_o act_v for_o the_o people_n for_o the_o elder_n be_v to_o lay_v their_o hand_n upon_o the_o people_n offer_v verse_n 15._o that_o be_v as_o their_o agent_n and_o representative_n the_o people_n be_v not_o to_o think_v themselves_o mere_o passive_a in_o what_o their_o elder_n and_o ruler_n do_v no_o believe_v it_o you_o be_v more_o concern_v then_o so_o their_o act_n involve_v the_o people_n which_o give_v a_o just_a account_n of_o god_n send_v public_a calamity_n upon_o the_o people_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o their_o ruler_n for_o what_o the_o parliament_n do_v the_o people_n do_v the_o method_n of_o providence_n be_v often_o thus_o first_o the_o people_n they_o sin_v and_o provoke_v god_n to_o anger_n than_o he_o leave_v their_o ruler_n to_o sin_n for_o their_o sake_n and_o then_o come_v wrath._n for_o while_n there_o be_v a_o phinehas_n a_o josiah_n they_o stand_v in_o the_o gap_n and_o stave_v off_o public_a judgement_n it_o may_v be_v all_o their_o day_n but_o when_o they_o be_v go_v or_o if_o they_o sin_v too_o this_o open_v a_o gap_n for_o public_a judgement_n to_o break_v in_o upon_o the_o people_n see_v 2_o sam._n 24.1_o and_o again_o the_o anger_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v kindle_v against_o israel_n and_o he_o move_v david_n against_o they_o to_o say_v go_v number_n israel_n and_o judah_n observe_v the_o method_n first_o god_n be_v angry_a with_o israel_n for_o their_o sin_n than_o he_o move_v david_n their_o king_n to_o sin_n and_o then_o come_v the_o plague_n people_z be_v very_o apt_a when_o thing_n go_v amiss_o and_o the_o public_a affair_n do_v not_o prosper_v they_o be_v very_o apt_a to_o be_v discontent_n with_o their_o ruler_n and_o magistrate_n and_o to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v their_o fault_n but_o if_o they_o do_v amiss_o you_o shall_v consider_v why_o god_n leave_v they_o to_o it_o it_o be_v often_o for_o the_o sin_n
of_o the_o people_n it_o will_v better_o become_v private_a person_n to_o reflect_v upon_o themselves_o and_o upon_o their_o own_o sin_n and_o their_o own_o unworthiness_n then_o to_o work_v out_o in_o discontent_n against_o those_o that_o god_n have_v set_v over_o they_o 3._o the_o three_o law_n of_o the_o sin-offering_a be_v concern_v the_o blood_n thereof_o there_o be_v a_o threefold_a disposal_n of_o it_o appoint_v by_o the_o rule_n in_o this_o chapter_n vers_fw-la 5_o 6_o 7._o 1._o the_o priest_n be_v to_o dip_v his_o finger_n in_o the_o blood_n and_o to_o sprinkle_v it_o seven_o time_n before_o the_o lord_n 2._o he_o be_v to_o put_v part_n of_o it_o upon_o the_o four_o horn_n of_o the_o golden_a altar_n of_o incense_n 3._o he_o be_v to_o pour_v out_o the_o rest_n of_o it_o at_o the_o bottom_n of_o the_o brazen_a altar_n of_o burnt-offering_a of_o these_o three_o ceremony_n a_o few_o word_n 1._o the_o priest_n be_v to_o dip_v his_o finger_n in_o the_o blood_n and_o to_o sprinkle_v it_o seven_o time_n before_o the_o lord_n that_o be_v before_o the_o veil_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n towards_o the_o holy_a of_o holies_n upon_o the_o great_a day_n of_o expiation_n he_o be_v to_o sprinkle_v it_o within_o the_o veil_n but_o because_o he_o be_v not_o to_o enter_v into_o that_o holy_a place_n every_o day_n but_o only_o once_o a_o year_n therefore_o at_o other_o time_n he_o do_v but_o sprinkle_v it_o towards_o the_o holy_a place_n upon_o or_o towards_o the_o veil_n see_v leu._n 16.14_o but_o the_o signification_n be_v the_o same_o in_o both_o it_o teach_v we_o three_o thing_n 1._o that_o there_o be_v no_o entrance_n into_o heaven_n but_o by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n shed_v and_o pour_v forth_o and_o sprinkle_v and_o apply_v effectual_o for_o the_o place_n within_o the_o veil_n the_o holy_a of_o holies_n be_v a_o type_n of_o heaven_n and_o the_o priest_n enter_v there_o not_o without_o blood_n heb._n 9.11_o 12_o 24_o 25_o 26._o heaven_n be_v a_o possession_n purchase_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n eph._n 1.14_o heb._n 10.19_o 20._o we_o enter_v into_o the_o holy_a by_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n we_o have_v never_o come_v there_o have_v not_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o sin_n offer_v be_v sprinkle_v there_o for_o we_o 2._o there_o be_v a_o full_a and_o perfect_a cleanse_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n for_o he_o be_v to_o sprinkle_v it_o seven_o time_n seven_o be_v a_o number_n of_o perfection_n because_o in_o seven_o day_n the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v finish_v and_o god_n rest_v from_o his_o work_n hence_o seven_o be_v a_o mystical_a number_n often_o use_v in_o mystery_n throughout_o the_o scripture_n both_o in_o typical_a and_o in_o prophetical_a place_n vid._n aynsw_n in_o loc_n as_o seven_o time_n sprinkle_v the_o leper_n and_o seven_o day_n for_o his_o cleanse_n leu._n 14.7_o 9_o seven_o day_n for_o consecrate_v the_o priest_n leu._n 8.35_o for_o purify_n the_o unclean_a leu._n 12.2_o numb_a 19.19_o seven_o priest_n with_o seven_o trumpet_n blow_v seven_o day_n to_o the_o overthrow_v of_o the_o wall_n of_o jericho_n josh_n 6._o every_o seven_o day_n be_v a_o sabbaoth_n every_o seven_o year_n a_o year_n of_o rest_n and_o seven_o time_n seven_o year_n bring_v the_o jubilee_n leu._n 25.3_o 4_o 8._o in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o revelation_n the_o lamb_n that_o be_v stain_v which_o be_v jesus_n christ_n be_v represent_v with_o seven_o horn_n to_o signify_v the_o perfection_n of_o his_o power_n and_o with_o seven_o eye_n to_o show_v the_o perfection_n of_o his_o wisdom_n and_o the_o seven_o spirit_n of_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o perfection_n of_o all_o gift_n and_o grace_n rev._n 5.6_o there_o be_v also_o seven_o candlestick_n seven_o church_n and_o indeed_o the_o whole_a book_n do_v analyse_v and_o divide_v itself_o into_o three_o seven_n seven_o seal_n seven_o trumpet_n and_o seven_o vial_n the_o seven_o seal_n hold_v forth_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n under_o heathenish_a persecution_n with_o the_o issue_n thereof_o in_o the_o three_o first_o century_n the_o seven_o trumpet_n under_o antichrist_n and_o other_o intestine_a trouble_n and_o then_o final_o seven_o vial_n of_o wrath_n for_o the_o ruin_n of_o anti-christ_n and_o other_o enemy_n for_o the_o church_n prosperity_n from_o all_o which_o you_o see_v that_o there_o be_v something_o of_o mystery_n in_o the_o number_n of_o seven_o and_o in_o this_o ceremony_n it_o teach_v we_o the_o full_a and_o perfect_a cleanse_n and_o atonement_n we_o have_v in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o our_o sin_n need_v much_o cleanse_n much_o purgation_n heb._n 9.13_o 14._o heb._n 10.14_o for_o by_o one_o offer_v he_o have_v perfect_v for_o ever_o they_o that_o be_v sanctify_v 3._o we_o may_v learn_v further_o that_o sprinkle_v be_v significative_a enough_o of_o the_o spiritual_a cleanse_n and_o perfect_a virtue_n that_o be_v in_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o the_o priest_n be_v not_o to_o pour_v out_o the_o blood_n upon_o the_o veil_n nor_o to_o wash_v the_o veil_n in_o the_o blood_n but_o only_o to_o dip_v his_o finger_n and_o so_o to_o sprinkle_v the_o veil_n with_o it_o isai_n 52.15_o 1_o pet._n 1.2_o heb._n 12.24_o 2._o another_o part_n of_o the_o blood_n be_v to_o be_v put_v upon_o the_o horn_n of_o the_o golden_a altar_n of_o incense_n vers_fw-la 7._o and_o again_o vers_fw-la 18._o so_o in_o the_o sin-offering_a upon_o the_o great_a day_n of_o expiation_n lev_n 17.18_o 19_o this_o be_v use_v only_o in_o the_o sin_n offer_v of_o bullock_n but_o in_o the_o sin-offering_a of_o kid_n or_o lamb_n it_o be_v only_o pour_v and_o sprinkle_v upon_o the_o brazen-altar_n vers_fw-la 25_o 30_o 34._o the_o mystery_n of_o this_o ceremony_n be_v this_o that_o christ_n intercession_n be_v found_v in_o his_o own_o blood_n and_o satisfaction_n for_o the_o incense_n altar_n be_v a_o type_n of_o prayer_n he_o pray_v in_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o own_o blood_n and_o suffering_n and_o by_o the_o merit_n thereof_o he_o prevail_v with_o god_n for_o we_o and_o it_o be_v upon_o the_o same_o account_n that_o our_o prayer_n also_o do_v prevail_v and_o find_v acceptance_n with_o the_o lord_n it_o be_v because_o the_o incense_n altar_n be_v sprinkle_v with_o blood_n we_o pray_v in_o his_o name_n and_o we_o desire_v nothing_o in_o our_o prayer_n but_o what_o he_o have_v deserve_v and_o procure_v by_o his_o merit_n see_n rev._n 8.3_o there_o be_v give_v he_o much_o incense_n that_o he_o shall_v offer_v it_o with_o the_o prayer_n of_o all_o saint_n upon_o the_o golden_a altar_n and_o 9.13_o i_o hear_v a_o voice_n from_o the_o four_o horn_n of_o the_o golden_a altar_n the_o golden_a altar_n be_v the_o altar_n of_o incense_n a_o voice_n be_v hear_v from_o thence_o as_o in_o answer_n to_o prayer_n but_o do_v ever_o any_o christian_a pray_v for_o the_o come_n in_o of_o the_o turk_n upon_o the_o christian_a world_n no_o but_o god_n answer_v the_o prayer_n of_o his_o people_n oftentimes_o by_o wonderful_a and_o terrible_a thing_n in_o righteousness_n as_o psal_n 65.5_o the_o most_o dreadful_a revolution_n of_o providence_n be_v in_o answer_n to_o prayer_n and_o that_o which_o make_v prayer_n so_o powerful_a be_v because_o the_o altar_n of_o incense_n be_v sprinkle_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o sin_n offer_v 3._o the_o rest_n of_o the_o blood_n be_v to_o be_v pour_v forth_o at_o the_o bottom_n of_o the_o altar_n of_o burnt-offering_a vers_fw-la 7_o 18_o 25_o 30_o 34._o this_o instruct_v we_o that_o christ_n be_v consecrate_v and_o dedicate_v unto_o god_n in_o his_o own_o blood_n the_o effusion_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n as_o a_o sin-offering_a to_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n for_o we_o for_o our_o salvation_n for_o the_o purchase_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o the_o relation_n of_o that_o blood_n to_o the_o altar_n of_o his_o deity_n be_v here_o teach_v but_o this_o be_v open_v before_o when_o we_o be_v upon_o the_o burnt-offering_a cap._n 1.5_o but_o consider_v this_o as_o in_o conjunction_n with_o the_o former_a the_o blood_n be_v sprinkle_v both_o upon_o the_o holy_a of_o all_o and_o upon_o the_o altar_n of_o incense_n and_o now_o the_o rest_n pour_v forth_o by_o the_o altar_n of_o burnt-offering_a it_o teach_v we_o that_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n have_v a_o influence_n into_o all_o the_o concernment_n of_o our_o salvation_n from_o first_o to_o last_o exercise_v faith_n in_o that_o blood_n upon_o all_o occasion_n and_o for_o all_o the_o concernment_n of_o your_o soul_n will_v you_o see_v your_o sin_n forgive_v and_o atonement_n make_v see_v and_o take_v notice_n of_o that_o blood_n in_o the_o effusion_n of_o it_o as_o pour_v forth_o at_o the_o bottom_n of_o the_o altar_n will_v you_o see_v your_o prayer_n accept_v
their_o high_a strain_n of_o superstitious_a devotion_n mark_n 7.4_o 8._o but_o out_o of_o god_n institution_n here_o we_o may_v spell_v this_o lesson_n of_o spiritual_a instruction_n namely_o the_o strange_a defilement_n and_o deep_a contagion_n and_o pollution_n that_o be_v in_o sin_n that_o there_o be_v so_o much_o ado_n for_o the_o cleanse_n of_o it_o and_o what_o care_n there_o shall_v be_v to_o purge_v and_o cleanse_v ourselves_o from_o it_o heb._n 10.19_o 22_o 2_o cor._n 7.1_o and_o to_o make_v it_o out_o a_o little_a more_o particular_o if_o you_o will_v find_v out_o the_o meaning_n of_o a_o type_n it_o be_v a_o good_a rule_n to_o observe_v the_o scripture_n use_v of_o the_o same_o word_n in_o the_o way_n of_o a_o metaphor_n and_o allusion_n now_o we_o find_v both_o wicked_a man_n and_o good_a man_n compare_v to_o earthen_a vessel_n it_o be_v a_o metaphor_n concern_v wicked_a man_n and_o the_o break_n be_v the_o destroy_v they_o jer._n 19.11_o psal_n 2.9_o jer._n 48.38_o god_n will_v break_v wicked_a man_n and_o unclean_a person_n with_o utter_a destruction_n as_o vessel_n wherein_o be_v no_o pleasure_n but_o good_a man_n also_o be_v call_v earthen_a vessel_n and_o so_o the_o type_n must_v be_v accommodate_v a_o little_a otherwise_o 2_o cor._n 4.7_o we_o have_v this_o treasure_n in_o earthen_a vessel_n and_o so_o the_o cleanse_v these_o vessel_n by_o wash_v with_o water_n points_z to_o the_o spiritual_a cleanse_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n ezek._n 36.25_o and_o by_o his_o blood_n heb._n 9.13_o 14._o and_o break_v signify_v the_o utter_a abolish_n of_o all_o sin_n and_o uncleanness_n by_o death_n we_o be_v not_o full_o cleanse_v till_o the_o vessel_n be_v break_v but_o then_o there_o be_v no_o more_o defilement_n in_o the_o vessel_n and_o god_n will_v make_v it_o up_o again_o in_o the_o resurrection_n as_o pure_a and_o holy_a as_o if_o it_o have_v never_o be_v defile_v with_o sin_n at_o all_o thus_o we_o have_v go_v through_o the_o special_a law_n of_o the_o sin-offering_a in_o these_o five_o head_n for_o they_o do_v either_o concern_v the_o end_n or_o the_o matter_n or_o the_o blood_n of_o it_o or_o the_o burn_a or_o last_o the_o eat_n of_o it_o i_o shall_v conclude_v all_o that_o have_v be_v say_v upon_o the_o sin-offering_a with_o some_o general_a instruction_n from_o the_o whole_a 1._o we_o may_v here_o learn_v and_o be_v instruct_v that_o even_o sin_n of_o infirmity_n they_o do_v contract_v a_o guilt_n upon_o the_o soul_n yea_o such_o a_o guilt_n as_o needs_o atonement_n and_o expiation_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n there_o be_v no_o venial_a sin_n the_o least_o sin_n be_v death_n you_o must_v bring_v your_o sin_n offer_v if_o you_o expect_v to_o be_v forgive_v do_v not_o slight_a sin_n of_o infirmity_n for_o than_o they_o become_v more_o than_o mere_a infirmity_n 2._o here_o be_v relief_n unto_o faith_n against_o those_o usual_a complaint_n of_o daily_a infirmity_n which_o many_o gracious_a soul_n do_v so_o much_o complain_v of_o and_o mourn_v under_o alas_o i_o can_v do_v nothing_o well_o if_o i_o pray_v my_o thought_n wander_v when_o i_o hear_v the_o word_n i_o understand_v little_a and_o remember_v less_o i_o be_o easy_o overtake_v and_o carry_v aside_o daily_o i_o sin_n in_o all_o i_o do_v but_o you_o see_v here_o be_v a_o sin_n offer_v provide_v there_o be_v not_o a_o just_a man_n upon_o earth_n that_o do_v good_a and_o sin_v not_o eccles_n 7.20_o in_o many_o thing_n we_o offend_v all_o james_n 3.2_o therefore_o the_o lord_n ordain_v this_o sin-offering_a which_o as_o it_o serve_v for_o a_o legal_a expiation_n and_o purge_n of_o their_o sin_n under_o that_o dispensation_n so_o it_o do_v prefigure_v to_o they_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o our_o sin_n 3._o here_o be_v great_a encouragement_n to_o engage_v in_o the_o service_n and_o work_v of_o god_n notwithstanding_o our_o own_o infirmity_n and_o disability_n yet_o do_v not_o withdraw_v when_o call_v though_o conscious_a to_o thyself_o of_o much_o unworthiness_n and_o unfitness_n for_o the_o lord_n have_v provide_v a_o sin-offering_a for_o we_o he_o will_v accept_v our_o sincere_a though_o weak_a endeavour_n and_o pardon_v our_o fail_n 4._o see_v and_o take_v notice_n what_o continual_a obligation_n of_o love_n be_v upon_o we_o to_o jesus_n christ_n we_o have_v such_o continual_a need_n of_o he_o behold_v and_o wonder_v at_o his_o love_n in_o that_o he_o be_v content_a to_o be_v make_v a_o sin_n offer_v for_o we_o and_o so_o procure_v our_o pardon_n for_o such_o continual_a sin_n and_o fail_n he_o that_o know_v no_o sin_n be_v make_v sin_n for_o we_o that_o be_v he_o be_v make_v a_o sin_n offer_v for_o we_o 2_o cor._n 5.21_o hence_o we_o have_v pardon_n and_o not_o only_o pardon_v but_o power_n also_o against_o sin_n rom._n 8.3_o and_o for_o sin_n condemn_v sin_n in_o the_o flesh_n and_n for_o sin_n that_o be_v god_n send_v christ_n for_o a_o sin_n offer_v as_o you_o have_v the_o same_o word_n so_o render_v heb_fw-mi 10.6_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n thou_o have_v no_o pleasure_n object_n but_o my_o sin_n be_v worse_o than_o mere_a infirmity_n of_o saint_n they_o be_v sin_n of_o a_o grosser_n nature_n ans_fw-fr there_o be_v relief_n for_o such_o in_o the_o trespass_n offer_v if_o they_o do_v not_o sin_v presumptuous_o and_o obstinate_o for_o god_n will_v wound_v the_o hairy_a scalp_n of_o he_o that_o go_v on_o in_o his_o trespass_n psal_n 68.21_o but_o if_o you_o repent_v of_o it_o and_o bring_v your_o trespass-offering_a to_o the_o lord_n there_o be_v hope_n in_o israel_n even_o concern_v such_o kind_n of_o sin_n also_o of_o which_o the_o lord_n assist_v we_o shall_v speak_v the_o next_o time_n the_o gospel_n of_o the_o trespass-offering_a leu._n cap._n 5._o and_o cap._n 6._o to_o vers_n 7._o 1668_o august_n 27_o and_o september_n 6._o 1668_o the_o trespass-offering_a asham_n this_o be_v the_o five_o sort_n of_o legal_a sacrifice_n the_o difference_n between_o this_o and_o the_o sin-offering_a as_o to_o the_o special_a end_n of_o they_o be_v in_o this_o that_o the_o sin-offering_a seem_v to_o carry_v some_o limitation_n to_o sin_n of_o weakness_n and_o ignorance_n but_o this_o extend_v further_a even_o to_o sin_n against_o knowledge_n this_o point_n at_o christ_n as_o the_o sin_n offer_v and_o all_o the_o rest_n do_v therefore_o christ_n be_v call_v asham_n isai_n 53._o the_o method_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v please_v to_o use_v upon_o the_o trespass_n offer_v be_v this_o he_o propose_v 1._o the_o case_n and_o 2._o the_o remedy_n and_o in_o this_o method_n he_o go_v over_o a_o fourfold_a case_n and_o a_o cure_n and_o remedy_n for_o they_o the_o sacred_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n here_o require_v differ_v little_a from_o other_o offering_n before_o handle_v and_o therefore_o we_o may_v be_v the_o brief_a the_o first_o case_n be_v threefold_a i_o mean_v there_o be_v three_o case_n put_v together_o 1._o concealment_n of_o man_n knowledge_n when_o call_v to_o testify_v upon_o oath_n verse_n 1._o if_o a_o soul_n sin_n and_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o swear_v and_o be_v a_o witness_n whether_o he_o have_v see_v or_o know_v of_o it_o if_o he_o do_v not_o utter_v it_o then_o etc._n etc._n a_o soul_n that_o be_v a_o person_n the_o soul_n the_o more_o noble_a part_n be_v synecdochical_o put_v for_o the_o whole_a man_n the_o temptation_n seem_v to_o lie_v here_o if_o the_o person_n for_o rank_n and_o quality_n in_o the_o world_n be_v great_a so_o that_o a_o witness_n be_v afraid_a to_o speak_v and_o utter_v his_o knowledge_n hear_v a_o voice_n of_o swear_v that_o be_v either_o of_o the_o judge_n adjure_v or_o call_v he_o forth_o to_o speak_v upon_o oath_n or_o of_o sinner_n swear_v curse_v blaspheme_v you_o have_v a_o instance_n of_o the_o former_a in_o the_o high_a priest_n mat._n 26.63_o i_o adjure_v thou_o by_o the_o live_a god_n that_o thou_o tell_v we_o whether_o thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n unto_o which_o adjuration_n or_o voice_n of_o swear_v our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n make_v answer_v and_o do_v declare_v the_o truth_n though_o before_o he_o hold_v his_o peace_n for_o it_o be_v casus_fw-la confessionis_fw-la a_o case_n wherein_o confession_n of_o the_o truth_n be_v call_v for_o of_o the_o latter_a we_o have_v a_o instance_n in_o leu._n 24.10_o 11._o they_o that_o hear_v the_o man_n blaspheme_v make_v complaint_n to_o authority_n a_o man_n may_v contract_v upon_o himself_o the_o guilt_n of_o other_o man_n sin_n by_o conceal_v they_o if_o he_o be_v call_v to_o reveal_v they_o this_o presuppose_v a_o magistrate_n that_o be_v not_o give_v to_o swear_v and_o curse_v and_o damn_v himself_o for_o if_o
and_o the_o wave-offering_a a_o thankful_a frame_n of_o spirit_n to_o dedicate_v and_o give_v up_o ourselves_o unto_o the_o lord_n to_o be_v own_v god_n acknowledge_v and_o admire_v god_n in_o every_o thing_n receive_v it_o as_o from_o his_o hand_n and_o return_v it_o to_o he_o again_o by_o use_v it_o to_o his_o glory_n use_v 2._o we_o see_v here_o the_o rise_n and_o withal_o the_o sinfulness_n of_o divers_a of_o the_o popish_a superstition_n they_o borrow_v many_o of_o they_o from_o the_o jew_n and_o from_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n as_o when_o they_o talk_v of_o a_o sacrifice_n a_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o mass_n for_o quick_n and_o dead_a and_o so_o to_o call_v the_o communion-table_n a_o altar_n it_o be_v true_a we_o have_v a_o altar_n and_o a_o sacrifice_n under_o the_o gospel_n but_o this_o altar_n be_v the_o deity_n of_o jesus_n christ_n this_o sacrifice_n be_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v the_o true_a atonement_n between_o god_n and_o sinner_n whereof_o the_o blood_n of_o bull_n and_o goat_n be_v but_o a_o weak_a and_o low_a and_o shady_a representation_n so_o the_o priest_n his_o lift_v up_o the_o host_n over_o his_o head_n as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o heave-offering_a and_o that_o late_a abomination_n that_o they_o must_v do_v it_o on_o the_o north_n side_n of_o the_o communion_n table_n or_o altar_n as_o they_o love_v to_o have_v it_o call_v to_o reintroduce_v these_o old_a legal_a ceremony_n and_o to_o talk_v of_o literal_a sacrifice_n under_o the_o gospel_n be_v to_o dig_v moses_n out_o of_o his_o grave_n and_o to_o deny_v jesus_n christ_n there_o be_v more_o evil_a in_o such_o thing_n than_o many_o do_v imagine_v or_o will_v believe_v use_v 3_o exhortation_n to_o keep_v close_o to_o the_o command_n of_o god_n in_o all_o the_o matter_n of_o his_o worship_n consider_v the_o 38_o verse_n of_o this_o chapter_n this_o be_v the_o law_n of_o the_o burnt-offering_a and_o of_o the_o meat-offering_a and_o so_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o offering_n which_o the_o lord_n command_v moses_n in_o mount_n sinai_n in_o the_o day_n that_o he_o command_v the_o child_n of_o israel_n to_o offer_v their_o oblation_n to_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o wilderness_n of_o sinai_n the_o manner_n of_o worship_n be_v under_o a_o command_n as_o well_o as_o the_o matter_n the_o mode_n of_o worship_n have_v a_o law_n which_o must_v be_v attend_v and_o observe_v and_o keep_v close_o unto_o let_v i_o press_v this_o exhortation_n that_o you_o will_v in_o all_o your_o worship_n keep_v close_o unto_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o word_n with_o these_o four_o motive_n 1._o it_o have_v be_v the_o great_a design_n of_o satan_n in_o all_o time_n and_o age_n to_o defile_v and_o corrupt_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n if_o he_o can_v persuade_v man_n to_o be_v downright_a atheist_n and_o to_o say_v there_o be_v no_o god_n he_o labour_v then_o to_o drive_v they_o into_o the_o other_o extreme_a of_o idolatry_n and_o superstition_n and_o to_o impose_v upon_o they_o with_o a_o image_n with_o a_o idol_n in_o stead_n of_o god_n and_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n be_v like_o tinder_n to_o the_o fire_n of_o these_o temptation_n the_o stratagem_n have_v be_v i_o think_v as_o successful_a and_o as_o advantageous_a to_o the_o devil_n kingdom_n as_o any_o that_o ever_o come_v into_o that_o old_a serpent_n head_n when_o or_o how_o soon_o this_o delusion_n come_v into_o the_o world_n i_o need_v not_o here_o dispute_v certain_a it_o be_v it_o be_v very_o early_o for_o we_o have_v express_v mention_n make_v of_o it_o among_o abraham_n ancestor_n josh_n 24.2_o now_o the_o call_v of_o abraham_n be_v but_o four_o hundred_o twenty-seven_o year_n after_o the_o flood_n or_o thereabouts_o as_o you_o will_v find_v if_o you_o compute_v and_o put_v together_o the_o age_n of_o those_o ten_o patriarch_n record_v gen._n 11_o with_o gen._n 12.5_o so_o that_o mankind_n have_v be_v cut_v down_o with_o a_o flood_n but_o a_o little_a before_o for_o atheistical_a profaneness_n and_o wickedness_n they_o be_v lose_v again_o and_o the_o whole_a world_n in_o a_o manner_n overwhelm_v and_o drown_v as_o it_o be_v with_o another_o and_o worse_a deluge_n of_o idolatry_n within_o that_o short_a space_n of_o four_o hundred_o year_n or_o thereabouts_o for_o unto_o that_o period_n as_o i_o conceive_v the_o rise_v of_o idolatry_n must_v be_v refer_v and_o what_o be_v the_o great_a sin_n among_o the_o jew_n be_v it_o not_o this_o and_o among_o the_o old_a heathen_n and_o pagan_n and_o among_o the_o papist_n and_o other_o superstitious_a christian_n at_o this_o day_n what_o be_v the_o great_a design_n and_o work_n of_o christ_n in_o this_o age_n the_o work_n of_o this_o generation_n but_o to_o bring_v forth_o his_o worship_n into_o purity_n that_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n may_v come_v down_o from_o heaven_n this_o therefore_o satan_n study_v chief_o to_o oppose_v and_o so_o to_o countermine_v the_o lord_n jesus_n in_o his_o great_a work_n and_o will_v you_o take_v part_n with_o he_o and_o be_v on_o his_o side_n against_o the_o lord_n 2._o it_o will_v be_v varnish_v over_o with_o fair_a colour_n and_o plausible_a pretence_n depart_v from_o the_o will_n of_o god_n reveal_v in_o his_o word_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o his_o worship_n have_v ever_o be_v so_o the_o image_n that_o fall_v down_o from_o jupiter_n cry_v they_o act._n 19.35_o this_o be_v give_v out_o for_o that_o ephesian_a diana_n so_o the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n give_v the_o wine_n of_o her_o fornication_n in_o a_o golden_a cup._n rev._n 17.4_o and_o as_o the_o light_n increase_v so_o the_o craft_n and_o method_n of_o satan_n be_v more_o refine_v and_o more_o subtle_a and_o spiritual_a in_o the_o first_o time_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n he_o do_v appear_v almost_o like_o himself_o in_o the_o shape_n of_o a_o great_a red_a dragon_n in_o the_o roman_a pagan_a emperor_n but_o when_o michael_n and_o his_o angel_n overcome_v and_o overthrow_v he_o in_o this_o appearance_n rev._n 12._o then_o he_o put_v on_o a_o new_a vizard_n and_o appear_v in_o another_o shape_n of_o two_o wild_a beast_n rev._n 13._o but_o still_o pursue_v the_o same_o design_n though_o under_o new_a pretence_n and_o by_o other_o instrument_n viz._n by_o the_o church_n and_o pope_n of_o rome_n for_o he_o have_v make_v it_o his_o business_n ever_o since_o the_o time_n of_o constantine_n the_o great_a to_o revive_v the_o old_a heathenish_a idolatry_n under_o other_o name_n that_o the_o world_n may_v not_o be_v say_v idola_fw-la relinquere_fw-la but_o simulacra_fw-la mutasse_fw-la that_o whereas_o before_o they_o worship_v the_o devil_n under_o the_o name_n of_o jupiter_n diana_n and_o apollo_n etc._n etc._n now_o they_o commit_v the_o same_o idolatry_n and_o worship_v the_o same_o devil_n still_o but_o under_o the_o name_n of_o popish_a saint_n now_o it_o be_v not_o jupiter_n and_o diana_n any_o more_o but_o st._n francis_n and_o st._n becket_n and_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n of_o rome_n thus_o do_v that_o harlot_n paint_v her_o face_n so_o the_o prelatic_a superstition_n at_o this_o day_n those_o relic_n of_o popery_n be_v paint_v over_o with_o those_o gloze_a pretence_n of_o antiquity_n father_n council_n order_n decency_n edification_n the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n and_o such_o like_a 3._o if_o once_o you_o leave_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o word_n the_o will_n of_o god_n reveal_v there_o and_o begin_v in_o a_o way_n of_o superstition_n you_o will_v never_o know_v where_o to_o stop_v or_o stay_v nor_o where_o to_o make_v a_o end_n but_o you_o will_v multiply_v your_o idol_n and_o increase_v your_o idolatry_n and_o grow_v worse_o and_o worse_o as_o in_o those_o sensual_a lust_n of_o drunkenness_n and_o uncleanness_n the_o poor_a creature_n say_v i_o will_v seek_v it_o yet_o again_o so_o in_o these_o spiritual_a lust_n they_o be_v unsatiable_a ezek._n 16.28_o because_o thou_o be_v unsatiable_a it_o be_v a_o endless_a sin_n if_o you_o do_v but_o wear_v a_o surplice_n for_o peace_n sake_n why_o not_o as_o well_o admit_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n in_o baptism_n or_o bow_v to_o a_o altar_n and_o then_o within_o a_o little_a while_n the_o same_o reason_n be_v as_o strong_a for_o bow_v to_o a_o image_n to_o a_o crucifix_n and_o why_o not_o as_o well_o say_v mass_n too_o for_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n and_o then_o at_o last_o swallow_v down_o every_o thing_n submit_v your_o conscience_n to_o the_o pope_n worship_v the_o beast_n and_o so_o be_v damn_v and_o go_v to_o hell_n and_o all_o for_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n o_o there_o be_v no_o end_n here_o but_o like_o a_o man_n that_o be_v tumble_v down_o a_o steep_a hill_n that_o can_v stop_v till_o he_o come_v to_o the_o bottom_n popery_n come_v
can_v be_v suppose_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n have_v the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n neither_o indeed_o be_v the_o lord_n wont_v to_o work_v miracle_n for_o that_o end_n we_o do_v not_o find_v it_o in_o scripture_n that_o the_o lord_n do_v put_v man_n by_o miracle_n into_o satan_n hand_n but_o he_o rather_o work_v miraculous_o to_o deliver_v they_o from_o it_o but_o a_o spiritual_a power_n of_o satan_n over_o they_o be_v hereby_o mean_v namely_o either_o to_o terrify_v or_o stupefie_v they_o 1._o sometime_o he_o give_v satan_n a_o terrify_a power_n in_o order_n to_o their_o humble_v but_o 2._o if_o they_o be_v not_o terrify_v by_o satan_n when_o under_o this_o ordinance_n there_o be_v a_o stupify_a harden_v power_n and_o there_o never_o be_v any_o man_n just_o excommunicate_v but_o fall_v under_o one_o of_o these_o two_o quest_n 2._o what_o be_v the_o case_n wherein_o excommunication_n ought_v to_o be_v administer_v ans_fw-fr it_o be_v the_o high_a censure_n and_o the_o severe_a part_n of_o that_o spiritual_a vengeance_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v entrust_v his_o minister_n and_o church_n with_o it_o shall_v never_o be_v use_v but_o in_o case_n of_o great_a extremity_n when_o no_o other_o mean_n in_o the_o ordinary_a course_n of_o god_n dispensation_n will_v attain_v the_o end_n but_o when_o the_o sinner_n case_n be_v such_o that_o it_o be_v beyond_o the_o reach_n of_o other_o mean_n to_o help_v immeditabile_fw-la vulnus_fw-la ense_fw-mi recidendum_fw-la est_fw-la hence_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v use_v for_o mere_a sailing_n and_o infirmity_n and_o sin_n of_o weakness_n which_o a_o godly_a man_n may_v fall_v into_o and_o yet_o walk_v with_o god_n upright_o but_o for_o such_o sin_n and_o evil_n as_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o grace_n here_o or_o glory_n hereafter_o such_o as_o if_o a_o man_n live_v and_o die_v and_o go_v on_o in_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a he_o shall_v have_v any_o grace_n in_o his_o heart_n or_o any_o ground_a comfort_n or_o hope_n of_o salvation_n hence_o also_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v use_v for_o thing_n doubtful_a and_o disputeable_a rom._n 14.1_o much_o less_o for_o thing_n indifferent_a for_o they_o neither_o commend_v we_o nor_o discommend_v we_o unto_o god_n 1_o cor._n 8.8_o and_o therefore_o shall_v not_o to_o the_o church_n for_o in_o such_o thing_n we_o be_v not_o either_o the_o better_o or_o the_o worse_a for_o practise_v or_o forbear_v as_o the_o apostle_n there_o express_o assert_n but_o for_o thing_n clear_a and_o certain_a and_o universal_o acknowledge_v among_o all_o that_o deserve_v the_o name_n of_o christian_n the_o scripture_n speak_v clear_o to_o two_o case_n 1._o fundamental_a error_n of_o judgement_n so_o the_o apostle_n 1_o tim._n 1._o ult_n deal_v with_o hymeneus_n and_o philetus_n and_o what_o they_o hold_v be_v more_o particular_o express_v in_o 2_o tim._n 2.17_o 18._o viz._n that_o the_o resurrection_n be_v pass_v already_o so_o titus_n 3.10_o a_o heretic_n after_o his_o be_v twice_o admonish_v reject_v so_o here_o leu._n 13.44_o if_o the_o leprosy_n be_v in_o the_o head_n he_o be_v utter_o unclean_a hence_o therefore_o if_o any_o man_n deny_v one_o god_n and_o three_o person_n deny_v the_o scripture_n the_o deity_n of_o christ_n the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n or_o such_o like_a fundamental_a point_n it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o the_o church_n to_o cast_v he_o out_o from_o among_o they_o he_o be_v unclean_a 2._o for_o scandalous_a practice_n in_o a_o man_n life_n and_o conversation_n the_o rule_n be_v plain_a 2_o thess_n 3.6_o withdraw_v yourselves_o from_o every_o brother_n that_o walk_v disorderly_a so_o in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o incestuous_a corinthian_a 1_o cor._n 5.13_o put_v away_o from_o among_o yourselves_o that_o wicked_a person_n so_o mat._n 18.17_o so_o of_o old_a 2_o chron._n 23.19_o jehoiada_n set_v porter_n at_o the_o gate_n of_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o none_o which_o be_v unclean_a in_o any_o thing_n shall_v enter_v in_o this_o include_v moral_a as_o well_o as_o ceremonial_a uncleanness_n quest_n 3._o the_o end_n of_o this_o ordinance_n answ_n they_o be_v many_o the_o principal_a be_v these_o three_o 1._o to_o vindicate_v the_o name_n of_o god_n from_o the_o dishonour_n do_v to_o it_o by_o wicked_a man_n creep_v in_o among_o his_o people_n this_o vindicate_v the_o holiness_n of_o god_n that_o though_o he_o love_v sinner_n yet_o he_o show_v his_o love_n in_o sanctify_v and_o turn_v they_o from_o their_o sin_n not_o in_o shelter_v and_o encourage_v they_o in_o their_o wickedness_n this_o end_n be_v intimate_v in_o 1_o cor._n 5.1_o it_o be_v common_o report_v that_o there_o be_v fornication_n among_o you_o and_o that_o such_o fornication_n as_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o name_v among_o the_o gentile_n q._n d._n the_o name_n of_o god_n suffer_v by_o it_o the_o gentile_n take_v offence_n against_o religion_n because_o of_o this_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o say_v as_o ezek._n 36.20_o these_o be_v the_o lord_n people_n and_o so_o the_o holy_a name_n of_o god_n be_v profane_v by_o such_o sinner_n as_o the_o prophet_n there_o speak_v so_o again_o 2_o cor._n 7.11_o what_o clear_v of_o yourselves_o in_o clear_v themselves_o they_o clear_v the_o name_n of_o god_n i_o mention_v this_o first_o because_o this_o be_v the_o great_a and_o chief_a end_n of_o this_o ordinance_n and_o it_o never_o fail_v of_o attain_v this_o end_n though_o it_o have_v little_a success_n in_o other_o respect_n though_o the_o sinner_n be_v never_o so_o obstinate_a yet_o however_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v clear_v 2._o for_o the_o church_n good_a to_o take_v away_o infectious_a person_n from_o among_o they_o and_o so_o to_o preserve_v and_o warn_v the_o rest_n to_o keep_v the_o church_n pure_a and_o free_a from_o infection_n 1_o cor._n 5_o 6._o a_o little_a leaven_n leaven_v the_o whole_a lump_n one_o root_n of_o bitterness_n may_v defile_v many_o heb._n 12.15_o and_o to_o warn_v other_o that_o other_o may_v fear_v 1_o tim._n 5.20_o that_o all_o israel_n may_v hear_v and_o fear_n and_o do_v no_o more_o presumptuous_o deut._n 17.13_o 3._o for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o sinner_n himself_o to_o bring_v he_o to_o repentance_n for_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o flesh_n 1_o cor._n 5.5_o the_o incestuous_a corinthian_a must_v be_v deliver_v unto_o satan_n for_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o god_n do_v so_o bless_v this_o ordinance_n to_o he_o that_o he_o be_v humble_v and_o bring_v to_o deep_a and_o thorough_a repentance_n thereby_o i_o confess_v this_o end_n be_v not_o always_o attain_v but_o yet_o the_o ordinance_n be_v not_o in_o vain_a for_o this_o be_v not_o the_o only_a end_n of_o it_o nor_o yet_o the_o chief_a end_n for_o god_n glory_n be_v the_o chief_a end_n the_o vindicate_a his_o great_a name_n the_o manifest_v his_o justiee_n and_o holiness_n and_o hatred_n of_o sin_n and_o this_o end_n be_v attain_v though_o the_o sinner_n be_v not_o convert_v by_o it_o quest_n 4._o what_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o proceed_v in_o excommunication_n ans_fw-fr some_o thing_n herein_o be_v leave_v to_o christian_a prudence_n and_o must_v be_v judge_v of_o by_o the_o particular_a circumstance_n of_o every_o case_n but_o there_o be_v some_o general_a rule_n to_o guide_v we_o in_o each_o particular_a there_o be_v chief_o this_o general_a rule_n wherein_o all_o agree_v all_o the_o godly_a learned_a that_o have_v write_v upon_o this_o subject_n do_v agree_v thus_o far_o that_o in_o some_o case_n there_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o more_o gradual_a and_o delatory_a kind_n of_o proceed_v by_o certain_a step_n and_o degree_n but_o in_o other_o case_n the_o proceed_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v more_o speedy_a and_o summary_n rule_n 1._o in_o some_o case_n there_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o more_o gradual_a and_o delatory_a way_n of_o proceed_v by_o certain_a step_n and_o degree_n these_o step_n and_o degree_n be_v two_o first_o suspension_n and_o then_o excommunication_n the_o first_o degree_n be_v call_v by_o some_o the_o lesser_a excommunication_n and_o the_o second_o they_o call_v the_o great_a excommunication_n suspension_n be_v a_o temporary_a debar_v of_o a_o person_n from_o the_o present_a enjoyment_n and_o participation_n of_o church_n privilege_n as_o the_o sacrament_n and_o power_n of_o vote_v till_o such_o time_n as_o his_o case_n be_v full_o determine_v some_o call_v it_o suspension_n other_o call_v it_o admonition_n other_o the_o lesser_a excommunication_n but_o he_o be_v a_o member_n still_o for_o excommunication_n cut_v he_o off_o suspension_n only_o debar_v he_o of_o present_a communion_n with_o the_o body_n for_o a_o time_n but_o excommunication_n cut_v off_o and_o dissolve_v his_o union_n with_o the_o body_n the_o rule_n for_o suspension_n be_v in_o levit._n 13.4_o 5._o from_o the_o priest_n shut_v
these_o part_n for_o the_o whole_a this_o teach_v we_o the_o same_o that_o be_v note_v before_o out_o of_o the_o same_o ceremony_n concern_v the_o blood_n and_o whereas_o he_o must_v put_v the_o oil_n upon_o the_o blood_n that_o be_v upon_o the_o same_o place_n where_o he_o have_v put_v the_o blood_n before_o as_o it_o be_v explain_v more_o full_o vers_n 28._o this_o teach_v we_o that_o our_o sanctification_n flow_v from_o our_o justification_n the_o blood_n must_v be_v apply_v first_o and_o then_o the_o oil_n upon_o it_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o purchase_n of_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o the_o spirit_n of_o sanctification_n be_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o justification_n look_v not_o to_o have_v thy_o soul_n cleanse_v from_o the_o power_n of_o sin_n by_o sanctification_n unless_o it_o be_v cleanse_v from_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n apply_v for_o justification_n we_o be_v first_o justify_v and_o reconcile_v by_o his_o blood_n and_o then_o sanctify_v and_o anoint_v by_o his_o spirit_n he_o forgive_v all_o thy_o iniquity_n and_o heal_v all_o thy_o disease_n psal_n 103._o justification_n be_v in_o order_n before_o sanctification_n first_o the_o blood_n and_o then_o the_o oil_n upon_o the_o blood_n these_o be_v the_o law_n and_o ordinance_n for_o the_o purify_n of_o the_o leper_n but_o now_o a_o case_n of_o conscience_n may_v arise_v what_o if_o the_o leper_n be_v not_o able_a to_o get_v all_o these_o sacrifice_n and_o requisite_n for_o his_o cleanse_n what_o shall_v be_v do_v in_o such_o a_o case_n the_o answer_n be_v that_o the_o lord_n have_v make_v a_o gracious_a provision_n for_o the_o necessity_n of_o his_o people_n therefore_o lesser_a sacrifice_n be_v provide_v and_o appoint_v in_o such_o a_o case_n from_o vers_fw-la 21_o to_o vers_n 33._o where_o this_o case_n be_v full_o speak_v to_o viz._n in_o stead_n of_o three_o lamb_n he_o require_v here_o but_o one_o lamb_n and_o two_o turtle_n dove_n or_o else_o two_o young_a pigeon_n whichsoever_o he_o can_v best_o get_v and_o in_o stead_n of_o three_o omers_n of_o fine_a flower_n for_o a_o meat_n offer_v he_o require_v in_o this_o case_n but_o one_o omer_n that_o be_v about_o a_o pottle_n of_o our_o measure_n and_o a_o log_n of_o oil_n that_o be_v about_o half_a a_o pint._n this_o be_v the_o same_o that_o be_v before_o and_o these_o lesser_a sacrifice_n be_v as_o effectual_a for_o the_o cleanse_n of_o a_o poor_a leper_n as_o the_o great_a sacrifice_n be_v for_o rich_a person_n god_n accept_v a_o man_n according_a to_o that_o he_o have_v and_o not_o according_a to_o that_o he_o have_v not_o 2_o cor._n 8.12_o the_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n of_o these_o be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o former_a so_o i_o shall_v pass_v from_o this_o observe_v only_o the_o gracious_a condescension_n of_o god_n to_o the_o several_a capacity_n and_o necessity_n of_o his_o people_n the_o latter_a part_n of_o the_o chapter_n be_v concern_v the_o cleanse_n of_o a_o leprous_a house_n from_z vers_n 33_o to_o the_o end_n some_o say_v it_o be_v a_o peculiar_a thing_n in_o that_o land_n a_o strange_a infection_n that_o seize_v the_o land_n in_o some_o case_n the_o whole_a land_n be_v a_o typical_a land_n as_o we_o have_v hear_v i_o shall_v only_o note_v two_o or_o three_o general_a observation_n from_o it_o and_o from_o the_o whole_a chapter_n and_o so_o conclude_v obs_n 1._o the_o marvellous_a infectious_a and_o defile_v nature_n of_o sin_n in_o that_o it_o infect_v and_o defile_v other_o thing_n the_o very_a house_n and_o the_o garment_n to_o the_o unclean_a all_o thing_n be_v unclean_a as_o to_o the_o pure_a all_o thing_n be_v pure_a tit._n 1.15_o it_o poison_n and_o corrupt_v all_o the_o concernment_n and_o enjoyment_n of_o a_o sinner_n the_o apostle_n speak_v how_o the_o whole_a creation_n groan_v and_o travel_v in_o pain_n together_o until_o now_o rom._n 8.22_o for_o the_o creature_n be_v make_v subject_a to_o vanity_n etc._n etc._n the_o stone_n out_o of_o the_o wall_n and_o the_o timber_n out_o of_o the_o house_n be_v trouble_v with_o a_o wicked_a man_n and_o cry_v out_o against_o he_o as_o habakkuk_n have_v it_o chap._n 2.11_o that_o be_v the_o first_o observation_n learn_v the_o wonderful_a defilement_n and_o infectious_a nature_n of_o sin_n that_o it_o corrupt_v all_o the_o concernment_n that_o a_o sinner_n be_v concern_v in_o obs_n 2._o whereas_o the_o leprous_a house_n if_o it_o be_v incurable_o infect_v must_v be_v pull_v down_o and_o all_o the_o material_n of_o it_o cast_v away_o vers_fw-la 40_o 45._o this_o teach_v we_o that_o all_o the_o monument_n and_o remainder_n of_o leprous_a and_o corrupt_a thing_n must_v be_v destroy_v idolatry_n and_o superstition_n be_v a_o leprosy_n that_o have_v overspread_v the_o whole_a christian_a world_n during_o popery_n and_o as_o the_o prophet_n say_v concern_v babylon_n jer._n 51.26_o they_o shall_v not_o take_v of_o babylon_n a_o stone_n for_o a_o corner_n nor_o a_o stone_n for_o foundation_n but_o thou_o shall_v be_v desolate_a for_o ever_o say_v the_o lord_n it_o hold_v true_a of_o mystical_a babylon_n that_o leprous_a church_n who_o idolatry_n and_o superstition_n be_v a_o spiritual_a leprosy_n which_o do_v overspread_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n in_o the_o time_n of_o popery_n therefore_o away_o with_o all_o the_o monument_n and_o remainder_n of_o it_o dwalphintramis_n apply_v this_o not_o impertinent_o to_o the_o pope_n mass-book_n the_o pope_n mass_n book_n be_v a_o leprous_a house_n the_o stone_n and_o timber_n whereof_o shall_v have_v be_v cast_v aside_o as_o pollute_v and_o a_o abomination_n therefore_o it_o be_v a_o unhappy_a and_o a_o fatal_a error_n in_o the_o first_o reformation_n to_o take_v material_n out_o of_o that_o to_o reform_v with_o to_o take_v the_o stone_n and_o timber_n of_o that_o leprous_a house_n to_o use_v in_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n which_o must_v be_v therefore_o frame_v to_o comport_v with_o those_o leprous_a pollute_a thing_n it_o have_v be_v the_o occasion_n of_o a_o new_a conflict_n to_o the_o people_n of_o god_n in_o this_o age_n and_o of_o manifold_a suffering_n to_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n because_o they_o contend_v that_o these_o leprous_a pollute_a thing_n shall_v be_v cast_v aside_o this_o may_v have_v be_v prevent_v if_o there_o have_v be_v a_o thorough_a reformation_n at_o first_o and_o the_o stone_n and_o timber_n of_o those_o leprous_a house_n the_o pope_n mass-book_n ritual_a pontifical_a and_o breviary_n have_v be_v at_o our_o first_o reformation_n cast_v forth_o as_o pollut_v and_o abominable_a obs_n 3._o how_o difficult_a and_o yet_o withal_o how_o necessary_a a_o work_n the_o purify_n and_o cleanse_v of_o the_o leprosy_n be_v the_o leprosy_n be_v a_o type_n of_o sin_n and_o sinful_a corruption_n especial_o that_o original_n and_o universal_a pollution_n and_o defilement_n of_o our_o nature_n the_o purification_n of_o the_o leprosy_n therefore_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o work_n of_o mortification_n or_o purge_v out_o of_o sinful_a corruption_n this_o be_v a_o difficult_a work_n see_v how_o many_o ingredient_n must_v concur_v to_o it_o in_o the_o type_n there_o must_v be_v two_o bird_n with_o cedar_n scarlet_n and_o hyssop_n and_o a_o great_a many_o ceremony_n about_o these_o material_n there_o must_v be_v spring_n water_n and_o a_o earthen_a vessel_n and_o kill_v dip_v sprinkle_v wash_a shave_v etc._n etc._n and_o when_o all_o this_o be_v do_v there_o be_v but_o half_a the_o work_n do_v for_o there_o must_v be_v also_o three_o lamb_n for_o a_o burnt-offering_a a_o trespass_n offer_v a_o sin_z offering_z and_o three_o omers_n of_o fine_a flower_n with_o oil_n for_o a_o meat_n offer_v and_o a_o log_n of_o oil_n and_o a_o multitude_n of_o sacred_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n about_o these_o material_n o_o how_o much_o ado_n there_o be_v to_o get_v a_o leprous_a person_n purify_v and_o make_v clean_o and_o all_o these_o thing_n instruct_v and_o show_v you_o all_o along_o the_o method_n of_o the_o lord_n proceed_v in_o purify_n the_o heart_n of_o sinner_n there_o must_v be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o pain_n take_v with_o thy_o own_o heart_n in_o the_o use_n of_o all_o the_o mean_n and_o ordinance_n that_o god_n have_v appoint_v and_o though_o there_o be_v all_o this_o pain_n and_o difficulty_n in_o the_o work_n yet_o it_o must_v be_v do_v there_o be_v a_o necessity_n of_o it_o this_o disease_n be_v very_o troublesome_a and_o loathsome_a and_o it_o may_v be_v mortal_a at_o last_o if_o a_o cure_n be_v not_o provide_v in_o time_n therefore_o the_o leper_n must_v use_v mean_n and_o take_v pain_n and_o so_o shall_v sinful_a leprous_a soul_n obs_n 4._o that_o as_o there_o be_v a_o leprosy_n of_o the_o heart_n as_o we_o be_v defile_v and_o unclean_a by_o
the_o tent_n of_o the_o congregation_n and_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n fill_v the_o tabernalce_a so_o numb_a 12.5_o the_o lord_n come_v down_o in_o the_o pillar_n of_o cloud_n and_o stand_v in_o the_o door_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n so_o when_o solomon_n have_v finish_v the_o temple_n and_o place_v the_o ark_n in_o the_o holy_a place_n the_o cloud_n fill_v the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n so_o that_o the_o priest_n can_v not_o stand_v to_o minister_v because_o of_o the_o cloud_n for_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n fill_v the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n 1_o king_n 8.10_o 11._o isaiah_n likewise_o see_v his_o glory_n in_o the_o temple_n isai_n 6.1_o i_o see_v the_o lord_n sit_v upon_o a_o throne_n high_a and_o lift_v up_o and_o his_o train_n fill_v the_o temple_n 3._o these_o place_n have_v their_o typical_a signification_n of_o christ_n and_o gospel_n mystery_n therefore_o much_o of_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v in_o they_o there_o be_v chief_o two_o great_a mystery_n in_o they_o christ_n and_o the_o church_n 1._o the_o temple_n be_v a_o type_n of_o christ_n joh._n 2.19_o destroy_v this_o temple_n and_o within_o three_o day_n i_o will_v raise_v it_o up_o but_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o temple_n of_o his_o body_n v._o 21._o therefore_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o in_o he_o dwell_v all_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n bodily_a col._n 2.9_o he_o be_v a_o minister_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n and_o of_o the_o true_a tabernacle_n which_o the_o lord_n pitch_v and_o not_o man_n heb._n 9.11_o 2._o it_o be_v a_o type_n of_o the_o church_n 1_o tim._n 3.15_o how_o thou_o ought_v to_o behave_v thyself_o in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o church_n of_o the_o live_a god_n ephes_n 2.20_o 21_o 22._o and_o it_o be_v a_o type_n not_o only_o of_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o general_n but_o of_o every_o believer_n in_o particular_a 1_o cor._n 6.19_o what_o know_v you_o not_o that_o your_o body_n be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o dwell_v in_o their_o very_a body_n much_o more_o in_o their_o soul_n the_o manner_n how_o the_o deity_n dwell_v in_o these_o temple_n be_v very_o mysterious_a and_o glorious_a 4._o these_o place_n be_v appoint_v of_o god_n to_o be_v part_n yea_o principal_a and_o eminent_a part_n of_o his_o worship_n i_o say_v they_o be_v part_n of_o his_o worship_n or_o ordinance_n they_o be_v such_o eminent_a part_n of_o his_o worship_n that_o they_o do_v sanctify_v both_o the_o worshipper_n and_o all_o the_o worship_n perform_v in_o they_o the_o altar_n sanctify_v the_o gift_n the_o temple_n sanctify_v the_o gold_n matth._n 23.18_o 19_o the_o place_n do_v bring_v acceptance_n to_o the_o worship_n so_o that_o the_o place_n be_v principal_a and_o the_o duty_n less_o principal_a as_o some_o express_v it_o there_o will_v i_o accept_v they_o ezek._n 20.40_o exod._n 20.24_o in_o all_o place_n where_o i_o record_v my_o name_n i_o will_v come_v unto_o thou_o and_o i_o will_v bless_v thou_o 5._o they_o be_v by_o god_n appointment_n the_o seat_n of_o all_o the_o public_a church-worship_n of_o those_o time_n they_o do_v perform_v the_o moral_a worship_n of_o prayer_n and_o read_v and_o hear_v the_o law_n in_o all_o their_o synagogue_n but_o their_o public_a church-worship_n be_v annex_v and_o affix_v to_o the_o temple_n only_o there_o be_v three_o thing_n in_o the_o text_n as_o to_o this_o 1._o thither_o shall_v thou_o seek_v that_o be_v for_o answer_n and_o oracle_n from_o the_o holy_a place_n and_o from_o the_o priest_n by_o urim_n and_o thummim_n for_o so_o the_o lord_n have_v appoint_v exod._n 25.22_o there_o will_v i_o meet_v with_o thou_o and_o i_o will_v commune_v with_o thou_o from_o above_o the_o mercy-seat_n from_o between_o the_o two_o cherubim_n which_o be_v upon_o the_o ark_n of_o the_o testimony_n and_o according_o so_o they_o do_v numb_a 7.8_o 9_o and_o they_o be_v to_o inquire_v by_o urim_n and_o thummim_n therefore_o it_o be_v say_v of_o joshuah_n when_o he_o be_v to_o be_v chief_a magistrate_n numb_a 27.21_o and_o he_o shall_v stand_v before_o eleazar_n the_o priest_n who_o shall_v ask_v counsel_n for_o he_o after_o the_o judgement_n of_o urim_n before_o the_o lord_n at_o his_o word_n shall_v they_o go_v out_o and_o at_o his_o word_n that_o be_v at_o eleazar_n the_o priest_n answer_v from_o god_n shall_v they_o come_v in_o both_o he_o that_o be_v joshuah_n and_o all_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n with_o he_o even_o all_o the_o congregation_n all_o other_o place_n be_v forbid_v for_o this_o use_n seek_v not_o bethel_n enter_v not_o into_o gilgal_n amos_n 5.5_o and_o the_o lord_n severe_o punish_v it_o in_o ahaziah_n the_o son_n of_o ahab_n 2_o king_n 1.16_o elijah_n say_v unto_o he_o for_o as_o much_o as_o thou_o have_v send_v messenger_n to_o inquire_v of_o baalzebub_a the_o god_n of_o ekron_n be_v it_o not_o because_o there_o be_v no_o god_n in_o israel_n to_o inquire_v of_o his_o word_n therefore_o thou_o shall_v not_o come_v down_o off_o that_o bed_n on_o which_o thou_o be_v go_v up_o but_o shall_v sure_o die_v the_o devil_n in_o imitation_n and_o abuse_n of_o this_o ordinance_n of_o god_n have_v his_o oracle_n and_o give_v answer_n in_o the_o old_a pagan_a time_n but_o his_o answer_n be_v usual_o sophistical_a and_o ambiguous_a and_o after_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n god_n be_v please_v to_o chain_v he_o up_o therefore_o plutarch_n a_o heathen_a philosopher_n in_o his_o moral_n have_v a_o discourse_n upon_o it_o why_o the_o oracle_n be_v cease_v and_o he_o have_v a_o expression_n for_o the_o resolve_v of_o it_o which_o have_v more_o of_o truth_n in_o it_o than_o himself_o understand_v among_o other_o thing_n he_o give_v this_o account_n of_o it_o that_o it_o be_v because_o the_o great_a god_n pan_n be_v dead_a it_o be_v indeed_o because_o jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v the_o great_a god_n and_o the_o great_a shepherd_n of_o the_o sheep_n have_v suffer_v death_n and_o thereby_o conquer_v satan_n and_o have_v therefore_o stop_v devil_n mouth_n from_o give_v answer_n in_o that_o way_n ever_o since_o 2._o thither_o shall_v thou_o come_v that_o be_v at_o all_o their_o appoint_a festival_n three_o time_n a_o year_n exod._n 23.14_o 17._o and_o whensoever_o they_o offer_v sacrifice_n as_o afterward_o ver_fw-la 6._o 3._o thither_o shall_v you_o bring_v your_o burnt-offering_n and_o your_o sacrifice_n etc._n etc._n ver_fw-la 6._o so_o levit._n 17.8_o 9_o here_o be_v a_o particular_a induction_n and_o enumeration_n of_o their_o holy_a thing_n your_o burnt-offering_n mention_v first_o as_o be_v the_o first_o sort_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n depend_v much_o upon_o that_o your_o sacrifice_n this_o be_v a_o general_a word_n include_v all_o that_o belong_v unto_o the_o altar_n and_o your_o tithe_n these_o be_v for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o the_o priest_n whereof_o levit._n 27.30_o 32._o they_o have_v two_o sort_n of_o tithe_n the_o first_o go_v to_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n then_o of_o that_o which_o remain_v they_o be_v to_o separate_v a_o second_o tithe_n and_o this_o the_o owner_n be_v to_o eat_v before_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o place_n that_o he_o shall_v choose_v as_o infra_fw-la ver_fw-la 17_o 18._o the_o heave-offering_n of_o thy_o hand_n that_o be_v the_o first_o fruit_n which_o they_o be_v to_o bring_v in_o their_o hand_n before_o the_o lord_n deut._n 26.2_o thou_o shall_v take_v of_o the_o first_o of_o all_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o shall_v put_v it_o in_o a_o basket_n and_o shall_v go_v unto_o the_o place_n which_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n shall_v choose_v to_o place_v his_o name_n there_o and_o thou_o shall_v set_v it_o before_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o worship_n before_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n your_o vow_n and_o voluntary_a offering_n of_o which_o see_v levit._fw-la 7.16_o firstling_n of_o you_o herd_n and_o flock_n often_o declare_v to_o be_v the_o lord_n numb_a 3.13_o because_o all_o the_o first-born_a be_v my_o for_o on_o the_o day_n that_o i_o smite_v all_o the_o first-born_a in_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n i_o hallow_v unto_o i_o all_o the_o first-born_a in_o israel_n both_o man_n and_o beast_n mine_v they_o shall_v be_v i_o be_o the_o lord_n for_o the_o use_n of_o all_o there_o be_v a_o fourfold_a instruction_n from_o all_o that_o have_v be_v say_v concern_v these_o holy_a place_n under_o the_o law_n 1._o the_o first_o instruction_n be_v concern_v the_o cessation_n of_o this_o holiness_n of_o place_n under_o the_o new_a testament_n for_o this_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v cease_v and_o vanish_v away_o now_o that_o christ_n the_o thing_n signify_v be_v come_v the_o papist_n have_v borrow_v this_o as_o they_o do_v many_o other_o of_o their_o superstition_n from_o the_o
jew_n some_o they_o borrow_v from_o the_o pagan_n and_o other_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o piece_n and_o relic_n of_o the_o law_n of_o ceremony_n so_o be_v this_o of_o the_o holiness_n of_o place_n and_o consecrate_v of_o church_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o clear_a than_o that_o the_o difference_n of_o place_n be_v take_v away_o under_o the_o gospel_n when_o the_o woman_n of_o s●●naria_n plead_v our_o father_n worship_v in_o this_o mountain_n but_o you_o say_v that_o jerusalem_n be_v the_o place_n where_o man_n ought_v to_o worship_v jesus_n say_v unto_o she_o woman_n believe_v i_o the_o hour_n come_v and_o now_o be_v when_o you_o shall_v neither_o in_o this_o mountain_n nor_o yet_o at_o jerusalem_n worship_v the_o father_n but_o the_o true_a worshipper_n shall_v worship_v he_o in_o spirit_n and_o in_o truth_n joh._n 4.21_o 23._o he_o turn_v her_o eye_n and_o thought_n away_o from_o the_o difference_n of_o place_n to_o regard_v and_o mind_n the_o spirituality_n of_o the_o worship_n for_o as_o god_n be_v no_o respecter_n of_o person_n so_o he_o be_v no_o respecter_n of_o place_n but_o wheresoever_o for_o that_o indefinite_a where_o be_v equivalent_a to_o a_o universal_a wheresoever_o two_o or_o three_o be_v gather_v together_o in_o my_o name_n there_o be_o i_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o matth._n 18.22_o the_o apostle_n therefore_o say_v 1_o tim._n 2.8_o i_o will_v that_o man_n pray_v everywhere_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o every_o place_n as_o be_v prophesy_v long_o before_o by_o the_o prophet_n malachi_n cap._n 1.11_o for_o from_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o sun_n even_o to_o the_o go_v down_o thereof_o my_o name_n shall_v be_v great_a among_o the_o gentile_n and_o in_o every_o place_n therefore_o all_o place_n be_v alike_o incense_n shall_v be_v offer_v unto_o my_o name_n and_o a_o pure_a offer_n which_o before_o be_v limit_v to_o the_o temple_n therefore_o the_o church_n at_o jerusalem_n meet_v in_o a_o upper_a chamber_n acts._n 1.13_o so_o do_v the_o church_n at_o troas_n act_v 20.8_o there_o they_o do_v preach_v and_o break_v bread_n therefore_o all_o place_n be_v alike_o every_o place_n be_v now_o a_o judea_n every_o house_n a_o jerusalem_n every_o congregation_n a_o zion_n but_o what_o a_o strange_a thing_n be_v this_o that_o man_n can_v see_v no_o holiness_n in_o the_o lord_n day_n but_o slight_a and_o oppose_v that_o and_o yet_o assert_v a_o holiness_n in_o place_n oh_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n upon_o such_o man_n spirit_n obj._n but_o shall_v there_o not_o be_v public_a worship_n answ_n yes_o but_o that_o may_v be_v in_o place_n that_o be_v not_o consecrate_v dr._n usher_n in_o his_o body_n of_o divinity_n pag._n 404._o speak_v against_o the_o private_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n he_o thus_o explain_v it_o in_o these_o word_n in_o time_n of_o persecution_n the_o godly_a say_v he_o do_v often_o meet_v in_o barn_n and_o such_o obscure_a place_n which_o be_v indeed_o public_a because_o of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n there_o the_o house_n or_o place_n avail_v nothing_o to_o make_v it_o either_o public_a or_o private_a even_o as_o wheresoever_o the_o prince_n be_v there_o be_v the_o court_n although_o it_o be_v a_o poor_a cottage_n obj._n but_o there_o it_o a_o spiritual_a presence_n of_o god_n in_o the_o place_n therefore_o they_o be_v holy_a answ_n it_o follow_v not_o for_o 1._o god_n do_v not_o vouchsafe_v his_o presence_n out_o of_o respect_n to_o the_o place_n but_o to_o the_o person_n he_o have_v not_o set_v his_o name_n upon_o the_o place_n but_o only_o upon_o the_o person_n and_o be_v not_o present_a with_o they_o for_o the_o place_n sake_n but_o only_o present_a in_o the_o place_n for_o their_o sake_n who_o be_v there_o assemble_v 2._o the_o spiritual_a presence_n of_o god_n be_v not_o enough_o to_o make_v a_o place_n holy_a for_o then_o all_o place_n shall_v be_v holy_a wheresoever_o god_n people_n do_v enjoy_v communion_n with_o he_o and_o so_o not_o only_o dwell_v house_n where_o there_o be_v family_n duty_n but_o every_o private_a chamber_n where_o there_o be_v secret_a prayer_n yea_o the_o field_n the_o street_n and_o sometime_o prison_n and_o dungeon_n and_o gibbet_n and_o all_o place_n whatsoever_o where_o the_o saint_n come_v and_o enjoy_v communion_n with_o god_n in_o their_o spirit_n will_v be_v holy_a place_n and_o so_o this_o objection_n lay_v all_o place_n level_v the_o lord_n have_v many_o precious_a saint_n that_o walk_v close_o with_o he_o who_o be_v disperse_v and_o scatter_v up_o and_o down_o almost_o in_o every_o corner_n of_o the_o land_n our_o public_a meeting-place_n for_o worship_n they_o have_v not_o any_o such_o sacred_a symbol_n of_o god_n presence_n as_o the_o temple_n have_v the_o ark_n the_o altar_n etc._n etc._n neither_o have_v they_o any_o such_o extraordinary_a visible_a appearance_n of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n and_o glory_n as_o the_o temple_n have_v upon_o special_a occasion_n neither_o have_v they_o that_o typical_a respect_n unto_o christ_n and_o gospel-mystery_n neither_o be_v they_o part_n of_o worship_n or_o ordinance_n nor_o have_v god_n annex_v his_o worship_n to_o they_o he_o have_v no_o way_n separate_v or_o set_v they_o apart_o unto_o himself_o as_o his_o own_o peculiar_a therefore_o there_o be_v no_o pretence_n for_o holiness_n in_o they_o instr_n 2._o the_o second_o instruction_n be_v this_o learn_v to_o present_v your_o worship_n unto_o god_n by_o jesus_n christ_n for_o he_o be_v the_o true_a temple_n and_o tabernacle_n as_o have_v be_v show_v therefore_o that_o strict_a injunction_n to_o bring_v all_o their_o sacrifice_n thither_o signify_v thus_o much_o that_o we_o must_v present_v all_o our_o service_n and_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n in_o the_o name_n &_o mediation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n make_v use_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o his_o mediatory_a relation_n a_o thing_n much_o &_o often_o press_v in_o the_o scripture_n as_o indeed_o it_o can_v be_v too_o much_o insist_v on_o heb._n 7.25_o he_o be_v able_a to_o save_v to_o the_o utmost_a all_o that_o ceme_fw-la unto_o god_n by_o he_o 1_o pet._n 1.21_o who_o by_o he_o do_v believe_v in_o god_n joh._n 14.6_o i_o be_o the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n no_o man_n come_v unto_o the_o father_n but_o by_o i_o col._n 3.17_o and_o whatsoever_o you_o in_o word_n or_o deed_n do_v all_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n give_v thanks_o to_o god_n and_o the_o father_n by_o he_o a_o thing_n of_o absolute_a necessity_n if_o we_o desire_v either_o access_n unto_o god_n acceptance_n witn_n god_n or_o influence_n and_o assistance_n from_o god_n 1._o there_o be_v no_o access_n unto_o god_n but_o by_o this_o great_a and_o more_o perfect_a tabernacle_n jesus_n christ_n in_o who_o we_o have_v boldness_n and_o access_n with_o confidence_n by_o the_o faith_n of_o he_o ephes_n 3.12_o god_n consider_v as_o in_o himself_o dwell_v in_o light_n inaccessible_a 1._o tim._n 6.16_o dwell_v in_o the_o light_n which_o no_o man_n can_v approach_v unto_o who_o no_o man_n have_v see_v nor_o can_v see_v he_o be_v glorious_a and_o excellent_a in_o himself_o but_o approachable_a only_o in_o christ_n we_o can_v see_v he_o nor_o conceive_v of_o he_o nor_o get_v into_o his_o presence_n but_o by_o jesus_n christ_n 2._o there_o be_v no_o acceptance_n with_o god_n out_o of_o christ_n if_o you_o bring_v a_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n and_o bring_v it_o not_o to_o the_o door_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o congregation_n blood_n shall_v be_v impute_v to_o that_o man_n levit._n 17.1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o 5_o 5_o 6_o 7._o if_o thou_o can_v live_v like_o a_o glorify_a saint_n shine_v like_o a_o angel_n if_o out_o of_o christ_n god_n regard_v it_o no_o more_o more_o than_o the_o sacrifice_a swine_n flesh_n or_o the_o cut_n off_o of_o a_o dog_n neck_n ezek._n 20.40_o for_o in_o my_o holy_a mountain_n in_o the_o mountain_n of_o the_o height_n of_o israel_n say_v the_o lord_n god_n there_o shall_v all_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n all_o of_o they_o in_o the_o land_n serve_v i_o there_o will_v i_o require_v your_o offering_n and_o the_o first_o fruit_n of_o your_o oblation_n with_o all_o your_o holy_a thing_n all_o our_o holy_a offering_n our_o best_a duty_n and_o service_n as_o they_o come_v from_o we_o be_v abominable_a but_o through_o his_o mediation_n acceptable_a 3._o there_o can_v be_v no_o gracious_a influence_n or_o assistance_n from_o god_n but_o only_o in_o this_o way_n by_o jesus_n christ_n the_o lord_n hear_v thou_o in_o the_o day_n of_o trouble_n the_o name_n of_o the_o god_n of_o jacob_n defend_v thou_o send_v thou_o help_v from_o the_o sanctuary_n and_o strengthen_v thou_o out_o of_o zion_n psal_n 20.1_o 2._o for_o in_o salem_n be_v his_o tabernacle_n and_o his_o dwell_a place_n in_o zion_n there_o break_v he_o
and_o among_o the_o rest_n they_o have_v one_o great_a idol_n call_v the_o rood_n which_o if_o it_o be_v as_o some_o now_o think_v the_o picture_n of_o a_o old_a man_n from_o thence_o the_o poor_a ignorant_a people_n come_v to_o conceive_v of_o god_n the_o father_n as_o a_o old_a man_n sit_v in_o heaven_n though_o it_o seem_v rather_o to_o be_v a_o wooden_a image_n of_o christ_n hang_v on_o the_o cross_n see_v act_n and_o monument_n vol._n 2._o pag._n 302._o or_o a_o wooden_a cross_n only_o without_o any_o image_n hang_v on_o it_o from_o whence_o be_v the_o term_n roodmas_n use_v still_o in_o some_o part_n of_o england_n by_o which_o they_o mean_v the_o first_o or_o three_o of_o may_n the_o pope_n have_v make_v that_o a_o holy_a day_n and_o call_v it_o inventio_fw-la crucis_fw-la because_o forsooth_o on_o that_o day_n the_o cross_n on_o which_o christ_n be_v crucify_v be_v find_v if_o you_o will_v believe_v the_o fable_n mass_n or_o mess_n signify_v in_o the_o old_a saxon_a a_o feast_n or_o a_o set_a time_n of_o holy_a rejoice_v and_o rood_n as_o it_o seem_v a_o cross_n but_o this_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o in_o all_o the_o ceremonial_a worship_n the_o lord_n take_v special_a care_n to_o keep_v his_o people_n at_o a_o distance_n from_o the_o heathenish_a idolatry_n of_o those_o time_n he_o will_v not_o suffer_v they_o to_o conform_v at_o all_o to_o those_o false_a worship_n nor_o to_o comply_v with_o they_o in_o the_o least_o and_o it_o be_v a_o good_a spirit_n to_o be_v zealous_a against_o such_o thing_n but_o where_o there_o be_v a_o slight_a loose_a indifferent_a sceptical_a frame_n of_o spirit_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o god_n house_n and_o worship_n this_o spirit_n be_v not_o of_o god_n this_o spirit_n be_v not_o of_o he_o that_o call_v you_o so_o much_o for_o the_o house_n itself_o 2._o now_o second_o for_o the_o court_n of_o the_o temple_n there_o be_v two_o of_o they_o the_o scripture_n mention_v so_o many_o and_o no_o more_o 2_o chron._n 33.5_o and_o he_o manasseh_n build_v altar_n for_o all_o the_o host_n of_o heaven_n in_o the_o two_o court_n of_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n about_o the_o tabernacle_n we_o read_v but_o of_o one_o court_n exod._n 27.9_o for_o the_o whole_a camp_n of_o israel_n be_v the_o outer_a court_n but_o about_o the_o temple_n there_o two_o call_v the_o outward_a and_o the_o inner_a court_n the_o outward_a court_n be_v the_o large_a be_v call_v the_o great_a court_n 2_o chron._n 4.9_o and_o the_o court_n of_o the_o people_n because_o here_o the_o people_n come_v together_o to_o be_v teach_v ezra_n 10.9_o but_o though_o the_o people_n come_v into_o it_o yet_o it_o be_v part_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o a_o holy_a place_n for_o none_o may_v enter_v that_o be_v unclean_a in_o any_o thing_n for_o it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o the_o porter_n to_o keep_v they_o back_o 2_o chron._n 23.19_o and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o jew_n take_v so_o much_o offence_n at_o paul_n when_o they_o think_v he_o have_v bring_v greek_n into_o the_o temple_n and_o so_o pollute_v that_o holy_a place_n act_n 21.28_o there_o be_v also_o another_o court_n call_v the_o inner_a court_n 2_o king_n 6.36_o and_o the_o high_a court_n jer._n 36.10_o and_o the_o court_n of_o the_o priest_n will_n vid._n plura_fw-la on_o rev._n 11.12_o this_o reference_n in_o the_o author_n note_n show_v he_o have_v write_v a_o discourse_n on_o that_o text_n and_o indeed_o so_o he_o have_v which_o may_v be_v publish_v in_o time_n if_o god_n will_n 2_o chron._n 4.9_o both_o these_o court_n as_o it_o seem_v do_v compass_v the_o temple_n on_o all_o side_n round_o about_o and_o they_o be_v four_o square_a the_o length_n of_o each_o side_n of_o the_o outer_a court_n be_v a_o furlong_n as_o the_o jewish_a witer_n report_n and_o the_o whole_a about_o half_a a_o english_a mile_n in_o compass_n there_o be_v also_o as_o they_o report_v some_o other_o court_v add_v unto_o these_o in_o after_o time_n but_o because_o the_o scripture_n take_v no_o norice_n of_o they_o i_o shall_v not_o do_v it_o neither_o neither_o shall_v i_o say_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o wall_n about_o the_o court_n and_o the_o gate_n and_o other_o building_n belong_v to_o they_o as_o chambers_z porch_n and_o treasury_n to_o lay_v the_o vessel_n and_o other_o thing_n in_o and_o for_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n to_o lodge_v in_o for_o there_o be_v mention_v 1_o chron._n 28.11_o of_o the_o porch_n and_o of_o the_o house_n thereof_o and_o the_o treasury_n thereof_o etc._n etc._n and_o ver_fw-la 12._o of_o the_o court_n of_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o of_o all_o the_o chamber_n round_o about_o of_o the_o treasury_n of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o treasury_n of_o the_o dedicate_v thing_n neither_o need_v i_o speak_v particular_o to_o the_o mystical_a signification_n of_o the_o house_n and_o the_o court_n the_o whole_a as_o consider_v together_o may_v be_v divide_v into_o three_o part_n 1._o the_o outer_a court_n 2._o the_o inner_a court_n with_o the_o sanctuary_n 3._o the_o oracle_n or_o the_o holy_a of_o holies_n some_o apply_v these_o three_o part_n of_o the_o temple_n to_o the_o three_o part_n of_o a_o christian_a mention_v by_o the_o apostle_n 1_o thess_n 5.23_o the_o spirit_n soul_n and_o body_n the_o body_n say_v they_o be_v signify_v by_o the_o open_a court_n where_o all_o may_v see_v what_o be_v do_v the_o soul_n say_v they_o may_v be_v compare_v to_o the_o sanctuary_n which_o as_o it_o be_v more_o holy_a than_o the_o outward_a court_n so_o be_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n a_o high_a and_o more_o divine_a part_n than_o the_o body_n where_o by_o the_o lamp_n of_o god_n spirit_n the_o reason_n and_o understanding_n be_v enlighten_v the_o spirit_n say_v they_o be_v as_o the_o most_o holy_a place_n where_o god_n dwell_v in_o secret_a by_o faith_n which_o say_v the_o apostle_n be_v of_o thing_n not_o see_v nor_o comprehend_v by_o reason_n other_o apply_v it_o to_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o world_n thus_o the_o outward_a court_n to_o this_o inferior_a world_n where_o all_o thing_n lie_v open_a to_o the_o view_n and_o use_v of_o man_n the_o sanctuary_n to_o the_o starry_a heaven_n which_o be_v full_a of_o light_n and_o star_n as_o the_o sanctuary_n have_v the_o seven_o golden_a candlestick_n and_o gem_n and_o jewel_n shine_v in_o it_o the_o holy_a of_o holies_n to_o the_o three_o heaven_n wherein_o god_n dwell_v and_o indeed_o the_o apostle_n himself_o make_v it_o a_o type_n of_o heaven_n heb._n 9.24_o there_o be_v something_o of_o analogy_n in_o the_o thing_n as_o to_o all_o these_o but_o the_o best_a accommodation_n of_o a_o type_n be_v from_o scripture_n and_o from_o the_o hint_n and_o intimation_n which_o the_o scripture_n give_v which_o as_o have_v be_v former_o show_v make_v the_o temple_n a_o type_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o church_n let_v we_o consider_v then_o what_o instruction_n these_o part_n of_o the_o temple_n do_v afford_v as_o to_o both_o these_o 1._o as_o to_o christ_n himself_o the_o temple_n be_v a_o type_n of_o christ_n especial_o in_o regard_n of_o that_o chief_a part_n of_o it_o the_o holy_a of_o holies_n wherein_o there_o be_v a_o figure_n or_o weak_a representation_n both_o of_o his_o divine_a and_o humane_a nature_n therefore_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o holy_a of_o holies_n dan._n 9.24_o seventy_o week_n be_v determine_v to_o anoint_v the_o most_o holy_a or_o the_o holy_a of_o holies_n that_o be_v to_o initiate_v and_o inaugurate_a the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n into_o his_o mediatorial_n office_n the_o veil_n of_o the_o holy_a of_o holies_n typify_v his_o humane_a nature_n heb._n 10.20_o through_o the_o veil_n that_o be_v to_o say_v his_o flesh_n we_o may_v draw_v forth_o the_o analogy_n more_o at_o large_a in_o these_o particular_n 1._o the_o humane_a nature_n do_v veil_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o deity_n as_o the_o veil_n of_o the_o temple_n do_v conceal_v the_o holy_a of_o holies_n from_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n 2._o there_o be_v curious_a embroidery_n of_o cherubim_n and_o other_o ornament_n upon_o the_o veil_n exod._n 26.31_o thou_o shall_v make_v a_o veil_n of_o blue_a and_o purple_a and_o scarlet_a and_o fine_a twine_v linen_n of_o cunning_a work_n with_o cherubim_n shall_v it_o be_v make_v so_o chron._n 3.16_o this_o be_v not_o unfit_o apply_v to_o those_o excellent_a grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n wherewith_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v fill_v and_o adorn_v 3._o the_o veil_n shut_v up_o the_o sanctuary_n from_o the_o sight_n and_o entrance_n of_o the_o people_n signify_v the_o shut_n up_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o gospel_n while_o the_o old_a temple_n stand_v heb._n 9.8_o the_o holy_a ghost_n this_o signify_v that_o
typify_v now_o then_o as_o to_o this_o great_a type_n the_o altar_n of_o burnt-offering_a we_o may_v consider_v four_o thing_n 1._o the_o material_n of_o it_o they_o make_v altar_n of_o earth_n upon_o present_a occasion_n moses_n his_o altar_n be_v of_o shittim-wood_n but_o overlay_v with_o brass_n exod._n 27.1_o 2._o this_o be_v to_o continue_v for_o the_o constant_a use_n and_o service_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n but_o how_o then_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o the_o wood_n be_v not_o burn_v and_o set_v on_o fire_n by_o the_o continual_a fire_n that_o be_v upon_o the_o altar_n it_o be_v answer_v unto_o this_o by_o some_o that_o the_o fire_n may_v be_v keep_v in_o the_o grate_n at_o a_o due_a distance_n from_o the_o wood._n and_o some_o answer_n further_o that_o there_o be_v a_o especial_a providence_n in_o it_o god_n as_o he_o send_v down_o fire_n from_o heaven_n upon_o the_o altar_n so_o he_o do_v limit_n and_o over-rule_v the_o operation_n of_o it_o at_o his_o pleasure_n solomon_n altar_n be_v of_o brass_n within_o either_o of_o earth_n or_o stone_n but_o not_o of_o hew_a stone_n that_o be_v express_o forbid_v exod._n 20.24_o 25._o in_o that_o it_o be_v of_o brass_n this_o be_v for_o strength_n and_o durablenss_n to_o bear_v the_o fire_n that_o be_v continual_o burn_v upon_o it_o and_o so_o to_o represent_v the_o strength_n of_o christ_n to_o endure_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n without_o be_v burn_v up_o and_o consume_v and_o overcome_v by_o it_o for_o brass_n be_v often_o mention_v to_o signify_v strength_n job_n 40.18_o his_o bone_n be_v as_o strong_a piece_n of_o brass_n be_v my_o strength_n of_o stone_n or_o my_o flesh_n of_o brass_n job_n 6.12_o be_o i_o not_o a_o poor_a weak_a frail_a creature_n so_o zach._n 6.1_o the_o mountain_n of_o brass_n signify_v god_n irresistible_a purpose_n and_o decree_n so_o likewise_o christ_n be_v represent_v under_o that_o appearance_n ezek._n 40.3_o a_o man_n who_o appearance_n be_v as_o the_o appearance_n of_o brass_n and_o rev._n 1.15_o his_o foot_n like_v unto_o fine_a brass_n as_o if_o they_o burn_v in_o a_o furnace_n these_o representation_n have_v the_o like_a mystery_n of_o strength_n and_o invincibleness_n that_o it_o be_v of_o unhewed_a stone_n this_n instruct_v we_o that_o humane_a polishment_n do_v not_o perfect_a but_o corrupt_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n that_o which_o carnal_a wisdom_n think_v do_v adorn_v do_v indeed_o pollute_v there_o be_v no_o perfect_a addition_n we_o must_v observe_v the_o plainness_n and_o simplicity_n of_o institution_n 2._o as_o to_o the_o figure_n and_o dimension_n of_o it_o it_o be_v four_o square_a with_o four_o horn_n upon_o the_o four_o corner_n of_o it_o moses_n his_o altar_n be_v five_o cubit_n in_o length_n and_o five_o in_o breadth_n and_o three_o cubit_n high_a but_o solomon_n be_v twenty_o cubit_n in_o length_n and_o twenty_o cubit_n in_o breadth_n and_o ten_o cubit_n high_a compare_v exod._n 27.1_o 2._o with_o the_o text_n 2_o chron._n 4.1_o the_o foursquare_a form_n say_v ainsworth_n on_o exod._n 27.1_o signify_v firmness_n and_o stability_n therefore_o the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n be_v foursquare_a rev._n 21.16_o so_o be_v the_o figure_n of_o it_o ezek._n 48.20_o so_o be_v the_o oracle_n or_o most_o holy_a place_n in_o the_o temple_n and_o tabernacle_n too_o 2_o chron._n 3.8_o the_o height_n of_o solomon_n altar_n be_v too_o high_a for_o any_o priest_n to_o reach_v yet_o they_o may_v not_o go_v up_o by_o step_n to_o it_o exod._n 20.26_o therefore_o it_o be_v think_v there_o be_v a_o easy_a ascent_n by_o a_o declivity_n on_o the_o south_n side_n the_o ground_n rise_v by_o little_a and_o little_a the_o largeness_n of_o solomon_n altar_n beyond_o that_o of_o the_o tabernacle_n may_v intimate_v the_o enlargement_n of_o the_o church_n and_o great_a increase_n of_o the_o worshipper_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n under_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v the_o mystery_n of_o those_o great_a inlargement_n in_o ezekiel_n visionary_a temple_n beyond_o solomon_n as_o solomon_n go_v beyond_o moses_n his_o tabernacle_n 3._o the_o situation_n of_o the_o altar_n be_v sub_fw-la dio_fw-mi in_o the_o open_a air_n that_o so_o the_o nidor_fw-la and_o fuligo_fw-la the_o scent_n and_o smoke_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n may_v be_v the_o less_o offensive_a moreover_o it_o stand_v in_o the_o priest_n court_n before_o the_o porch_n of_o the_o temple_n 2_o chron._n 8.12_o the_o altar_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o he_o have_v build_v before_o the_o porch_n joel_n 2.17_o let_v the_o priest_n the_o minister_n of_o the_o lord_n weep_v between_o the_o porch_n and_o the_o altar_n 4._o the_o use_n of_o it_o be_v to_o offer_v sacrifice_n upon_o exod._n 20_o 24._o a_o altar_n of_o earth_n shall_v thou_o make_v unto_o i_o and_o shall_v sacrifice_v thereon_o thy_o burnt-offering_n and_o thy_o peace-offering_n 2_o chron._n 8.12_o then_o solomon_n offer_v burnt-offering_n unto_o the_o lord_n on_o the_o altar_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o he_o have_v build_v before_o the_o porch_n the_o altar_n do_v two_o thing_n 1._o it_o support_v the_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v lay_v upon_o it_o 2._o it_o sanctify_v the_o sacrifice_n and_o make_v it_o holy_a and_o acceptable_a to_o the_o lord_n the_o altar_n itself_o be_v first_o consecrate_v with_o holy_a oil_n numb_a 7.1_o and_o then_o it_o do_v consecrate_v and_o sanctify_v other_o thing_n exod._n 29.37_o whatsoever_o touch_v the_o altar_n shall_v be_v holy_a therefore_o it_o be_v say_v the_o altar_n shall_v be_v holiness_n of_o holiness_n or_o most_o holy_a exod._n 40.10_o but_o now_o here_o come_v in_o a_o question_n how_o it_o come_v that_o the_o fire_n of_o the_o altar_n be_v not_o sometime_o put_v out_o by_o the_o shower_n of_o rain_n and_o how_o it_o can_v suffice_v for_o the_o consume_a so_o many_o sacrifice_n and_o that_o the_o sacrifice_n do_v not_o fill_v the_o court_n with_o soot_n and_o smoke_n and_o fly_v and_o putrefaction_n from_o the_o offal_n and_o ordure_n of_o so_o many_o beast_n there_o slay_v slaughter-house_n be_v very_o noisome_a and_o offensive_a especial_o in_o summertime_n i_o meet_v with_o a_o twofold_a answer_n unto_o this_o 1._o the_o fire_n of_o the_o altar_n be_v no_o ordinary_a and_o culinary_a fire_n but_o celestial_a and_o divine_a and_o as_o it_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n 2_o chron._n 7.1_o and_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v quenchable_a by_o rain_n or_o water_n that_o it_o will_v present_o lick_v it_o up_o as_o it_o do_v 1_o king_n 18.38_o when_o the_o trench_n be_v fill_v with_o twelve_o barrel_n of_o water_n so_o it_o leave_v not_o such_o a_o sooty_a feculency_n behind_o it_o as_o common_a fire_n do_v we_o see_v in_o lightning_n how_o quick_o and_o in_o a_o instant_n it_o consume_v any_o thing_n that_o resist_v it_o the_o altar_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v call_v ariel_n isai_n 29.1_o that_o be_v the_o lion_n of_o god_n and_o a_o very_a devour_a lion_n it_o be_v full_a pisgah-sight_n p._n 394._o 2._o there_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v something_o of_o a_o peculiar_a providence_n in_o it_o the_o heathen_a temple_n be_v such_o stink_a place_n and_o so_o infest_a with_o swarm_n of_o fly_n that_o come_v to_o feed_v upon_o their_o sacrifice_n that_o the_o jew_n be_v wont_v in_o a_o holy_a scorn_n to_o call_v the_o devil_n baalzebub_a it_o be_v the_o name_n of_o the_o idol_n at_o ekron_n 2_o king_n 1.2_o and_o mark_v 3.22_o and_o luk._n 11.15_o as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v dominus_fw-la muscarum_fw-la the_o god_n of_o fly_n not_o able_a to_o drive_v away_o a_o fly_n the_o ekronites_n it_o be_v think_v call_v their_o idol_n bayal_n zebachim_n the_o lord_n of_o sacrifice_n some_o heathen_a writer_n speak_v of_o temple_n build_v jovi_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d muscarum_fw-la abactori_fw-la 166._o greg._n greg._n lexic_n sanct_a tit._n 166._o to_o jupiter_n the_o fly-chaser_n but_o let_v this_o suffice_v for_o the_o literal_a explication_n of_o this_o great_a type_n the_o altar_n of_o burnt-offering_a now_o for_o the_o mystery_n and_o spiritual_a signification_n of_o it_o there_o have_v be_v a_o very_a unhappy_a mistake_n as_o to_o this_o in_o some_o of_o the_o ancient_n common_o call_v father_n who_o darkness_n in_o this_o and_o other_o point_n do_v make_v way_n for_o popery_n in_o after_o time_n they_o have_v apply_v the_o altar_n to_o the_o wooden_a cross_n on_o which_o christ_n be_v crucify_v they_o say_v christ_n suffer_v in_o arâ_fw-la crucis_fw-la upon_o the_o altar_n of_o his_o cross_n but_o this_o be_v a_o weak_a and_o low_a interpretation_n yea_o indeed_o a_o dangerous_a misinterpretation_n of_o this_o great_a type_n 1._o for_o first_o the_o cross_n of_o wood_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o instrument_n of_o man_n cruelty_n against_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n it_o have_v no_o spiritual_a use_n nor_o virtue_n in_o it_o it_o
out_o of_o their_o mouth_n that_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n denounce_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n fiery_a indignation_n devour_v the_o adversary_n heb._n 10.27_o 4._o we_o read_v of_o fiery_a trial_n and_o affliction_n luke_n 12.49_o i_o be_o come_v to_o send_v fire_n on_o the_o earth_n 1_o pet._n 4.12_o think_v it_o not_o strange_a concern_v the_o fiery_a trial_n the_o fiery_a trial_n of_o persecution_n by_o open_a enemy_n public_o oppose_v the_o fiery_a trial_n of_o contention_n by_o false_a brethren_n secret_o undermine_v 6._o the_o fire_n of_o the_o altar_n come_v from_o heaven_n leu._n 9.24_o 2_o chronic_n 7.1_o strange_a fire_n be_v forbid_v leu._n 10.1_o 1._o humane_a invention_n which_o he_o have_v not_o command_v they_o leu._n 10.1_o 2._o carnal_a wrath_n and_o passion_n this_o be_v not_o the_o fire_n of_o the_o altar_n but_o strange_a fire_n james_n 3.17_o wisdom_n from_o above_o be_v first_o pure_a then_o peaceable_a etc._n etc._n the_o wrath_n of_o man_n accomplish_v not_o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n james_n 1.20_o 7._o the_o use_n of_o the_o altar_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v to_o support_v and_o sanctify_v it_o the_o altar_n do_v two_o thing_n both_o which_o faith_n be_v to_o eye_n and_o look_v unto_o both_o as_o do_v in_o christ_n and_o to_o be_v do_v in_o we_o 1._o to_o support_v the_o sacrifice_n and_o bear_v it_o up_o so_o christ_n be_v bear_v up_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o deity_n 2._o to_o make_v it_o acceptable_a so_o christ_n suffering_n be_v so_o infinite_o precious_a and_o acceptable_a with_o the_o lord_n through_o the_o glory_n and_o excellency_n of_o his_o person_n there_o be_v nothing_o else_o will_v bear_v up_o a_o soul_n under_o sense_n of_o gild_n but_o this_o to_o consider_v who_o it_o be_v that_o die_v and_o suffer_v for_o we_o it_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o the_o reason_n of_o many_o fear_n and_o tremble_n of_o unbelief_n be_v because_o the_o soul_n look_v at_o the_o sacrifice_n without_o the_o altar_n look_v at_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n but_o consider_v not_o the_o altar_n the_o deity_n that_o sanctify_v the_o gift_n as_o to_o we_o we_o need_v both_o support_n and_o acceptance_n eye_n both_o these_o in_o christ_n eye_n christ_n for_o they_o to_o your_o own_o soul_n 1._o support_v when_o the_o heart_n be_v ready_a to_o sink_v and_o to_o be_v overwhelm_v with_o the_o difficulty_n that_o do_v occur_v thou_o be_v weak_a but_o here_o be_v strength_n 2._o acceptance_n isai_n 56.7_o their_o burnt-offering_n and_o their_o sacrifice_n shall_v be_v accept_v upon_o my_o altar_n thou_o be_v unworthy_a but_o leave_v thy_o gift_n upon_o the_o altar_n and_o it_o shall_v be_v accept_v whatsoever_o touch_v the_o altar_n shall_v be_v holy_a use_v 1_o see_v the_o unlawfulness_n yea_o the_o abominableness_n of_o material_a altar_n and_o altar-worship_n under_o the_o new_a testament_n for_o the_o altar_n be_v a_o type_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o his_o deity_n and_o priesthood_n therefore_o altar_n be_v cease_v for_o be_v not_o jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n or_o have_v god_n another_o son_n to_o die_v for_o we_o or_o do_v we_o look_v for_o another_o gospel_n that_o we_o must_v build_v altar_n to_o typify_v the_o mystery_n thereof_o because_o it_o lie_v direct_o in_o my_o way_n and_o it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o worst_a and_o gross_a of_o the_o superstition_n and_o corruption_n of_o worship_n in_o our_o time_n i_o may_v not_o well_o pass_v it_o by_o consider_v but_o two_o thing_n here_o 1._o the_o lord_n table_n be_v not_o a_o altar_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v so_o call_v or_o so_o account_v 2._o the_o many_o other_o evil_n that_o be_v involve_v in_o this_o and_o go_v along_o with_o it_o 1._o the_o communion_n table_n be_v not_o a_o altar_n and_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v so_o call_v nor_o so_o account_v take_v three_o argument_n for_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o reas_n 1._o because_o the_o scripture_n call_v it_o a_o table_n but_o not_o a_o altar_n and_o we_o must_v speak_v of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o ordinance_n as_o god_n himself_o do_v in_o his_o word_n so_o the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 10.21_o you_o can_v be_v partaker_n of_o the_o lord_n table_n and_o of_o the_o table_n of_o devil_n so_o christ_n luk_n 22.21_o the_o hand_n of_o he_o that_o betray_v i_o be_v with_o i_o on_o the_o table_n reas_n 2._o a_o altar_n imply_v a_o sacrifice_n and_o sacrifice_a priest_n for_o priest_n altar_n and_o sacrifice_n be_v relative_n and_o have_v a_o mutual_a and_o inseparable_a connexion_n and_o dependence_n upon_o one_o another_o but_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v not_o a_o sacrifice_n nor_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n priest_n therefore_o the_o lord_n table_n be_v not_o a_o altar_n the_o use_n of_o a_o altar_n be_v to_o offer_v sacrifice_n upon_o but_o when_o we_o come_v to_o the_o lord_n supper_n do_v we_o come_v to_o sacrifice_n christ_n again_o and_o to_o crucify_v the_o son_n of_o god_n afresh_o no_o but_o we_o come_v to_o celebrate_v the_o memory_n of_o his_o death_n who_o die_v once_o for_o all_o heb._n 10.10_o christ_n be_v once_o offer_v to_o bear_v the_o sin_n of_o many_o heb_fw-mi 9.28_o and_o 7.27_o to_o talk_v of_o a_o commemorative_n sacrifice_n be_v mere_a nonsense_n and_o a_o contradiction_n for_o as_o the_o picture_n of_o a_o man_n be_v no_o man_n so_o the_o commemoration_n of_o a_o sacrifice_n be_v in_o truth_n no_o sacrifice_n if_o it_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n offer_v upon_o the_o table_n as_o a_o altar_n they_o shall_v make_v four_o horn_n upon_o the_o four_o corner_n of_o the_o table_n and_o they_o shall_v make_v a_o grate_n for_o the_o fire_n and_o they_o shall_v put_v fire_n to_o their_o altar_n to_o burn_v the_o sacrifice_n even_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n reas_n 3._o if_o the_o communion_n table_n be_v a_o altar_n than_o it_o shall_v be_v great_a and_o better_a than_o the_o sacramental_a bread_n and_o wine_n than_o the_o lord_n supper_n itself_o and_o a_o mean_n to_o consecrate_v they_o for_o the_o altar_n sanctify_v all_o the_o gift_n and_o sacrifice_n that_o be_v offer_v upon_o it_o and_o be_v great_a than_o the_o gift_n matth._n 23.18_o 19_o hence_o it_o be_v say_v the_o altar_n shall_v be_v holiness_n of_o holiness_n or_o most_o holy_a exod._n 40.10_o but_o the_o table_n be_v not_o great_a than_o the_o lord_n supper_n therefore_o the_o table_n be_v not_o a_o altar_n it_o be_v true_a some_o of_o the_o ancient_n have_v call_v it_o a_o altar_n but_o unscriptural_o and_o improper_o as_o they_o do_v also_o use_v other_o extravagant_a and_o wanton_a metaphor_n call_v it_o solium_fw-la christi_fw-la the_o throne_n of_o christ_n whereas_o christ_n be_v not_o represent_v on_o the_o table_n in_o his_o majesty_n as_o upon_o a_o throne_n but_o in_o his_o low_a humility_n and_o deep_a abasement_n as_o break_v crucify_a etc._n etc._n these_o expression_n of_o the_o father_n 1._o they_o be_v unscriptural_a the_o scripture_n do_v not_o use_v such_o language_n nor_o speak_v of_o the_o communion_n table_n in_o such_o a_o strain_n 2._o they_o have_v do_v much_o hurt_v in_o the_o church_n unaware_o to_o those_o good_a man_n and_o have_v be_v inlet_n and_o occasion_n of_o much_o superstition_n 3._o when_o they_o use_v this_o phrase_n of_o speech_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o priest_n and_o much_o other_o idolatrous_a popish_a trash_n be_v not_o know_v nor_o hear_v of_o in_o the_o world_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o to_o be_v scandalize_v with_o those_o phrase_n and_o to_o use_v they_o to_o such_o ill_a end_n and_o purpose_n as_o the_o papist_n and_o other_o superstitious_a person_n have_v improve_v they_o therefore_o such_o language_n be_v worse_a now_o than_o it_o be_v then_o 4._o other_o of_o the_o father_n have_v testify_v against_o altar_n even_o in_o the_o primitive_a time_n 4._o o_o igen_n contra_fw-la gelsum_fw-la l._n 4._o as_o origen_n who_o live_v about_o two_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n objicit_fw-la nobis_fw-la celsus_n quod_fw-la non_fw-la habemus_fw-la imagine_v aut_fw-la aras_n aut_fw-la templa_fw-la he_o that_o be_v celsus_n charge_v the_o christian_a religion_n with_o this_o that_o we_o have_v neither_o image_n nor_o altar_n nor_o temple_n 72._o arnob._n l._n 6._o apud_fw-la quench-cole_n p._n 71_o 72._o in_o answer_n to_o this_o origen_n do_v not_o deny_v the_o charge_n but_o confess_v the_o matter_n of_o fact_n to_o be_v true_a and_o defend_v it_o from_o the_o very_a fundamental_a ground_n of_o religion_n and_o so_o do_v arnobius_n and_o other_o 2._o consider_v the_o many_o other_o evil_n that_o follow_v and_o flow_v from_o this_o and_o go_v along_o with_o it_o from_o this_o blind_a conceit_n that_o the_o lord_n table_n be_v a_o altar_n hence_o follow_v 1._o call_v it_o a_o high_a altar_n and_o make_v step_n to_o
5._o the_o ox_n under_o the_o melt_a sea_n be_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o especial_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n as_o the_o number_n itself_o intimate_v for_o there_o be_v twelve_o ox_n look_v towards_o all_o the_o 4_o quarter_n of_o the_o world_n so_o the_o apostle_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n carry_v this_o crystal_n sea_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o laver_n of_o regeneration_n and_o baptism_n throughout_o the_o world_n minister_n be_v often_o compare_v in_o scripture_n to_o ox_n because_o of_o the_o strength_n and_o laboriousness_n of_o that_o creature_n as_o 1_o corinth_n 9.9_o thou_o shall_v muzzle_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o ox_n that_o tread_v out_o the_o corn._n do_v god_n take_v care_n for_o ox_n say_v the_o apostle_n there_o i_o may_v say_v so_o in_o reference_n to_o this_o type_n now_o in_o hand_n do_v god_n regard_v the_o shape_n and_o picture_n of_o ox_n to_o be_v set_v under_o this_o temple-sea_n or_o rather_o do_v he_o not_o set_v they_o there_o altogether_o for_o our_o sake_n for_o our_o sake_n no_o doubt_n this_o be_v do_v as_o the_o apostle_n there_o speak_v the_o laver_n also_o have_v their_o base_n with_o their_o wheel_n which_o serve_v for_o the_o carry_v of_o the_o water_n from_o place_n to_o place_n and_o so_o serve_v for_o the_o same_o use_n real_o whereof_o the_o ox_n be_v but_o a_o emblem_n the_o take_n of_o these_o away_o be_v note_v as_o a_o act_n of_o audacious_a wickedness_n and_o profaneness_n in_o ahaz_n 2_o king_n 16.17_o and_o king_n ahaz_n cut_v off_o the_o border_n of_o the_o base_n and_o remove_v the_o laver_n from_o off_o they_o and_o take_v down_o the_o sea_n from_o the_o brazen_a ox_n that_o be_v under_o it_o and_o set_v it_o upon_o a_o pavement_n of_o stone_n he_o have_v as_o it_o seem_v no_o understanding_n at_o all_o nor_o no_o sense_n in_o he_o of_o the_o spiritual_a mystery_n and_o signification_n of_o these_o wheel_n and_o ox_n nor_o no_o fear_n and_o reverence_n of_o god_n institution_n who_o do_v ordain_v and_o appoint_v they_o 6._o the_o use_n of_o it_o be_v to_o wash_v in_o both_o the_o priest_n and_o sacrifice_n be_v wash_v in_o the_o water_n of_o these_o typical_a vessel_n the_o sea_n and_o laver_n that_o they_o die_v not_o exod._n 30.19_o 20_o 21._o for_o aaron_n and_o his_o son_n shall_v wash_v their_o hand_n and_o their_o foot_n thereat_o when_o they_o go_v into_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o congregation_n they_o shall_v wash_v with_o water_n that_o they_o die_v not_o or_o when_o they_o come_v near_o to_o the_o altar_n to_o minister_v to_o burn_v offer_v make_v by_o fire_n unto_o the_o lord_n so_o they_o shall_v wash_v their_o hand_n and_o their_o foot_n that_o they_o die_v not_o and_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o statute_n for_o ever_o to_o they_o even_o to_o he_o and_o to_o his_o seed_n throughout_o their_o generation_n you_o see_v with_o what_o emphasis_n and_o earnestness_n it_o be_v require_v and_o ingeminated_a this_o teach_v we_o that_o both_o our_o person_n and_o our_o duty_n and_o service_n must_v be_v wash_v and_o make_v clean_o in_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n or_o else_o we_o die_v eternal_o that_o they_o die_v not_o it_o be_v twice_o repeat_v as_o both_o the_o priest_n and_o sacrifice_n so_o both_o our_o person_n and_o our_o service_n must_v be_v wash_v or_o else_o the_o same_o disaster_n that_o befall_v nadab_n and_o abihu_n may_v befall_v we_o of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v they_o die_v before_o the_o lord_n levit._n 10.2_o it_o be_v a_o fearful_a thing_n for_o man_n to_o come_v before_o god_n in_o their_o sin_n in_o their_o uncleanness_n unwashed_a and_o uncleanse_v from_o they_o they_o shall_v wash_v that_o they_o die_v not_o 7._o the_o laver_n be_v never_o cover_v but_o always_o open_a when_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o vessel_n be_v fold_v up_o ainsworth_n on_o numb_a 4._o v._n 14._o have_v this_o note_n it_o seem_v to_o be_v not_o without_o mystery_n that_o moses_n mention_v fire-pan_n fleshhook_n and_o other_o less_o thing_n shall_v quite_o omit_v the_o laver_n which_o usual_o be_v reckon_v among_o the_o holy_a thing_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n exod._n 35.16_o and_o 38.8_o and_o 39.39_o and_o 40.30_o and_o as_o in_o melchisedek_n history_n gen._n 14._o he_o omit_v his_o parentage_n kindred_n birth_n and_o death_n from_o which_o silence_n in_o the_o story_n the_o apostle_n reason_v as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v without_o parent_n or_o kindred_n begin_v of_o day_n or_o end_n of_o life_n heb._n 7._o so_o here_o if_o it_o may_v be_v lawful_a to_o conjecture_v the_o like_a the_o laver_n be_v leave_v uncover_v and_o always_o open_a to_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o people_n that_o it_o may_v be_v a_o lively_a representation_n of_o god_n grace_n in_o christ_n continue_v and_o open_v as_o a_o ever_o spring_a fountain_n that_o by_o the_o wash_n of_o the_o new_a birth_n by_o repentance_n and_o faith_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n we_o may_v in_o all_o our_o travel_n at_o all_o time_n cleanse_v our_o hand_n and_o foot_n our_o work_n and_o way_n as_o the_o sacrificer_n do_v from_o the_o laver_n exod._n 30.19_o 20._o that_o albeit_o the_o face_n of_o the_o church_n be_v sometime_o hide_v as_o the_o tabernacle_n wrap_v up_o and_o the_o light_n of_o the_o word_n shine_v not_o nor_o public_a worship_n perform_v yet_o always_o god_n elect_v have_v faith_n in_o he_o may_v wash_v and_o purge_v themselves_o in_o christ_n his_o blood_n unto_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o sanctification_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o salvation_n it_o may_v be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v some_o allusion_n hereto_o in_o that_o phrase_n zech._n 13.1_o a_o fountain_n open_v for_o judah_n and_o jerusalem_n to_o wash_v in_o for_o sin_n and_o for_o uncleanness_n certain_o this_o point_n of_o our_o wash_n and_o cleanse_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v of_o that_o weight_n and_o moment_n that_o it_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n say_v of_o it_o by_o luther_n hic_fw-la articulus_fw-la regnat_fw-la in_o cord_n meo_fw-la this_o article_n reign_v in_o my_o heart_n which_o he_o also_o style_v stantis_fw-la aut_fw-la cadentis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la articulum_fw-la the_o point_n upon_o which_o the_o church_n do_v either_o stand_n or_o fall_v so_o much_o for_o the_o explication_n of_o this_o type_n you_o see_v how_o full_a it_o be_v of_o gospel-teaching_a and_o instruction_n nor_o shall_v it_o seem_v strange_a that_o one_o type_n shall_v have_v such_o a_o various_a and_o manifold_a aspect_n to_o so_o many_o several_a truth_n at_o once_o for_o it_o be_v usual_a as_o you_o have_v former_o see_v and_o it_o suit_v best_a with_o the_o infinite_a wisdom_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o one_o of_o his_o teach_a sign_n shall_v teach_v many_o thing_n at_o once_o and_o have_v many_o spiritual_a lesson_n and_o instruction_n thus_o include_v in_o it_o and_o now_o from_o the_o type_n thus_o explain_v we_o may_v gather_v some_o further_a light_n to_o confirm_v and_o settle_v the_o true_a interpretation_n of_o the_o text._n what_o be_v mean_v by_o this_o sea_n of_o glass_n like_o unto_o crystal_n i_o argue_v before_o from_o the_o allusion_n that_o be_v carry_v on_o all_o along_o in_o the_o context_n to_o the_o type_n of_o the_o temple_n therefore_o this_o crystal_n sea_n in_o the_o text_n be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o melt_a sea_n of_o solomon_n temple_n which_o shadow_v forth_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n for_o justification_n now_o to_o add_v some_o further_a argument_n a_o second_o may_v be_v this_o here_o be_v other_o privilege_n and_o benefit_n of_o christ_n mention_v in_o the_o context_n which_o do_v accompany_v justification_n through_o his_o blood_n and_o go_v along_o with_o it_o as_o in_o ver_fw-la 5._o here_o be_v seven_o spirit_n before_o the_o throne_n that_o be_v the_o sanctify_a spirit_n of_o christ_n and_o again_o ver_fw-la 6._o here_o be_v four_o live_a creature_n and_o cap._n 5.11_o many_o angel_n round_o about_o the_o throne_n here_o be_v the_o ministry_n and_o a_o guard_n of_o angel_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o sanctification_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o incongruous_a that_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n for_o justification_n shall_v be_v also_o mention_v and_o this_o therefore_o seem_v to_o be_v intend_v in_o this_o crystal_n sea_n reas_n 3._o from_o the_o property_n and_o circumstance_n belong_v to_o this_o sea_n in_o the_o description_n of_o it_o which_o can_v well_o be_v otherwise_o accommodate_v i_o shall_v mention_v but_o these_o two_o 1._o it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v before_o the_o throne_n so_o we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v justify_v before_o god_n this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o bless_a effect_n and_o manifestation_n of_o his_o glory_n in_o the_o church_n so_o heb._n 12.23_o 24._o we_o be_v say_v to_o come_v unto_o god_n the_o judge_n of_o all_o
and_o to_o the_o blood_n of_o sprinkle_v 2._o it_o be_v call_v a_o sea_n of_o glass_n like_v unto_o crystal_n for_o pureness_n and_o excellency_n this_o be_v speak_v not_o as_o by_o way_n of_o diminution_n but_o to_o set_v out_o the_o glory_n of_o it_o all_o which_o agree_v well_o to_o the_o justify_v blood_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v more_o precious_a than_o gold_n or_o silver_n 1_o pet._n 1.18_o forasmuch_o as_o you_o know_v that_o you_o be_v not_o redeem_v with_o corruptible_a thing_n as_o gold_n and_o silver_n from_o your_o vain_a conversation_n but_o with_o the_o precious_a blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n reas_n 4._o from_o other_o parallel_a place_n in_o this_o book_n where_o the_o sea_n be_v speak_v of_o where_o it_o relate_v to_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n as_o dispense_v in_o the_o ordinance_n as_o in_o the_o second_o trumpet_n cap._n 8.8_o the_o corruption_n and_o declension_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n when_o decline_v unto_o popery_n be_v set_v out_o by_o this_o that_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o sea_n become_v blood_n the_o worship_n and_o ordinance_n be_v infect_v with_o deadly_a corruption_n and_o in_o the_o second_o vial_n cap._n 16.3_o when_o the_o popish_a corruption_n be_v discover_v and_o make_v to_o appear_v it_o be_v say_v the_o sea_n become_v like_o the_o blood_n of_o a_o dead_a man_n and_o every_o live_a soul_n in_o that_o sea_n die_v salvation_n be_v not_o to_o be_v have_v in_o the_o popish_a way_n of_o worship_n it_o be_v deadly_a unto_o soul_n instead_o of_o convey_v christ_n and_o his_o blood_n to_o save_v and_o quicken_v it_o exhibit_v nothing_o but_o the_o blood_n of_o a_o dead_a man_n and_o hence_o also_o the_o saint_n in_o the_o reformation_n out_o of_o popery_n be_v say_v to_o stand_v upon_o this_o sea_n of_o glass_n mingle_v with_o fire_n c._n 15.2_o the_o protestant_a church_n and_o reformer_n have_v ever_o insist_v upon_o this_o justification_n by_o faith_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o by_o work_n so_o in_o like_a manner_n here_o in_o this_o place_n this_o sea_n of_o crystal_n before_o the_o throne_n be_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o ordinance_n for_o wash_v and_o cleanse_v reas_n 5._o there_o be_v no_o other_o interpretation_n give_v by_o expositor_n save_v only_o that_o some_o have_v take_v this_o crystal_n sea_n to_o be_v the_o world_n and_o say_v they_o be_v compare_v to_o a_o sea_n for_o tempestuousness_n to_o glass_n for_o brittleness_n and_o to_o crystal_n for_o transparency_n but_o beside_o that_o these_o accommodation_n be_v more_o ingenious_a than_o solid_a and_o demonstrative_a it_o be_v impertinent_a to_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o place_n thus_o to_o bring_v in_o the_o world_n here_o the_o whole_a design_n of_o the_o chapter_n be_v to_o set_v forth_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n in_o the_o church_n under_o temple-image_n and_o allusion_n as_o have_v be_v show_v i_o shall_v therefore_o now_o conclude_v with_o a_o few_o word_n as_o by_o way_n of_o use_n from_o all_o that_o have_v be_v say_v upon_o this_o temple-sea_n use_v 1._o we_o have_v here_o some_o intimation_n of_o the_o preeminence_n of_o the_o gospel_n above_o the_o law_n in_o that_o they_o have_v the_o figure_n of_o these_o mystery_n but_o we_o have_v the_o thing_n themselves_o and_o in_o that_o the_o temple-sea_n be_v but_o of_o brass_n but_o this_o in_o the_o text_n be_v of_o glass_n and_o not_o common_a glass_n but_o crystal_n this_o may_v intimate_v something_o of_o preference_n and_o preeminence_n of_o gospel-dispensation_n above_o the_o law_n use_v 2._o note_v here_o second_o the_o deadly_a corruption_n of_o the_o popish_a religion_n and_o the_o main_a difference_n between_o a_o papist_n and_o a_o protestant_n the_o papist_n want_v this_o crystal_n sea_n it_o be_v true_a they_o have_v a_o sea_n such_o as_o it_o be_v but_o it_o be_v not_o a_o crystal_n sea_n fill_v with_o this_o pure_a and_o precious_a and_o soul-cleansing_a blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o they_o be_v a_o sea_n of_o dead_a blood_n they_o use_v to_o brag_v and_o boast_n much_o of_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n take_v it_o for_o the_o seat_n of_o their_o bishop_n romana_fw-la sedes_fw-la it_o be_v but_o the_o throne_n of_o the_o beast_n the_o seat_n of_o antichrist_n but_o the_o text_n speak_v of_o a_o sea_n in_o another_o sense_n and_o they_o be_v but_o a_o mare_n mortuum_fw-la no_o fish_n can_v live_v in_o that_o sea_n no_o soul_n in_o that_o church_n in_o that_o religion_n but_o the_o protestant_a church_n they_o have_v sure_a and_o firm_a foot_n upon_o this_o sea_n of_o glass_n as_o cap._n 15.2_o and_o i_o see_v as_o it_o be_v a_o sea_n of_o glass_n mingle_v with_o fire_n and_o they_o that_o have_v get_v the_o victory_n over_o the_o beast_n and_o over_o his_o image_n and_o over_o his_o mark_n and_o over_o the_o number_n of_o his_o name_n stand_v on_o the_o sea_n of_o glass_n have_v the_o harp_n of_o god_n it_o be_v mingle_v with_o fire_n the_o fire_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n burn_v and_o work_v effectual_o in_o they_o and_o there_o be_v indeed_o a_o fire_n of_o contention_n also_o and_o division_n and_o difference_n among_o protestant_n but_o yet_o here_o we_o stand_v safe_a even_o upon_o the_o righteousness_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o justification_n as_o apply_v to_o we_o in_o his_o own_o ordinance_n and_o institution_n here_o we_o stand_v with_o harp_n of_o god_n triumph_v and_o rejoice_v in_o christ_n jesus_n use_v 3_o here_o be_v direction_n to_o unclean_a soul_n and_o defile_a conscience_n what_o course_n to_o take_v and_o whither_o to_o go_v for_o cleanse_v especial_o when_o you_o be_v to_o come_v before_o the_o throne_n to_o approach_v into_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n in_o solemn_a duty_n stand_v upon_o this_o crystal_n sea_n wash_v in_o this_o fountain_n make_v use_n of_o christ_n in_o this_o respect_n you_o that_o complain_v o_o this_o unclean_a heart_n of_o i_o how_o shall_v i_o appear_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o such_o a_o holy_a god_n here_o be_v a_o sea_n to_o wash_v in_o for_o your_o your_o help_n therein_o take_v these_o four_o rule_n 1._o see_v thy_o own_o uncleanness_n and_o need_n of_o cleanse_v isai_n 6.5_o woe_n be_v i_o for_o i_o be_o undo_v because_o i_o be_o a_o man_n of_o unclean_a lip_n and_o i_o dwell_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o a_o people_n of_o unclean_a lip_n there_o be_v not_o only_o personal_a defilement_n but_o defilement_n by_o contagion_n from_o other_o for_o my_o eye_n have_v see_v the_o king_n the_o lord_n of_o host_n before_o that_o great_a and_o holy_a god_n i_o stand_v with_o such_o a_o unclean_a unholy_a heart_n therefore_o wash_v or_o else_o you_o die_v exod._n 30.20_o 21._o aaron_z and_o his_o son_n shall_v wash_v their_o hand_n and_o their_o foot_n that_o they_o die_v not_o the_o reason_n why_o so_o many_o professor_n prove_v hypocrite_n and_o so_o die_v and_o perish_v at_o last_o be_v because_o they_o rest_v in_o a_o moral_a way_n of_o profession_n they_o do_v not_o live_v upon_o christ_n for_o righteousness_n and_o life_n they_o avoid_v some_o sin_n it_o may_v be_v and_o perform_v some_o duty_n but_o rest_v there_o there_o be_v a_o neglect_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o daily_a wash_n in_o the_o sea_n of_o his_o blood_n and_o so_o they_o die_v before_o the_o lord_n 2._o know_v and_o be_v convince_v that_o no_o other_o mean_n will_v do_v it_o for_o though_o thou_o wash_v thou_o with_o nitre_n and_o take_v thou_o much_o soap_n yet_o thy_o iniquity_n be_v mark_v before_o i_o say_v the_o lord_n jer._n 2.22_o you_o may_v as_o soon_o wash_v a_o blackamoor_n white_a as_o cleanse_v a_o defile_a conscience_n by_o duty_n and_o ordinance_n and_o moral_a endavour_n without_o christ_n yea_o they_o will_v but_o make_v thou_o worse_o for_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o bless_v they_o when_o carnal_o trust_v to_o and_o rest_v in_o without_o christ_n as_o suppose_v a_o man_n be_v baptize_v or_o wash_v in_o a_o puddle_n in_o some_o dirty_a muddy_a pond_n he_o come_v out_o foul_a than_o he_o go_v in_o so_o man_n by_o their_o own_o endeavour_n and_o duty_n become_v worse_o 3._o this_o fountain_n be_v set_v open_a the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v offer_v the_o lord_n give_v thou_o liberty_n to_o wash_v thyself_o in_o this_o sea_n in_o that_o day_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o fountain_n open_v to_o the_o house_n of_o david_n and_o to_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o jerusalem_n for_o sin_n and_o for_o uncleanness_n zech._n 13.1_o it_o be_v not_o a_o fountain_n seal_v but_o set_v open_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o general_a offer_n of_o the_o gospel_n unto_o all_o 4._o hence_o all_o thou_o have_v to_o do_v for_o thy_o spiritual_a cleanse_n be_v only_o to_o apply_v and_o receive_v this_o blood_n this_o soul-cleansing_a blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o the_o lord_n
home_o and_o be_v convert_v but_o also_o that_o we_o be_v preserve_v unto_o his_o heavenly_a kingdom_n joh._n 17.15_o he_o pray_v that_o we_o shall_v be_v keep_v from_o the_o evil_n hence_o sometime_o believer_n be_v keep_v from_o be_v tempt_v but_o if_o they_o be_v tempt_v they_o be_v either_o keep_v from_o fall_v by_o temptation_n or_o if_o they_o fall_v from_o lie_v in_o their_o fall_n 4._o suppose_v you_o meet_v with_o trouble_n opposition_n and_o persecution_n from_o the_o world_n let_v the_o world_n speak_v evil_a of_o we_o yet_o christ_n speak_v well_o of_o we_o or_o rather_o for_o we_o to_o his_o father_n and_o then_o what_o need_v we_o fear_v see_v isai_n 51.7_o 8._o 5._o thy_o prayer_n be_v full_a of_o weakness_n and_o imperfection_n but_o the_o prayer_n of_o jesus_n christ_n have_v no_o weakness_n and_o imperfection_n go_v along_o with_o they_o quest_n but_o how_o may_v i_o know_v that_o christ_n pray_v for_o i_o answ_n thou_o may_v know_v it_o by_o two_o thing_n 1._o if_o thou_o have_v a_o heart_n to_o pray_v for_o thyself_o thy_o prayer_n be_v the_o echo_n of_o his_o intercession_n if_o christ_n have_v teach_v thou_o to_o pray_v for_o thyself_o christ_n intercede_v and_o pray_v in_o heaven_n for_o thou_o rom._n 8.27_o 2._o have_v the_o lord_n teach_v thou_o to_o prize_v the_o prayer_n and_o intercession_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o thou_o if_o so_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n he_o be_v intercede_v for_o thou_o heb._n 7.25_o use_v 2._o this_o also_o make_v against_o the_o papist_n who_o plead_v for_o mediator_n of_o intercession_n though_o not_o of_o satisfaction_n beside_o christ_n this_o can_v be_v for_o his_o intercession_n be_v found_v in_o his_o satisfaction_n the_o scripture_n make_v he_o the_o only_a mediator_n of_o intercession_n rev._n 8.3_o it_o be_v true_a the_o saint_n do_v pray_v or_o intercede_v for_o one_o another_o but_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o mediator_n because_o it_o be_v not_o their_o own_o incense_n nor_o their_o own_o blood_n but_o it_o be_v his_o incense_n it_o be_v his_o blood_n that_o make_v their_o prayer_n effectual_a they_o do_v not_o pray_v in_o their_o own_o name_n but_o in_o he_o but_o he_o pray_v in_o his_o own_o name_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o own_o blood_n the_o gospel_n of_o the_o ark_n and_o its_o appertainance_n in_o the_o holy_a of_o holies_n 1668._o jan._n 3._o 1668._o hebr._n 9.4_o 5._o the_o ark_n with_o its_o appertainance_n be_v another_o of_o the_o holy_a vessel_n belong_v to_o the_o holy_a of_o holies_n and_o it_o be_v the_o chief_a of_o all_o their_o holy_a thing_n as_o appear_v in_o sundry_a respect_n as_o for_o instance_n 1._o it_o have_v many_o glorious_a appertainance_n that_o relate_v to_o it_o many_o other_o vessel_n belong_v to_o this_o as_o the_o cherubim_n etc._n etc._n 2._o the_o place_n of_o it_o be_v the_o holy_a of_o holies_n 3._o solomon_n though_o he_o make_v all_o other_o thing_n new_a in_o the_o temple_n yet_o he_o do_v not_o make_v a_o new_a ark_n but_o only_o introduce_v the_o same_o which_o moses_n have_v make_v with_o great_a solemnity_n into_o the_o oracle_n the_o place_n which_o he_o have_v prepare_v for_o it_o 2_o chron._n 5.7_o whatever_o change_v and_o variety_n there_o may_v be_v in_o other_o thing_n whereby_o god_n dispense_v himself_o unto_o and_o among_o mankind_n other_o utensil_n may_v be_v make_v new_a there_o may_v be_v new_a ordinance_n new_a administration_n but_o there_o be_v no_o new_a christ_n never_o look_v for_o any_o new_a or_o further_a administration_n in_o this_o respect_n as_o there_o be_v no_o new_a god_n so_o there_o be_v no_o new_a christ_n but_o jesus_n christ_n the_o same_o yesterday_o and_o to_o day_n and_o for_o ever_o heb._n 13._o it_o be_v a_o blind_a and_o blasphemous_a delusion_n to_o speak_v of_o christ_n as_o a_o administration_n that_o be_v to_o pass_v away_o when_o the_o saint_n have_v pass_v under_o it_o for_o a_o while_n 4._o in_o that_o the_o providence_n about_o it_o be_v very_o great_a and_o glorious_a and_o full_a of_o teach_v and_o instruction_n the_o ark_n of_o god_n lead_v they_o through_o the_o wilderness_n we_o be_v to_o follow_v the_o guidance_n of_o christ_n through_o the_o world_n it_o be_v carry_v with_o bar_n so_o be_v christ_n upon_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n from_o one_o place_n to_o another_o as_o the_o levite_n do_v carry_v the_o ark_n so_o preacher_n may_v be_v say_v to_o carry_v christ_n to_o bear_v his_o name_n among_o the_o gentile_n so_o paul_n act._n 9.15_o many_o great_a thing_n be_v do_v by_o it_o jordan_n be_v divide_v by_o it_o so_o by_o christ_n all_o obstacle_n be_v remove_v out_o of_o the_o way_n the_o wall_n of_o jericho_n fall_v by_o it_o so_o by_o christ_n come_v the_o strong_a hold_v of_o satan_n kingdom_n be_v cast_v down_o it_o be_v the_o downfall_n of_o dagon_n so_o be_v christ_n of_o satan_n and_o idolatry_n while_o the_o ark_n be_v among_o the_o philistine_n they_o be_v plague_v but_o obed-edom_n be_v bless_v while_o it_o be_v at_o his_o house_n so_o christ_n in_o the_o gospel_n to_o some_o bring_v wrath_n be_v refuse_v to_o other_o salvation_n eli_n and_o his_o daughter_n die_v when_o the_o ark_n be_v take_v and_o the_o bethshemite_v rejoice_v exceed_o when_o they_o see_v it_o so_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n bring_v comfort_n but_o his_o absence_n grief_n and_o sorrow_n the_o bethshemite_n be_v punish_v for_o pry_v into_o the_o ark._n it_o be_v a_o dangerous_a thing_n to_o search_v into_o inscrutable_a mystery_n be_v wise_a unto_o sobriety_n the_o ark_n after_o many_o travel_n be_v bring_v at_o last_o to_o a_o place_n of_o rest_n in_o solomon_n temple_n so_o christ_n after_o many_o wearisome_a journey_n on_o earth_n be_v at_o length_n take_v up_o into_o heaven_n a_o place_n of_o rest_n where_o he_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n but_o as_o to_o this_o glorious_a utensil_n itself_o we_o may_v observe_v these_o thing_n 1._o the_o ark_n be_v the_o throne_n of_o god_n on_o which_o he_o do_v appear_v sit_v on_o his_o throne_n of_o grace_n and_o glory_n and_o from_o whence_o he_o speak_v and_o give_v forth_o answer_n and_o oracle_n hence_o we_o read_v of_o a_o throne_n of_o grace_n heh_o 4._o ult_n this_o throne_n of_o grace_n be_v that_o mercy-seat_n that_o cover_v the_o ark_n on_o which_o god_n sit_v and_o where_o he_o be_v say_v to_o dwell_v between_o the_o cherubim_n psal_n 80.1_o 1._o here_o he_o give_v upon_o special_a occasion_n visible_a appearance_n of_o his_o glory_n this_o be_v that_o shechinah_n which_o the_o jewish_a rabbin_n speak_v of_o and_o they_o have_v it_o from_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o prophet_n ezek._n 1._o last_o and_o cap._n 9_o and_o 10._o the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v say_v to_o appear_v and_o to_o remove_v and_o depart_v away_o by_o little_a and_o little_a there_o be_v still_o less_o and_o less_o of_o god_n among_o they_o till_o he_o be_v quite_o go_v so_o isai_n 6.1_o rev._n 4.2.3_o 2._o hence_o the_o lord_n speak_v with_o audible_a voice_n and_o give_v forth_o his_o answer_n so_o he_o promise_v to_o moses_n exod._n 25.22_o so_o numb_a 7._o ult_n the_o mystery_n of_o all_o which_o be_v this_o that_o god_n be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o christ_n and_o that_o he_o speak_v and_o reveal_v his_o mind_n to_o we_o only_o in_o and_o through_o jesus_n christ_n 2._o the_o mercy-seat_n which_o be_v upon_o the_o ark_n be_v a_o type_n of_o the_o passive_a obedience_n and_o satisfaction_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o our_o sin_n who_o god_n have_v set_v forth_o to_o be_v rom._n 3.25_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o propitiation_n 1_o joh._n 2.2_o he_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n 3._o the_o law_n which_o be_v within_o the_o ark_n be_v the_o active_a obedience_n of_o christ_n psal_n 40.8_o thy_o law_n be_v within_o my_o heart_n 4._o the_o golden_a pot_n of_o manna_n be_v christ_n in_o the_o word_n exod._n 16._o joh._n 6.48_o 49_o 50_o 51._o he_o be_v the_o true_a manna_n the_o true_a bread_n of_o life_n 5._o aaron_n rod_n that_o bud_a be_v the_o ministry_n bless_v with_o success_n for_o the_o good_a of_o soul_n numb_a 17.10_o this_o be_v reserve_v before_o the_o testimony_n for_o a_o token_n against_o the_o rebel_n 6._o the_o cherubim_n upon_o the_o ark_n be_v the_o angel_n minister_a to_o the_o lord_n ezek._n 1._o they_o be_v there_o describe_v be_v 6.2_o they_o look_v towards_o the_o ark_n they_o pry_v into_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o gospel_n 1_o pet._n 1.12_o hold_v forth_o by_o the_o church_n eph._n 3.10_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v above_o their_o comprehension_n and_o their_o subjection_n to_o christ_n as_o mediator_n be_v not_o include_v original_o within_o the_o law_n
the_o matter_n to_o this_o head_n of_o the_o jewish_a festival_n subjoin_v as_o a_o appendix_n those_o two_o discourse_n as_o they_o be_v find_v among_o the_o author_n paper_n farewell_n the_o gospel_n of_o the_o jewish_a festival_n 1668._o jan._n 14_o &_o 17._o 1668._o coloss_n 2.16_o 17._o let_v no_o man_n therefore_o judge_v you_o in_o meat_n or_o in_o drink_n or_o in_o respect_n of_o a_o holy_a day_n or_o of_o the_o new_a moon_n or_o of_o the_o sabbath-day_n which_o be_v a_o shadow_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v but_o the_o body_n be_v of_o christ_n obs_n 1._o that_o the_o jewish_a holy_a day_n be_v of_o three_o sort_n and_o may_v be_v refer_v to_o three_o head_n feast_n new_a moon_n and_o sabbath_n 2._o that_o these_o be_v shadow_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v but_o the_o body_n or_o substance_n be_v of_o christ_n 3._o that_o therefore_o christian_n shall_v not_o suffer_v any_o man_n to_o condemn_v they_o for_o their_o not_o observe_v of_o these_o day_n i_o shall_v handle_v the_o two_o first_o together_o in_o one_o show_v under_o each_o of_o these_o legal_a holy_a day_n what_o the_o substance_n and_o thing_n signify_v be_v what_o of_o christ_n be_v signify_v and_o shadow_v forth_o by_o they_o obs_n 1._o that_o the_o jewish_a holy_a day_n be_v of_o three_o sort_n and_o may_v be_v refer_v to_o three_o head_n viz._n feast_n new_a moon_n and_o sabbath_n this_o distribution_n of_o they_o do_v frequent_o occur_v in_o the_o scripture_n in_o other_o place_n as_o well_o as_o in_o this_o text_n 2_o chron._n 2.4_o i_o build_v a_o house_n say_v solomon_n for_o the_o burnt-offering_n on_o the_o sabbath_n and_o on_o the_o new_a moon_n and_o on_o the_o solemn_a feast_n of_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n ezek._n 45.17_o and_o it_o shall_v be_v the_o prince_n part_n to_o give_v burnt-offering_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o feast_n and_o in_o the_o new_a moon_n and_o in_o the_o sabbath_n even_o in_o all_o the_o solemnity_n of_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n that_o be_v in_o their_o appoint_a or_o solemn_a assembly_n where_o solemnity_n or_o solemn_a assembly_n be_v the_o general_a and_o this_o genus_fw-la be_v distribute_v into_o three_o particular_n feast_n new_a moon_n and_o sabbath_n so_o likewise_o hos_n 2.11_o i_o will_v also_o cause_v all_o her_o mirth_n to_o cease_v her_o feast-day_n her_o new_a moon_n and_o her_o sabbath_n even_o every_o holy_a assembly_n of_o she_o the_o first_o word_n be_v feast_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o hebrew_n moy_v set_a time_n because_o they_o come_v at_o set_a time_n of_o the_o year_n this_o be_v mean_v of_o their_o annual_a festival_n which_o be_v in_o number_n five_o the_o three_o principal_n be_v the_o feast_n of_o the_o passover_n the_o feast_n of_o pentecost_n and_o the_o feast_n of_o tabernacle_n which_o continue_v the_o two_o former_a each_o of_o they_o seven_o day_n the_o last_o for_o eight_o day_n together_o and_o the_o first_o day_n and_o the_o last_o day_n of_o they_o be_v holy_a convocation_n wherein_o they_o be_v to_o do_v no_o servile_a work_n but_o to_o be_v whole_o vacant_a for_o the_o word_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n the_o first_o mention_n of_o they_o be_v in_o exod._n 23_o 14-17_a they_o be_v more_o large_o speak_v to_o in_o the_o 23._o chap._n of_o leviticus_n and_o again_o in_o deut._n 16._o and_o brief_o recapitulate_v and_o sum_v up_o in_o ver_fw-la 16._o these_o be_v the_o principal_a because_o then_o all_o the_o male_n be_v to_o go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n and_o therefore_o these_o three_o be_v so_o often_o mention_v together_o there_o be_v also_o two_o more_o the_o feast_n of_o trumpet_n and_o the_o feast_n of_o expiation_n there_o be_v five_o general_a rule_n observable_a concern_v all_o these_o yearly_a feast_n 1._o that_o they_o be_v all_o to_o be_v celebrate_v at_o the_o place_n the_o lord_n their_o god_n shall_v choose_v which_o be_v jerusalem_n exod._n 23.14_o deut._n 16.16_o that_o which_o we_o be_v to_o learn_v therein_o be_v this_o that_o there_o be_v a_o church-worship_n there_o be_v some_o ordinance_n of_o god_n worship_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v enjoy_v but_o in_o church-society_n as_o there_o be_v a_o personal_a and_o family-worship_n so_o there_o be_v public_a or_o church-worship_n of_o this_o kind_n be_v the_o lord_n supper_n if_o this_o be_v not_o a_o ordinance_n of_o public_a worship_n under_o the_o gospel_n there_o be_v none_o therefore_o to_o carry_v it_o to_o private_a person_n upon_o their_o deathbed_n as_o the_o papist_n do_v be_v unwarrantable_a and_o superstitious_a 2._o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o they_o be_v all_o in_o the_o summer_n time_n and_o not_o in_o winter_n for_o the_o passover_n be_v upon_o the_o fourteen_o day_n of_o the_o first_o month_n pentecost_n be_v seven_o week_n after_o and_o the_o feast_n of_o tabernacle_n be_v upon_o the_o fifteen_o day_n of_o the_o seven_o month_n hence_o be_v that_o expression_n acts._n 27.9_o sail_v be_v now_o dangerous_a because_o the_o feast_n be_v now_o already_o past_a that_o be_v the_o feast_n of_o tabernacle_n the_o instruction_n we_o be_v here_o to_o learn_v be_v this_o namely_o to_o see_v the_o tenderness_n of_o god_n towards_o his_o people_n even_o as_o to_o the_o outward_a man_n as_o he_o will_v have_v mercy_n rather_o than_o sacrifice_n so_o he_o order_v the_o matter_n of_o sacrifice_n and_o worship_n with_o tenderness_n and_o mercy_n even_o to_o the_o body_n of_o his_o people_n yea_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n vouchsafe_v to_o dwell_v in_o their_o very_a body_n as_o well_o as_o in_o their_o soul_n and_o he_o preserve_v the_o dust_n thereof_o as_o precious_a relic_n in_o the_o treasure_n of_o his_o providence_n and_o will_v gather_v those_o disperse_a atom_n and_o bring_v they_o forth_o again_o and_o raise_v they_o up_o to_o everlasting_a life_n how_o great_a be_v his_o goodness_n to_o we_o it_o show_v there_o be_v a_o duty_n incumbent_n upon_o we_o in_o reference_n to_o our_o body_n and_o how_o great_a a_o sin_n it_o be_v in_o man_n to_o wrong_v and_o hurt_v their_o body_n when_o the_o lord_n himself_o be_v tender_a of_o they_o 3._o they_o be_v not_o to_o come_v empty_a hand_v exod._n 23._o deut._n 16.16_o 17._o true_a religion_n be_v bountiful_a duty_n of_o worship_n be_v to_o be_v accompany_v with_o duty_n of_o mercy_n and_o bounty_n so_o upon_o the_o christian_a sabbath_n there_o shall_v be_v collection_n for_o the_o poor_a 1_o cor._n 16.2_o hypocrisy_n divide_v these_o it_o be_v willing_a to_o serve_v god_n but_o in_o the_o cheap_a way_n hypocrite_n be_v all_o for_o a_o cheap_a religion_n 4._o whereas_o there_o be_v danger_n of_o invasion_n by_o their_o enemy_n when_o all_o the_o male_n be_v absent_a the_o lord_n secure_v they_o by_o a_o promise_n of_o special_a protection_n exod._n 34.24_o neither_o shall_v any_o man_n desire_v thy_o land_n when_o thou_o shall_v go_v up_o to_o appear_v before_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n thrice_o in_o the_o year_n learn_v here_o that_o while_o we_o be_v in_o our_o duty_n god_n will_v take_v care_n of_o our_o safety_n the_o way_n of_o duty_n be_v the_o way_n of_o safety_n when_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v go_v from_o god_n and_o have_v crucify_v the_o lord_n of_o life_n this_o protect_a providence_n forsake_v they_o for_o at_o the_o passover_n it_o be_v that_o the_o roman_n take_v and_o destroy_v jerusalem_n this_o ordinance_n which_o be_v at_o first_o and_o ever_o after_o a_o mean_n of_o safety_n to_o they_o the_o lord_n now_o make_v it_o a_o snare_n to_o bring_v they_o all_o together_o as_o it_o be_v into_o a_o pound_n that_o the_o roman_n may_v take_v they_o and_o cut_v they_o off_o but_o while_o they_o abide_v with_o god_n in_o purity_n of_o worship_n and_o obedience_n he_o abide_v with_o they_o in_o his_o protect_a providence_n this_o shall_v be_v a_o great_a encouragement_n to_o we_o in_o the_o work_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n to_o run_v all_o hazard_n and_o to_o fear_v no_o colour_n but_o be_v resolute_a in_o the_o discharge_n and_o performance_n of_o duty_n the_o lord_n be_v with_o we_o in_o such_o a_o case_n and_o then_o who_o can_v be_v against_o we_o 5._o these_o feast_n as_o to_o their_o end_n and_o use_v be_v both_o commemorative_n of_o former_a benefit_n and_o also_o prefigurative_a of_o future_a it_o may_v be_v say_v so_o of_o other_o holy_a time_n and_o holy_a thing_n also_o but_o it_o hold_v eminent_o true_a concern_v these_o three_o solemn_a anniversary_n feast_n the_o first_o of_o these_o yearly_a feast_n be_v the_o passover_n which_o begin_v upon_o the_o fifteen_o day_n of_o the_o first_o month_n answer_v chief_o to_o our_o march_n the_o first_o institution_n of_o it_o be_v in_o the_o 12_o chap._n of_o exodus_fw-la there_o be_v three_o thing_n which_o be_v the_o peculiar_a observation_n of_o this_o
1668._o coloss_n 2.16_o 17._o let_v no_o man_n therefore_o judge_v you_o in_o meat_n or_o in_o drink_n or_o in_o respect_n of_o a_o holy_a day_n or_o of_o the_o new_a moon_n or_o of_o the_o sabbath-day_n which_o be_v a_o shadow_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v but_o the_o body_n be_v of_o christ_n there_o be_v three_o doctrine_n in_o the_o word_n 1._o that_o the_o jewish_a holy_a day_n be_v of_o three_o sort_n or_o may_v be_v refer_v to_o three_o general_a head_n feast_v day_n new_a moon_n and_o sabbath_n 2._o that_o these_o their_o holy_a season_n be_v shadow_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v but_o the_o body_n be_v of_o christ_n 3._o therefore_o no_o christian_n shall_v suffer_v any_o man_n to_o judge_v he_o or_o condemn_v he_o for_o not_o observe_v these_o jewish_a time_n and_o season_n we_o be_v endeavour_v to_o open_v the_o substance_n of_o these_o shadow_n and_o what_o be_v those_o thing_n to_o come_v those_o thing_n about_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v shadow_v forth_o in_o they_o we_o begin_v first_o with_o their_o holy_a day_n or_o their_o feast_n day_n that_o be_v their_o annual_a festival_n whereof_o we_o hear_v they_o have_v five_o 1._o the_o passover_n 2._o pentecost_n 2._o the_o feast_n of_o tabernacle_n 4._o the_o feast_n of_o trumpet_n 5._o the_o feast_n of_o expiation_n these_o three_o the_o passover_n pentecost_n and_o the_o feast_n of_o tabernacle_n be_v the_o three_o great_a festival_n which_o be_v more_o solemn_a than_o the_o rest_n because_o then_o all_o the_o male_n of_o israel_n be_v to_o assemble_v together_o out_o of_o the_o whole_a nation_n and_o to_o appear_v before_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o place_n that_o he_o shall_v choose_v in_o a_o general_a church_n assembly_n we_o hear_v something_o that_o these_o thing_n point_v to_o the_o passover_n do_v point_v they_o to_o the_o death_n and_o suffering_n of_o jesus_n christ_n as_o the_o true_a paschal_n lamb_n who_o fulfil_v this_o type_n even_o as_o to_o the_o very_a season_n and_o holy_a time_n itself_o for_o he_o suffer_v at_o the_o passover_n the_o pentecost_n point_v at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o effusion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n after_o his_o ascension_n the_o feast_n of_o tabernacle_n point_v they_o to_o the_o birth_n and_o nativity_n of_o jesus_n christ_n when_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o tabernacle_n and_o pitch_v his_o tent_n in_o our_o nature_n we_o hear_v indeed_o that_o this_o be_v the_o time_n of_o christ_n birth_n and_o not_o as_o it_o be_v common_o compute_v to_o be_v in_o december_n in_o the_o depth_n of_o winter_n it_o be_v not_o like_o the_o shepherd_n will_v be_v watch_v their_o flock_n all_o night_n then_o and_o that_o augustus_n will_v command_v his_o subject_n to_o travel_v to_o their_o own_o city_n to_o be_v tax_v at_o such_o a_o time_n and_o that_o john_n will_v choose_v that_o time_n to_o baptize_v in_o there_o be_v two_o more_o of_o the_o jewish_a feast_n to_o be_v speak_v to_o which_o be_v great_a and_o solemn_a feast_n yet_o not_o so_o great_a as_o these_o three_o because_o the_o people_n be_v not_o all_o bound_n to_o come_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n to_o the_o temple_n namely_o the_o feast_n of_o trumpet_n and_o the_o feast_n of_o expiation_n they_o be_v both_o in_o the_o seven_o month_n as_o be_v also_o the_o feast_n of_o tabernacle_n the_o feast_n of_o trumpet_n on_o the_o first_o day_n of_o it_o the_o feast_n of_o expiation_n on_o the_o ten_o day_n and_o the_o feast_n of_o tabernales_fw-la on_o the_o fifteen_o day_n and_o from_o thence_o to_o the_o two_o and_o twenty_o day_n which_o be_v therefore_o account_v the_o great_a of_o all_o their_o feast_n be_v in_o the_o seven_o month_n which_o be_v also_o the_o first_o in_o their_o old_a account_n the_o chief_a of_o all_o the_o month_n in_o the_o year_n and_o call_v by_o some_o the_o sabbath_n of_o month_n as_o the_o seven_o day_n be_v the_o sabbath_n of_o day_n 4._o this_o month_n begin_v with_o the_o feast_n of_o trumpet_n which_o be_v upon_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o seven_o month_n the_o first_o institution_n of_o it_o we_o have_v in_o leu._n 23.23_o 24_o 25._o and_o the_o lord_n speak_v unto_o moses_n say_v etc._n etc._n it_o be_v celebrate_v as_o a_o sabbath_n they_o be_v to_o do_v no_o servile_a work_n therein_o this_o feast_n also_o have_v its_o peculiar_a sacrifice_n appoint_v for_o it_o as_o in_o numb_a 29._o the_o six_o first_o verse_n it_o be_v also_o solemnize_v with_o the_o blow_n of_o trumpet_n which_o be_v the_o special_a rite_n of_o this_o festivity_n it_o have_v its_o name_n from_o thence_o here_o therefore_o the_o old_a legal_a music_n may_v fit_o be_v consider_v this_o be_v as_o it_o be_v their_o feast_n of_o music_n the_o institution_n of_o these_o trumpet_n we_o read_v in_o numb_a 10._o the_o ten_o first_o verse_n mention_v long_o after_o as_o a_o very_a solemn_a ordinance_n in_o psal_n 81.3_o 4_o the_o first_o mention_n we_o have_v of_o musical_a instrument_n in_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n be_v in_o exod._n 15.20_o 21._o where_o we_o read_v that_o miriam_n use_v timbrel_n and_o they_o praise_v god_n therewith_o and_o they_o sing_v the_o song_n of_o moses_n when_o they_o be_v deliver_v from_o pharaoh_n and_o miriam_n the_o prophetess_n the_o sister_n of_o aaron_n take_v a_o timbrel_n in_o her_o hand_n and_o all_o the_o woman_n go_v out_o after_o she_o with_o timbrel_n and_o with_o dance_n and_o miriam_n answer_v they_o sing_v you_o to_o the_o lord_n for_o he_o have_v triumph_v glorious_o the_o horse_n and_o his_o rider_n have_v he_o throw_v into_o the_o sea_n moses_n afterward_o by_o order_n from_o god_n appoint_v these_o trumpet_n to_o be_v make_v and_o we_o read_v of_o a_o further_a increase_n of_o such_o instrument_n in_o after_o time_n as_o to_o the_o use_n and_o signification_n of_o they_o there_o be_v many_o gospel_n instruction_n to_o be_v consider_v in_o this_o legal_a shadow_n we_o shall_v mention_v seven_o 1._o the_o general_a scope_n of_o they_o be_v to_o signify_v and_o shadow_v forth_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o bless_a sound_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v call_v the_o joyful_a sound_n psal_n 89.15_o the_o gospel_n be_v call_v glad_a tiding_n it_o be_v a_o joyful_a pleasant_a sound_n indeed_o hence_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v say_v to_o lift_v up_o their_o voice_n like_o a_o trumpet_n isai_n 58.1_o the_o tongue_n of_o the_o just_a be_v as_o choice_n silver_n prov._n 10.20_o these_o trumpet_n be_v of_o silver_n the_o faithful_a discharge_n and_o execution_n of_o their_o office_n be_v express_v by_o blow_v of_o the_o trumpet_n hos_n 8.1_o ezek._n 33.3_o 4_o 5._o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o day_n when_o the_o jew_n shall_v be_v convert_v in_o that_o day_n the_o great_a trumpet_n shall_v be_v blow_v and_o they_o shall_v come_v which_o be_v ready_a to_o perish_v etc._n etc._n isai_n 27._o last_o when_o god_n shall_v gather_v they_o one_o by_o one_o you_o shall_v be_v gather_v one_o by_o one_o ver_fw-la 12._o in_o that_o day_n the_o great_a trumpet_n shall_v be_v blow_v &c_n &c_n that_o be_v say_v calvin_n the_o silver_n trumpet_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o the_o conviction_n and_o conversion_n of_o the_o jew_n god_n will_v have_v his_o church_n instruct_v not_o by_o sight_n only_o but_o by_o voice_n not_o by_o the_o eye_n only_o but_o by_o the_o ear_n even_o under_o the_o law_n the_o lord_n will_v not_o have_v his_o people_n always_o to_o look_v for_o miraculous_a and_o immediate_a guidance_n but_o they_o be_v to_o order_v themselves_o according_a to_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o trumpet_n both_o in_o war_n peace_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o word_n so_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o gospel_n according_a as_o that_o trumpet_n sound_v so_o be_v you_o to_o act_v this_o be_v the_o first_o namely_o the_o joyful_a sound_n of_o the_o silver_n trumpet_n of_o the_o gospel_n 2._o the_o joy_n and_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v another_o thing_n intimate_v by_o this_o trumpet_n and_o instrument_n of_o music_n that_o spiritual_a melody_n of_o the_o joy_n and_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o god_n people_n psal_n 98.6_o with_o trumpet_n and_o sound_n of_o cornet_n make_v a_o joyful_a noise_n before_o the_o lord_n the_o king_n ephes_n 5.18_o 19_o there_o be_v a_o melody_n and_o joyful_a voice_n in_o the_o conscience_n of_o believer_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n both_o sanctify_a and_o comfort_v of_o they_o so_o the_o apostle_n col._n 3.16_o grace_n and_o joy_n the_o fruit_n of_o grace_n so_o this_o music_n remain_v in_o the_o antitype_n of_o it_o the_o heartstring_n of_o believer_n make_v melody_n suitable_a to_o the_o profession_n of_o their_o lip_n and_o to_o the_o gracious_a and_o peaceable_a
prefiguration_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o grave_a that_o whole_a day_n which_o be_v indeed_o the_o only_a whole_a day_n of_o his_o rest_a or_o cessation_n from_o the_o action_n of_o a_o bodily_a life_n for_o he_o be_v in_o the_o grave_a only_o some_o small_a part_n of_o the_o six_o day_n and_o of_o the_o first_o day_n but_o he_o rest_v the_o whole_a jewish_a sabbath_n so_o then_o as_o they_o have_v other_o legal_a day_n and_o time_n that_o point_v they_o to_o other_o thing_n about_o the_o messiah_n so_o the_o sabbath_n point_v to_o his_o rest_v in_o the_o grave_a and_o he_o do_v not_o only_a rest_n in_o the_o humble_v of_o himself_o under_o the_o guilt_n of_o our_o sin_n but_o in_o his_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a the_o day_n of_o his_o resurrection_n be_v the_o day_n of_o his_o enter_v into_o his_o state_n of_o rest_n from_o his_o suffering_n but_o on_o the_o sabbath_n he_o rest_v from_o the_o action_n of_o his_o bodily_a life_n therefore_o the_o seven_o day_n sabbath_n be_v abrogate_a and_o the_o lord_n have_v substitute_v the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n for_o the_o sabbath_n be_v moral_a and_o there_o be_v a_o ground_n too_o for_o the_o change_n of_o the_o day_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v one_o day_n in_o seven_o to_o attend_v on_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n this_o be_v moral_a and_o perpetual_a that_o it_o shall_v be_v the_o last_o day_n in_o seven_o this_o be_v by_o god_n institution_n make_v legal_a and_o typical_a christ_n enter_v into_o his_o rest_n of_o glory_n into_o the_o state_n thereof_o at_o his_o resurrection_n and_o into_o the_o place_n thereof_o when_o he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n but_o his_o rest_v in_o the_o grave_n be_v on_o the_o seven_o day_n from_o all_o which_o you_o may_v see_v the_o morality_n of_o the_o sabbath_n consider_v as_o in_o general_a together_o with_o the_o shadowy_a nature_n of_o the_o jewish_a sabbath_n of_o the_o seven_o day_n have_v these_o typical_a respect_n &_o relation_n annex_v to_o it_o and_o so_o therein_o you_o see_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o abrogation_n of_o it_o and_o of_o the_o substitution_n of_o the_o christian_a sabbath_n instead_o therereof_o and_o so_o much_o may_v serve_v for_o the_o typical_a respect_n and_o use_n of_o the_o jewish_a sabbath_n now_o as_o for_o the_o rite_n and_o observation_n thereof_o 1._o there_o be_v more_o sacrifice_n that_o day_n then_o upon_o other_o day_n numb_a 28.9_o 10._o the_o reason_n be_v because_o there_o be_v more_o mercy_n give_v and_o commemorate_a that_o day_n as_o the_o creation_n their_o deliverance_n out_o of_o egypt_n and_o their_o sanctification_n by_o the_o spirit_n it_o shall_v be_v a_o sign_n between_o i_o and_o they_o that_o they_o may_v know_v that_o i_o jehovah_n do_v sanctify_v they_o exod._n 31.13_o ezek._n 20.12_o 20._o here_o learn_v that_o the_o more_o blessing_n god_n give_v to_o any_o people_n the_o great_a thankfulness_n he_o expect_v again_o it_o reach_v also_o that_o special_a holiness_n that_o shall_v be_v upon_o the_o sabbath_n more_o exercise_n of_o grace_n and_o duty_n of_o worship_n to_o be_v perform_v upon_o that_o day_n then_o ordinary_o upon_o any_o other_o day_n there_o shall_v be_v that_o among_o we_o on_o the_o christian_a sabbath_n that_o shall_v answer_v their_o double_a sacrifice_n upon_o their_o jewish_a sabbath_n but_o in_o ezek._n 46.45_o there_o be_v appoint_v for_o the_o sabbath_n six_o lamb_n for_o one_o under_o the_o law_n to_o teach_v we_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v more_o holiness_n now_o under_o the_o gospel_n than_o there_o be_v under_o the_o law_n 2._o they_o may_v not_o kindle_v a_o fire_n on_o that_o day_n exod._n 35.3_o as_o some_o think_v to_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o their_o absolute_a freedom_n from_o their_o egyptian_a bondage_n and_o the_o fiery_a brick-work_n there_o or_o from_o the_o fire_n of_o god_n wrath_n in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v when_o enter_v into_o that_o none_o of_o these_o fire_n shall_v ever_o be_v kindle_v upon_o they_o or_o hurt_v they_o though_o other_o think_v that_o restraint_n respect_v only_o kindle_v a_o fire_n for_o the_o build_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n nor_o be_v it_o unlikely_a 3._o they_o be_v to_o abstain_v from_o build_v the_o tabernacle_n that_o day_n exod._n 31.12_o 13_o 14_o 15_o 16_o 17._o and_o 35.2_o to_o teach_v they_o that_o the_o six_o day_n that_o be_v the_o time_n of_o this_o life_n be_v the_o only_a time_n wherein_o god_n will_v build_v the_o tabernacle_n of_o his_o church_n this_o life_n be_v the_o only_a day_n of_o grace_n and_o opportunity_n of_o salvation_n 4._o they_o may_v not_o gather_v manna_n on_o that_o day_n exod._n 16._o in_o this_o life_n christ_n be_v offer_v but_o in_o the_o sabbath_n of_o eternity_n no_o manna_n no_o mean_n of_o grace_n no_o offer_n of_o christ_n then_o none_o can_v have_v manna_n upon_o the_o sabbath_n but_o they_o that_o have_v store_v it_o up_o upon_o the_o week_n day_n so_o none_o can_v have_v christ_n in_o heaven_n but_o they_o that_o have_v store_v he_o up_o in_o their_o heart_n on_o earth_n these_o thing_n show_v the_o rigour_n of_o the_o law_n as_o to_o sabbath-rest_n but_o the_o pharisee_n be_v deep_o possess_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o law_n do_v strain_v it_o a_o peg_n or_o two_o high_a that_o to_o do_v a_o miraculous_a work_n of_o mercy_n or_o work_n of_o necessity_n be_v unlawful_a 2._o they_o have_v also_o a_o sabbatical_a year_n viz._n every_o seven_o year_n a_o sabbath_n of_o the_o seven_o year_n every_o seven_o year_n be_v a_o sabbatical_a year_n as_o every_o seven_o day_n be_v a_o sabbatical_a day_n exod._n 23.10_o deut._n 15.9_o this_o be_v celebrate_v by_o let_v the_o land_n rest_n from_o its_o usual_a culture_n and_o husbandry_n levit._fw-la 25.4_o 5._o some_o allege_v a_o political_a and_o philosophical_a reason_n for_o this_o that_o the_o land_n by_o rest_v one_o year_n may_v be_v the_o more_o fruitful_a the_o other_o six_o quod_fw-la caret_fw-la alternâ_fw-la requie_n durabile_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la this_o sabbatical_a year_n be_v celebrate_v by_o give_v rest_n unto_o the_o land_n from_o tillage_n and_o manure_v the_o hungry_a ground_n this_o be_v a_o shadow_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v this_o signify_v something_o of_o christ_n and_o gospel_n mystery_n in_o which_o observe_v four_o thing_n there_o be_v a_o fourfold_a instruction_n in_o this_o sabbatical_a year_n 1._o this_o sabbatical_a year_n tell_v they_o plain_o that_o both_o they_o and_o their_o land_n be_v the_o lord_n leu._n 25.23_o for_o the_o land_n be_v i_o 2._o this_o teach_v they_o to_o depend_v upon_o providence_n without_o worldly_a care_n and_o trust_v to_o the_o creature_n for_o supply_v and_o support_v for_o they_o must_v not_o now_o sow_n nor_o till_o the_o land_n this_o year_n for_o the_o six_o year_n be_v to_o bring_v forth_o the_o fruit_n of_o three_o year_n both_o for_o the_o seven_o year_n and_o for_o the_o eight_o and_o for_o the_o nine_o till_o the_o harvest_n time_n see_v leu._n 25.20_o 21_o 22._o and_o ver_fw-la 6._o the_o sabbath_n of_o the_o land_n shall_v be_v meat_n for_o thou_o the_o land_n of_o its_o own_o accord_n that_o year_n be_v to_o produce_v sustenance_n enough_o both_o for_o man_n and_o beast_n it_o be_v not_o enough_o for_o we_o to_o depend_v on_o the_o ordinary_a course_n of_o mean_n god_n can_v over-rule_v they_o and_o over-work_n they_o as_o he_o do_v here_o 3._o the_o lord_n hereby_o teach_v they_o and_o we_o that_o great_a gospel-lesson_n and_o duty_n of_o mercy_n and_o bounty_n to_o the_o poor_a exod._n 23.10_o 11._o the_o land_n must_v rest_v that_o the_o poor_a may_v eat_v and_o deut._n 15.1_o 2._o creditor_n must_v release_v their_o debtor_n every_o seven_o year_n leu._n 25.5_o 6._o there_o be_v a_o equity_n a_o chancery_n a_o bountiful_a condescension_n to_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o poor_a that_o man_n exact_v not_o their_o own_o right_n in_o all_o thing_n but_o rather_o remit_v and_o abate_v something_o thereof_o not_o but_o that_o man_n may_v take_v their_o course_n and_o use_v mean_n to_o get_v it_o especial_o when_o person_n be_v able_a and_o wilful_a but_o in_o case_n of_o poverty_n there_o shall_v be_v mercy_n show_v in_o such_o a_o case_n 4._o this_o sabbatical_a year_n be_v a_o special_a season_n and_o time_n of_o instruction_n in_o the_o law_n of_o god_n deut._n 31.10_o 11_o 12._o the_o lord_n will_v have_v they_o instruct_v and_o teach_v to_o know_v his_o mind_n and_o the_o true_a religion_n and_o the_o way_n of_o his_o worship_n therefore_o he_o appoint_v so_o many_o time_n and_o season_n for_o it_o weekly_a and_o monthly_a and_o yearly_a and_o moreover_o one_o year_n in_o seven_o as_o you_o see_v beside_o the_o mystery_n of_o spiritual_a rest_n by_o christ_n of_o which_o further_a in_o
break_v bread_n every_o lord_n day_n and_o in_o the_o primitive_a time_n the_o sacrament_n be_v the_o conclude_a ordinance_n but_o man_n do_v not_o eat_v of_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n for_o than_o he_o have_v be_v confirm_v and_o live_v for_o ever_o gen._n 3.22_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a that_o he_o stand_v in_o his_o integrity_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o sabbath_n and_o as_o to_o the_o time_n of_o the_o day_n wherein_o he_o sin_v it_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v about_o eat_a time_n at_o dinner_n about_o noon_n eat_v what_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v the_o thing_n wherein_o they_o sin_v and_o after_o his_o fall_n it_o be_v say_v that_o god_n come_v and_o speak_v to_o they_o in_o the_o cool_a of_o the_o day_n gen._n 3._o ver_fw-la 8._o this_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v about_o that_o time_n of_o the_o day_n which_o the_o scripture_n call_v the_o nine_o hour_n which_o be_v after_o our_o reckon_n about_o three_o a_o clock_n in_o the_o afternoon_n so_o long_o they_o be_v in_o darkness_n and_o under_o guilt_n of_o their_o sin_n before_o the_o promulgation_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o they_o wherein_o some_o have_v observe_v a_o congruity_n in_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v under_o those_o his_o infinite_a suffering_n upon_o the_o cross_a the_o same_o space_n of_o time_n from_o the_o six_o hour_n to_o the_o nine_o matth._n 27.45_o 46._o and_o it_o be_v thus_o man_n in_o his_o first_o sin_n and_o fall_n do_v break_v all_o the_o commandment_n at_o once_o as_o he_o break_v all_o the_o rest_n so_o he_o sin_v upon_o the_o sabbath_n day_n this_o seem_v by_o all_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o story_n to_o have_v be_v the_o time_n of_o his_o fall_n but_o to_o think_v that_o he_o fall_v on_o tuesday_n the_o ten_o day_n from_o the_o creation_n there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o history_n to_o evince_v it_o other_o think_v this_o fast_a on_o the_o day_n of_o the_o seven_o month_n be_v appoint_v in_o remembrance_n of_o the_o great_a sin_n the_o idolatry_n of_o the_o golden_a calf_n exod._n 32._o but_o we_o may_v rest_v in_o that_o the_o text_n mention_v as_o the_o occasion_n of_o this_o ordinance_n viz._n the_o sin_n and_o death_n of_o nadab_n and_o abihu_n and_o there_o be_v a_o threefold_a instruction_n we_o be_v here_o to_o learn_v obs_n 1._o here_o we_o be_v teach_v first_o that_o there_o must_v be_v holy_a fear_n and_o reverence_n in_o approach_v to_o god_n in_o his_o ordinance_n a_o holy_a fear_n and_o dread_n of_o sin_v in_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o worship_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o dangerous_a thing_n to_o worship_n god_n otherwise_o then_o he_o have_v appoint_v man_n shall_v take_v heed_n of_o it_o that_o they_o die_v not_o as_o nadab_n and_o abihu_n do_v for_o this_o sin_n they_o incur_v the_o danger_n of_o death_n both_o death_n temporal_a and_o eternal_a though_o god_n do_v not_o usual_o smite_v man_n with_o visible_a judgement_n but_o when_o they_o be_v first_o in_o any_o transgression_n yet_o there_o be_v a_o spiritual_a fire_n and_o wrath_n upon_o their_o spirit_n for_o it_o which_o be_v worse_o than_o outward_a judgement_n obs_n 2._o the_o lord_n take_v hold_v of_o the_o sad_a occasion_n to_o bring_v in_o dispensation_n of_o the_o great_a good_a and_o mercy_n to_o his_o people_n light_v out_o of_o darkness_n heaven_n out_o of_o hell_n good_a out_o of_o evil_a to_o those_o that_o he_o have_v set_v his_o love_n upon_o obs_n 3._o when_o some_o be_v slay_v and_o die_v in_o and_o for_o their_o sin_n the_o lord_n provide_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o other_o that_o they_o die_v not_o now_o to_o come_v to_o the_o thing_n itself_o moses_n be_v to_o charge_n aaron_n that_o he_o come_v not_o into_o the_o holy_a of_o holies_n at_o all_o time_n nor_o in_o any_o manner_n but_o at_o god_n appoint_v time_n and_o in_o such_o manner_n as_o he_o require_v this_o manner_n be_v here_o describe_v at_o large_a it_o consist_v chief_o in_o three_o thing_n 1._o his_o wash_a himself_n 2._o his_o holy_a garment_n and_o 3._o his_o propitiatory_a offering_n 1._o that_o the_o priest_n must_v wash_v before_o he_o put_v on_o his_o garment_n and_o before_o he_o present_v his_o offer_n be_v a_o intimation_n of_o his_o purity_n and_o cleanness_n hence_o that_o expression_n of_o the_o apostle_n heb._n 10.22_o have_v our_o heart_n sprinkle_v from_o a_o evil_a conscience_n and_o our_o body_n wash_v with_o pure_a water_n this_o be_v the_o first_o thing_n he_o be_v to_o do_v so_o christ_n matth._n 3.16_o be_v baptize_v before_o he_o enter_v upon_o his_o ministry_n and_o he_o be_v perfect_o holy_a and_o pure_a not_o have_v the_o least_o defilement_n of_o sin_n upon_o he_o though_o he_o have_v take_v on_o he_o our_o nature_n and_o all_o the_o other_o infirmity_n of_o it_o vid._n on_o the_o priest_n consecration_n exod._n 29._o 2._o as_o to_o his_o attire_n here_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o holy_a garment_n mention_v in_o the_o service_n of_o this_o day_n the_o holy_a garment_n ver_fw-la 4._o and_o other_o holy_a and_o most_o costly_a garment_n ver_fw-la 23.24_o some_o call_v the_o former_a his_o white_a garment_n and_o the_o other_o his_o golden_a garment_n 1._o this_o priestly_a attire_n be_v a_o emblem_n of_o spiritual_a clothing_n psal_n 132.9_o let_v thy_o priest_n be_v clothe_v with_o righteousness_n and_o let_v thy_o saint_n shout_n for_o joy_n and_o ver_fw-la 16._o i_o will_v also_o clothe_v her_o priest_n with_o salvation_n job_n 29.14_o i_o put_v on_o righteousness_n and_o it_o clothe_v i_o my_o judgement_n be_v as_o a_o robe_n and_o a_o diadem_n this_o then_o speak_v the_o grace_n and_o holiness_n that_o be_v in_o jesus_n christ_n and_o aught_o to_o be_v in_o minister_n such_o garment_n minister_n shall_v be_v clothe_v with_o 2._o those_o two_o sort_n of_o attire_n the_o white_a and_o the_o golden_a garment_n signify_v the_o different_a estate_n and_o condition_n of_o jesus_n christ_n when_o he_o perform_v the_o great_a work_n of_o our_o redemption_n and_o make_v atonement_n for_o we_o he_o do_v it_o in_o much_o meanness_n and_o abasement_n isai_n 52.14_o his_o visage_n be_v mar_v he_o be_v without_o external_a pomp_n and_o worldly_a glory_n in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n make_v himself_o of_o no_o reputation_n phil._n 2.7_o though_o with_o holiness_n and_o purity_n and_o innocency_n he_o have_v white_a garment_n on_o though_o they_o be_v but_o plain_a but_o as_o there_o be_v a_o clothing_n of_o grace_n so_o there_o be_v a_o clothing_n of_o glory_n 2_o cor._n 5.2_o 4._o and_o after_o his_o resurrection_n when_o he_o have_v be_v in_o heaven_n and_o return_v again_o and_o arise_v and_o appear_v from_o the_o dead_a he_o do_v change_v his_o raiment_n he_o wear_v the_o garment_n of_o holiness_n here_o but_o when_o he_o enter_v into_o the_o holy_a place_n even_o into_o heaven_n he_o do_v put_v on_o garment_n of_o glory_n these_o be_v the_o holy_a garment_n on_o this_o day_n of_o expiation_n now_o the_o three_o thing_n be_v the_o offering_n of_o atonement_n and_o they_o be_v of_o two_o sort_n for_o the_o priest_n and_o for_o the_o people_n 1._o for_o the_o priest_n himself_o and_o for_o his_o own_o house_n ver_fw-la 3_o 6._o this_o teach_v we_o the_o insufficiency_n and_o imperfection_n of_o the_o legal_a priesthood_n heb._n 5.1_o 2.3_o we_o need_v a_o better_a high_a priest_n and_o we_o have_v one_o heb._n 7.26_o 27_o 28._o the_o priest_n be_v first_o to_o make_v atonement_n for_o himself_o and_o for_o his_o own_o sin_n that_o so_o he_o may_v be_v fit_a as_o a_o figure_n of_o christ_n the_o true_a high_a priest_n to_o make_v atonement_n for_o the_o people_n they_o that_o lie_v under_o unpardoned_a guilt_n themselves_o be_v not_o fit_a to_o be_v mediator_n and_o intercessor_n for_o other_o the_o priest_n have_v three_o thing_n to_o do_v in_o reference_n to_o his_o own_o sacrifice_n 1._o he_o be_v to_o kill_v it_o and_o so_o to_o make_v atonement_n with_o it_o v._o 11._o this_o be_v a_o type_n of_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n the_o true_a sacrifice_n 2._o he_o be_v to_o offer_v incense_n in_o the_o holy_a of_o holies_n v._o 12._o this_o be_v a_o type_n of_o the_o prayer_n and_o intercession_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o satisfaction_n here_o be_v four_o particular_n observable_a 1._o as_o the_o high_a priest_n do_v this_o before_o he_o sprinkle_v the_o blood_n in_o the_o holy_a of_o all_o so_o christ_n prepare_v his_o own_o way_n into_o heaven_n by_o his_o prayer_n and_o intercession_n joh._n 17._o 2._o the_o incense_n be_v beat_v small_a to_o intimate_v the_o anguish_n and_o contrition_n and_o brokenness_n of_o heart_n wherewith_o christ_n pray_v and_o intercede_v for_o we_o those_o agony_n of_o spirit_n in_o his_o prayer_n before_o his_o death_n which_o he_o offer_v
323._o 5._o the_o sin-offering_n buth_n the_o bullock_n and_o the_o goat_n must_v be_v burn_v without_o the_o camp_n ver_fw-la 27._o this_o also_o be_v explain_v upon_o the_o sin-offering_a leu._n cap._n 4._o pag._n 321_o 322._o that_o christ_n suffer_v without_o the_o city_n as_o a_o malefactor_n with_o who_o we_o also_o shall_v suffer_v bear_v our_o reproach_n and_o be_v content_a to_o be_v account_v as_o malefactor_n yea_o as_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o offscouring_n and_o sweep_v of_o the_o world_n 6._o on_o this_o great_a day_n of_o atonement_n be_v the_o jubilee_n to_o be_v proclaim_v by_o sound_n of_o trumpet_n leu._n 25.9_o this_o speak_v that_o after_o the_o performance_n of_o the_o whole_a work_n of_o our_o redemption_n by_o jesus_n christ_n he_o do_v cause_v the_o trumpet_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o sound_v to_o publish_v and_o proclaim_v the_o glad_a tiding_n of_o our_o salvation_n throughout_o the_o world_n isai_n 61.1_o 2._o so_o that_o this_o day_n of_o atonement_n be_v like_o that_o famous_a week_n prophesy_v of_o by_o daniel_n cap._n 9_o he_o shall_v confirm_v the_o covenant_n with_o many_o for_o one_o week_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o week_n messiah_n shall_v be_v cut_v off_o this_o week_n be_v interpret_v by_o some_o concern_v that_o seven_o year_n the_o first_o part_n whereof_o christ_n preach_v suffer_v in_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o week_n and_o in_o the_o other_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a the_o apostle_n preach_v at_o jerusalem_n after_o which_o they_o be_v disperse_v by_o persecution_n and_o so_o the_o gospel_n publish_v to_o all_o the_o world_n it_o be_v the_o performance_n of_o the_o work_n of_o our_o redemption_n that_o be_v the_o foundation_n and_o groundwork_n of_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o jubilee_n be_v proclaim_v upon_o the_o day_n of_o atonement_n 7._o and_o last_o this_o day_n of_o atonement_n be_v a_o day_n of_o humiliation_n and_o afflict_v their_o soul_n by_o a_o everlasting_a ordinance_n ver_fw-la 29_o to_o the_o end_n day_n of_o humiliation_n be_v day_n of_o atonement_n and_o reconciliation_n not_o that_o our_o humiliation_n merit_n or_o deserve_v any_o thing_n it_o be_v not_o the_o afflict_a our_o soul_n that_o do_v make_v atonement_n but_o it_o fit_v we_o to_o receive_v the_o atonement_n humiliation_n prepare_v the_o soul_n for_o christ_n and_o make_v it_o capable_a to_o receive_v the_o mercy_n and_o the_o pardon_n that_o christ_n have_v purchase_v and_o that_o god_n be_v willing_a and_o ready_a to_o bestow_v upon_o all_o that_o will_v receive_v it_o by_o faith_n the_o manifold_a sinfulness_n of_o the_o popish_a holy_a day_n discover_v in_o sundry_a reason_n against_o they_o and_o the_o most_o material_a objection_n answer_v among_o the_o several_a way_n wherein_o the_o superstition_n of_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n work_v out_o and_o vent_v itself_o this_o be_v one_o the_o observe_v of_o day_n and_o time_n wherein_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v abound_v fill_v the_o calendar_n with_o superstitious_a holy_a day_n many_o of_o which_o be_v still_o retain_v and_o continue_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o let_v these_o reason_n against_o they_o be_v consider_v reason_n 1._o nothing_o can_v be_v holy_a to_o the_o lord_n which_o be_v not_o make_v holy_a by_o the_o lord_n but_o god_n the_o lord_n of_o time_n have_v not_o sanctify_v nor_o set_v apart_o these_o time_n we_o find_v indeed_o before_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n be_v institute_v yea_o before_o the_o fall_n of_o man_n that_o god_n bless_v the_o seven_o day_n and_o sanctify_v it_o gen._n 2.2_o 3._o and_o therefore_o the_o observation_n of_o a_o weekly_a sabbath_n one_o day_n in_o seven_o be_v moral_a and_o perpetual_a but_o other_o holy_a day_n be_v thing_n which_o the_o lord_n never_o command_v and_o which_o never_o come_v into_o his_o heart_n and_o of_o which_o he_o will_v say_v at_o the_o great_a day_n who_o require_v these_o thing_n at_o your_o hand_n the_o strength_n of_o which_o argument_n will_v appear_v the_o more_o if_o we_o consider_v what_o miserable_a poor_a shift_n it_o put_v the_o patron_n of_o these_o holy_a day_n to_o when_o they_o go_v about_o to_o grapple_v with_o it_o 1._o sometime_o they_o be_v so_o confound_v in_o themselves_o as_o to_o deny_v that_o they_o place_n holiness_n in_o these_o day_n the_o church_n keep_v they_o they_o say_v not_o as_o more_o holy_a and_o sacred_a than_o other_o day_n and_o part_n of_o divine_a worship_n but_o only_o for_o order_n and_o policy_n so_o bishop_n lindsey_n perth_n ass_n part_n 3._o p._n 5._o but_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o fellow_n have_v deal_v more_o true_o and_o more_o sincere_o than_o he_o in_o this_o particular_a for_o not_o only_a bellarmine_n tom_n 2._o de_fw-la cultu_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la lib._n 3._o cap._n 10._o prop._n 2._o assert_v festa_fw-la christianorum_fw-la non_fw-la solum_fw-la ratione_fw-la ordinis_fw-la &_o politiae_fw-la sed_fw-la etiam_fw-la ratione_fw-la mysterii_fw-la celebrantur_fw-la suntque_fw-la dies_fw-la festi_fw-la veer_fw-la aliis_fw-la sanctiores_fw-la sacratiores_fw-la &_o pars_fw-la quaedam_fw-la divini_fw-la cultus_fw-la but_o hooker_n eccles_n pol._n lib._n 5._o sect_n 69._o pag_n 375._o also_o say_v they_o ought_v to_o be_v with_o all_o man_n that_o honour_n god_n more_o holy_a than_o other_o day_n downham_n in_o praec_fw-la 4._o refer_v they_o to_o the_o four_o commandment_n and_o will_v have_v they_o consecrate_v as_o sabbath_n to_o the_o lord_n bishop_n andrews_n in_o his_o holiday_n sermon_n on_o luke_n 4.18_o on_o matth._n 12.39_o 40._o apud_fw-la gillesp_n eng._n pop._n cerem_fw-la part_n 3._o cap._n 1._o pag._n 15._o have_v find_v out_o many_o profound_a mystery_n in_o they_o yea_o in_o the_o very_a order_n of_o they_o and_o distance_n of_o time_n between_o they_o as_o there_o be_v fifty_o day_n between_o easter_n and_o pentecost_n because_o fifty_o be_v the_o number_n of_o the_o jubilee_n one_o day_n between_o easter_n and_o the_o resurrection_n because_o ionas_n be_v but_o one_o day_n in_o the_o whale_n belly_n with_o many_o other_o pretty_a tale_n which_o be_v not_o worth_a transcribe_v and_o the_o thing_n itself_o speak_v for_o why_o do_v they_o call_v they_o holy_a day_n if_o they_o put_v no_o holiness_n in_o they_o nay_o why_o do_v they_o prefer_v they_o above_o the_o sabbath_n of_o god_n 2._o sometime_o they_o labour_v to_o escape_v in_o the_o mist_n of_o blind_a distinction_n so_o when_o bishop_n lindsey_n perth_n ass_n part_n 3._o pag._n 28._o say_v that_o the_o holy_a day_n be_v not_o consecrate_v to_o holy_a mystical_a use_n but_o to_o holy_a political_a use_n wherein_o as_o mr._n gillespy_n eng._n pop._n cer._n part_n 3._o cap._n 1._o pag._n 7._o well_o observe_v he_o do_v but_o labour_n to_o plaster_n over_o his_o superstition_n with_o the_o untempered_a mortar_n of_o this_o quidditative_a distinction_n and_o uncouth_a speculation_n of_o which_o i_o dare_v say_v the_o bishop_n himself_o comprehend_v it_o not_o 3._o sometime_o they_o say_v god_n have_v sanctify_v they_o by_o the_o great_a work_n he_o have_v do_v upon_o they_o thus_o bellarmine_n the_o cult_a sanct._n lib._n 3._o cap._n 10._o christus_fw-la nascens_fw-la consecravit_fw-la locum_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la praesepe_v moriens_fw-la consecravit_fw-la crucem_fw-la resurgens_fw-la consecravit_fw-la tuntulum_fw-la unde_fw-la exivit_fw-la cur_n non_fw-fr etiam_fw-la consecravit_fw-la tempus_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la dies_fw-la illos_fw-la quibus_fw-la natus_fw-la vel_fw-la passus_fw-la vel_fw-la rediturus_fw-la fuit_fw-la nobis_fw-la devictâ_fw-la morte_fw-la which_o his_o disciple_n rich._n hooker_n a_o most_o papistical_a writer_n borrow_v from_o he_o and_o thus_o express_v it_o eccl._n pol._n lib._n 5._o §_o 69._o p._n 375._o no_o doubt_n as_o god_n extraordinary_a presence_n have_v hallow_v and_o sanctify_a certain_a place_n so_o they_o be_v his_o extraordinary_a work_n that_o have_v true_o and_o worthy_o advance_v certain_a time_n for_o which_o cause_n they_o ought_v to_o be_v with_o all_o man_n that_o honour_n god_n more_o holy_a than_o other_o day_n thus_o he_o but_o it_o be_v not_o mere_o the_o extraordinary_a work_n of_o god_n that_o will_v sanctify_v a_o day_n for_o then_o all_o the_o six_o day_n of_o the_o week_n shall_v be_v holy_a for_o god_n create_v the_o world_n in_o six_o day_n so_o that_o there_o be_v not_o one_o day_n of_o the_o week_n wherein_o there_o be_v not_o some_o work_n of_o wonder_n wrought_v it_o be_v rather_o the_o lord_n rest_v from_o his_o work_n than_o his_o work_n that_o sanctifi_v time_n and_o make_v it_o holy_a as_o gen._n 2.2_o 3._o exod_n 20.11_o upon_o this_o ground_n the_o seven_o day_n be_v sanctify_v in_o old_a time_n because_o on_o that_o day_n god_n rest_v from_o the_o work_n of_o creation_n and_o upon_o the_o same_o ground_n the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n be_v the_o rest-day_n of_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n from_o the_o great_a work_n of_o redemption_n his_o
former_a rest_n be_v disturb_v and_o spoil_v by_o the_o fall_n and_o sin_n of_o man_n be_v our_o christian_a sabbath_n but_o these_o popish_a holy_a day_n be_v not_o the_o lord_n rest_v day_n nor_o be_v any_o such_o thing_n pretend_v 4._o they_o common_o put_v it_o upon_o the_o church_n and_o say_v the_o church_n have_v set_v apart_o these_o time_n but_o this_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o make_v they_o holy_a for_o all_o that_o the_o church_n can_v do_v towards_o the_o sanctify_a of_o any_o time_n or_o thing_n be_v only_o to_o present_v it_o and_o offer_v it_o to_o the_o lord_n but_o if_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o accept_v they_o but_o refuse_v such_o present_n and_o cast_v they_o down_o as_o dung_n in_o their_o face_n they_o be_v not_o holiness_n to_o the_o lord_n but_o a_o abomination_n to_o he_o as_o suppose_v the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n have_v offer_v swine_n flesh_n unto_o god_n will_v this_o have_v make_v swine_n flesh_n holy_a no_o very_o because_o the_o lord_n not_o do_v not_o accept_v it_o so_o here_o the_o church_n dedicate_v these_o day_n to_o the_o lord_n but_o there_o must_v be_v some_o word_n of_o god_n to_o evidence_n his_o acceptance_n of_o they_o or_o else_o they_o be_v not_o indeed_o holy_a time_n but_o superstitious_a time_n of_o which_o the_o lord_n will_v say_v at_o the_o great_a day_n who_o require_v these_o thing_n at_o your_o hand_n whatsoever_o be_v not_o of_o faith_n be_v sin_n isai_n 1.12_o rom._n 14.23_o reason_n 2._o there_o be_v not_o only_o no_o warrant_n in_o the_o scripture_n for_o they_o but_o clear_a and_o sharp_a reproof_n and_o testimony_n against_o they_o it_o be_v one_o part_n of_o the_o superstition_n of_o the_o pharisee_n in_o our_o saviour_n time_n to_o fast_o twice_o a_o week_n luke_n 18.12_o those_o old_a papist_n the_o pharisee_n and_o our_o new_a pharisees_n the_o papist_n be_v man_n of_o the_o same_o spirit_n and_o act_v by_o the_o same_o principle_n and_o walk_v in_o the_o same_o way_n of_o superstition_n and_o it_o be_v the_o brand_n set_v upon_o jeroboam_n 1_o king_n 12.33_o that_o he_o ordain_v a_o feast_n unto_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n upon_o the_o fifteen_o day_n of_o the_o eight_o month_n even_o the_o month_n which_o he_o have_v devise_v of_o his_o own_o heart_n which_o he_o have_v lie_v or_o feign_v as_o the_o word_n signify_v asher_n bada_fw-es millibbo_fw-la quem_fw-la mentitus_fw-la est_fw-la de_fw-fr cord_n svo_fw-la and_o though_o it_o be_v like_a unto_o the_o feast_n that_o be_v in_o judah_n v._o 32._o and_o though_o he_o pretend_v the_o glory_n and_o worship_n of_o that_o god_n that_o bring_v they_o up_o out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n as_o well_o as_o the_o ease_n and_o accommodation_n of_o the_o people_n v._o 28._o yet_o all_o this_o will_v not_o excuse_v he_o and_o what_o be_v christmas_n and_o easter_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o they_o but_o day_n which_o the_o jeroboam_n of_o rome_n have_v devise_v of_o his_o own_o heart_n and_o the_o pope_n have_v they_o from_o the_o jew_n and_o from_o the_o pagan_n for_o what_o be_v christmas_n but_o the_o old_a heathenish_a bacchanalia_fw-la it_o be_v keep_v at_o the_o same_o time_n of_o the_o year_n and_o after_o the_o same_o profane_a manner_n only_o the_o pope_n have_v varnish_v it_o with_o a_o new_a name_n but_o how_o ill_o it_o become_v a_o christian_n to_o keep_v the_o pagan_a festival_n hear_v what_o tertullian_n the_o idol_n cap._n 14._o say_v nobis_fw-la say_v he_o quibus_fw-la sabbata_n extranea_fw-la sunt_fw-la &_o neomenia_fw-la &_o feriae_fw-la aliquando_fw-la à_fw-la deo_fw-la dilectae_fw-la saturnalia_fw-la &_o januariae_fw-la &_o brumae_fw-la &_o matronales_fw-la frequentantur_fw-la munera_fw-la commeant_fw-la strenae_fw-la consonant_n lusus_fw-la convivia_fw-la constrepunt_fw-la and_o be_v not_o this_o as_o lively_a a_o description_n of_o christmas_n as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v purposely_o intend_v for_o it_o but_o thus_o he_o inveigh_v against_o they_o o_o melior_fw-la fides_fw-la nationum_fw-la in_o svam_fw-la sectam_fw-la quae_fw-la nullam_fw-la solennitatem_fw-la christianorum_fw-la sibi_fw-la vendicat_fw-la non_fw-la dominicum_fw-la diem_fw-la non_fw-la pentecosten_n etiam_fw-la si_fw-la nossent_fw-la nobiscum_fw-la non_fw-la communicâssent_fw-la timerent_fw-la enim_fw-la ne_fw-la christiani_n viderentur_fw-la nos_fw-la ne_fw-la ethnici_fw-la pronunciemur_fw-la non_fw-la veremur_fw-la we_o that_o do_v not_o own_v nor_o observe_v the_o new_a moon_n and_o other_o jewish_a festival_n appoint_v of_o old_a by_o god_n himself_o do_v we_o keep_v the_o heathenish_a bacchanalia_fw-la and_o other_o winter_n and_o summer_n feast_n of_o they_o feast_v and_o revel_v and_o make_v merry_a as_o the_o heathen_n do_v o_o how_o much_o more_o true_a be_v they_o to_o their_o religion_n than_o we_o to_o we_o for_o they_o do_v not_o observe_v any_o day_n that_o christian_n observe_v as_o pentecost_n or_o the_o lord_n day_n for_o they_o will_v be_v afraid_a lest_o they_o shall_v seem_v to_o be_v christian_n in_o so_o do_v but_o we_o be_v not_o afraid_a lest_o we_o be_v pronounce_v to_o be_v heathen_n thus_o he_o it_o be_v true_a he_o allow_v pentecost_n as_o a_o feast_n observe_v by_o christian_n in_o those_o time_n but_o how_o this_o can_v be_v defend_v and_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o jewish_a feast_n cashier_v let_v the_o christian_a reader_n judge_n the_o apostle_n make_v no_o difference_n but_o condemn_v the_o observation_n of_o all_o the_o jewish_a festival_n alike_o one_o as_o much_o another_o col._n 2.16_o let_v no_o man_n judge_v you_o in_o meat_n or_o drink_n or_o in_o respect_n of_o a_o holy_a day_n or_o of_o the_o new_a moon_n or_o of_o the_o sabbath_n which_o be_v a_o shadow_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v judicare_fw-la hic_fw-la significat_fw-la culpae_fw-la reum_fw-la facere_fw-la vel_fw-la religionem_fw-la injicere_fw-la ita_fw-la ut_fw-la amplius_fw-la liberi_fw-la non_fw-la simus_fw-la say_v calvin_n in_o col._n 2.16_o such_o weak_a and_o rudimentary_a instruction_n be_v fit_a for_o those_o dark_a and_o weak_a time_n of_o the_o church_n nonage_n when_o under_o the_o tutorage_n and_o pedagogy_n of_o moses_n before_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n but_o now_o after_o that_o you_o have_v know_v god_n or_o rather_o be_v know_v of_o god_n how_o turn_v you_o back_o to_o the_o weak_a and_o beggarly_a element_n whereunto_o you_o desire_v again_o to_o be_v in_o bondage_n you_o observe_v day_n and_o month_n and_o time_n and_o year_n i_o be_o afraid_a of_o you_o lest_o i_o have_v bestow_v upon_o you_o labour_n in_o vain_a gal._n 4.9_o 10_o 11._o it_o be_v a_o sign_n the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v have_v but_o small_a success_n in_o such_o a_o place_n and_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o such_o a_o people_n and_o whereas_o it_o be_v object_v both_o by_o papist_n and_o prelate_n that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v here_o only_o against_o the_o jewish_a festival_n loqui_fw-la ibi_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la de_fw-la judaeorum_fw-la tantum_fw-la festis_fw-la so_o bellarmine_n de_fw-fr cultu_fw-la sanct._n c._n 10._o the_o rhemist_n annot._v in_o gal._n 4.10_o and_o bishop_n lindsey_n perth_n ass_n part_n 3._o pag._n 43._o this_o will_v not_o take_v off_o the_o force_n of_o these_o text_n for_o 1._o the_o armoury_n of_o christian_n against_o heresy_n and_o error_n shall_v be_v quick_o empty_a i●_n the_o weapon_n which_o be_v hang_v up_o in_o the_o scripture_n shall_v serve_v only_o for_o the_o person_n place_n and_o time_n wherein_o and_o against_o which_o they_o be_v use_v of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n and_o therefore_o your_o shift_n that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v only_o against_o the_o jewish_a feast_n and_o fast_n be_v vain_a say_v mr._n cartwright_n in_o col._n 2.16_o 2._o some_o of_o the_o popish_a feast_n be_v original_o jewish_n yea_o which_o be_v worse_o paganish_v 3._o these_o text_n do_v condemn_v the_o popish_a feast_n as_o much_o and_o in_o some_o respect_v more_o than_o the_o jewish_a as_o hospinian_n observe_v against_o bellarmine_n and_o mr._n cartwright_n in_o gal._n 4.10_o and_o in_o rom._n 14.5_o give_v the_o same_o answer_n to_o the_o rhemist_n if_o paul_n say_v he_o condemn_v the_o galatian_n for_o observe_v the_o feast_n which_o god_n himself_o institute_v and_o that_o for_o his_o own_o honour_n only_o and_o not_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o any_o creature_n the_o papist_n be_v much_o more_o lay_v open_a to_o this_o condemnation_n which_o press_v the_o observation_n of_o feast_n of_o man_n devise_v and_o to_o the_o honour_n of_o men._n for_o do_v you_o think_v it_o likely_a that_o god_n shall_v by_o christ_n discharge_v his_o people_n of_o the_o yoke_n of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n to_o bring_v in_o another_o yoke_n of_o man_n ordinance_n and_o be_v there_o any_o likelihood_n that_o he_o shall_v abrogate_v the_o festival_n day_n consecrate_v to_o himself_o and_o to_o his_o own_o majesty_n to_o bring_v in_o those_o that_o be_v consecrate_v and_o set_v apart_o to_o
the_o honour_n of_o saint_n and_o that_o the_o lord_n shall_v ease_v his_o people_n of_o the_o burden_n of_o a_o few_o festival_n day_n to_o lay_v upon_o they_o a_o heavy_a burden_n by_o a_o great_a number_n of_o they_o so_o that_o we_o see_v the_o scripture_n do_v abundant_o and_o clear_o condemn_v and_o testify_v against_o these_o superstitious_a observation_n of_o day_n and_o time_n reason_n 3._o consider_v further_o the_o deep_a dishonour_n that_o be_v do_v to_o god_n by_o these_o day_n every_o manner_n of_o way_n the_o common_a pretence_n be_v that_o they_o do_v it_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o christ_n but_o it_o be_v not_o good_a intention_n that_o will_v excuse_v bad_a action_n jeroboam_n pretend_v very_o good_a intention_n 1_o king_n 12.28_o so_o do_v they_o in_o exod._n 32.5_o they_o proclaim_v a_o holy_a day_n to_o jehovah_n though_o they_o keep_v it_o in_o a_o rude_a manner_n but_o what_o say_v the_o lord_n to_o they_o even_o after_o all_o the_o prayer_n of_o moses_n for_o they_o ver_fw-la 34._o in_o the_o day_n when_o i_o visit_v i_o will_v visit_v their_o sin_n upon_o they_o he_o will_v not_o regard_v their_o vain_a pretence_n for_o the_o truth_n be_v these_o day_n be_v celebrate_v rather_o in_o dishonour_n and_o as_o it_o be_v in_o despite_n of_o christ_n then_o for_o any_o glory_n to_o he_o for_o 1._o they_o be_v a_o dishonour_n to_o his_o holiness_n as_o if_o christ_n be_v a_o god_n that_o delight_v in_o profaneness_n and_o wickedness_n for_o he_o be_v dishonour_v as_o some_o have_v well_o observe_v by_o let_v the_o reins_o lose_v to_o all_o manner_n of_o profaneness_n as_o much_o in_o the_o twelve_o day_n and_o in_o some_o respect_v more_o then_o in_o all_o the_o twelve_o month_n of_o the_o year_n beside_o hence_o mr._n perkins_n most_o true_o and_o just_o complain_v that_o the_o feast_n of_o christ_n nativity_n common_o so_o call_v be_v not_o spend_v in_o praise_v the_o name_n of_o god_n but_o in_o revel_v dice_a card_v 〈◊〉_d mum_a and_o in_o all_o licentious_a liberty_n for_o the_o most_o part_n as_o 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v some_o heathen_a feast_n of_o ceres_n or_o bacchus_n perk_fw-mi 〈…〉_o creed_n art_n of_o christ_n birth_n apud_fw-la gillesp_n engl._n pop._n cerem_fw-la p._n 〈…〉_o cap._n 9_o page_n 48._o 2._o it_o be_v a_o unspeakable_a dishonovour_n to_o his_o bless_a sabbath_n for_o man_n to_o set_v their_o day_n by_o his_o day_n their_o post_n by_o his_o post_n their_o altar_n by_o his_o altar_n as_o jeroboam_n devise_v a_o feast_n of_o his_o own_o heart_n like_v unto_o the_o feast_n that_o be_v in_o judah_n 1_o king_n 12.32_o yea_o as_o dr._n ames_n observe_v they_o be_v from_o their_o first_o use_v not_o only_o equal_v unto_o but_o extol_v above_o the_o lord_n day_n fresh_a suit_n part_v 2._o p._n 84._o those_o prelate_n say_v mr._n gillespy_n that_o will_v not_o abase_v themselves_o to_o preach_v upon_o ordinary_a sabbath_n think_v the_o high_a holy_a day_n worthy_a of_o their_o sermon_n engl._n pop._n cerem_fw-la part_n 3._o cap._n 1_o pag._n 13._o yea_o they_o can_v write_v book_n against_o the_o sabbath_n as_o heylin_n white_a pocklinton_n and_o other_o have_v do_v to_o pluck_v away_o that_o crown_n of_o glory_n and_o preeminence_n which_o god_n have_v set_v upon_o that_o day_n which_o he_o have_v choose_v and_o they_o set_v up_o their_o own_o devise_a day_n in_o stead_n thereof_o common_a experience_n prove_v say_v reverend_a mr._n dod_n on_o the_o second_o commandment_n p._n 68_o that_o all_o they_o which_o stand_v most_o for_o superstitious_a holy_a day_n be_v great_a profaner_n of_o the_o lord_n sabbath_n and_o contemner_n of_o his_o word_n 3._o they_o do_v dishonour_v the_o wisdom_n and_o word_n of_o christ_n for_o christ_n the_o lord_n of_o time_n and_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o sabbath_n have_v sanctify_v and_o institute_v the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n whereon_o he_o arise_v from_o the_o dead_a for_o the_o commemoration_n of_o the_o great_a work_n of_o our_o redemption_n by_o he_o and_o what_o can_v the_o man_n do_v that_o come_v after_o the_o king_n and_o in_o those_o thing_n that_o have_v be_v already_o do_v as_o eccles_n 2.12_o it_o be_v a_o bold_a and_o deep_a reflection_n upon_o the_o wisdom_n of_o christ_n to_o add_v thus_o to_o his_o appointment_n as_o if_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n himself_o be_v not_o wise_a enough_o to_o appoint_v day_n and_o time_n sufficient_a to_o keep_v his_o own_o nativity_n death_n resurrection_n ascension_n and_o all_o the_o great_a thing_n he_o have_v do_v for_o we_o in_o everlasting_a remembrance_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o saint_n but_o the_o devil_n and_o the_o pope_n must_v help_v it_o out_o it_o be_v therefore_o in_o plain_a term_n a_o profane_a speech_n of_o dr._n hammond_n that_o when_o the_o festival_n be_v turn_v out_o of_o the_o church_n it_o will_v not_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o weekly_a sermon_n on_o some_o head_n of_o religion_n to_o keep_v up_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n in_o man_n heart_n view_v of_o direct_n and_o vindic._n of_o liturg._n pag._n 31._o what_o be_v not_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n powerful_a to_o attain_v his_o own_o bless_a end_n unless_o they_o be_v piece_v out_o with_o the_o addition_n of_o man_n invention_n sure_o there_o be_v no_o christian_n that_o have_v find_v the_o experience_n of_o the_o save_a power_n and_o blessing_n of_o god_n ordinance_n to_o his_o own_o soul_n but_o will_v detest_v and_o abhor_v to_o entertain_v such_o base_a and_o vile_a thought_n of_o they_o unless_o he_o have_v forget_v that_o he_o be_v purge_v by_o they_o from_o his_o old_a sin_n 4._o these_o superstitious_a holy_a day_n introduce_v and_o bring_v in_o many_o other_o corruption_n along_o with_o they_o as_o bad_a or_o worse_o than_o themselves_o like_o the_o unclean_a spirit_n with_o seven_o devil_n more_o sundry_a whereof_o be_v thus_o express_v by_o dr._n ames_n fresh_a suit_n against_o cerem_fw-la part_n 2._o pag._n 84._o they_o be_v say_v he_o from_o their_o first_o rise_v not_o only_o equal_v unto_o but_o also_o extol_v above_o the_o lord_n day_n easter_n bring_v in_o a_o superstitious_a lent_n to_o attend_v upon_o it_o make_v baptism_n wait_v for_o her_o moon_n and_o conform_v our_o lord_n supper_n to_o the_o jewish_a passover_n in_o unleavened_a bread_n it_o be_v the_o first_o apple_n of_o contention_n among_o christian_n the_o latin_a and_o greek_a church_n strive_v &_o contend_v fierce_o about_o the_o time_n of_o it_o and_o victor_n bp._n of_o rome_n desperate_o excommunicate_v those_o that_o be_v not_o of_o his_o opinion_n in_o this_o frivolous_a question_n so_o that_o it_o be_v the_o first_o weapon_n wherewith_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n play_v his_o prize_n against_o other_o church_n and_o after_o slay_v so_o many_o britain_n with_o by_o austin_n the_o monk_n holy_a day_n devise_v by_o man_n in_o honour_n of_o christ_n invite_v and_o draw_v on_o holy_a day_n to_o saint_n with_o many_o other_o mischief_n more_o than_o can_v be_v now_o number_v up_o and_o therefore_o upon_o all_o account_v god_n be_v dishonour_v by_o they_o and_o so_o much_o for_o that_o three_o reason_n reason_n 4._o the_o true_a yearly_a time_n for_o the_o celebration_n of_o these_o festival_n be_v not_o certain_o know_v but_o much_o dispute_v among_o chronologer_n and_o divine_n so_o that_o holiday-keeper_n can_v affirm_v that_o they_o do_v commemorate_fw-la opus_fw-la diei_fw-la in_o die_fw-la svo_fw-la the_o lord_n have_v hide_v it_o as_o he_o do_v the_o body_n of_o moses_n to_o prevent_v idolatry_n the_o fierce_a contention_n for_o the_o space_n of_o two_o hundred_o year_n or_o thereabouts_o between_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n about_o the_o time_n of_o celebrate_v easter_n be_v famous_a in_o ecclesiastical_a history_n the_o eastern_a church_n keep_v it_o on_o the_o fourteen_o day_n of_o the_o first_o month_n when_o the_o jew_n keep_v their_o passover_n from_o whence_o they_o be_v call_v quartodecimani_a but_o the_o western_a church_n keep_v it_o upon_o the_o christian_a sabbath_n in_o commemoration_n of_o christ_n resurrection_n who_o rise_v upon_o the_o first_o day_n and_o both_o side_n pretend_v apostolical_a tradition_n for_o their_o different_a practice_n the_o difference_n grow_v so_o hot_a that_o victor_n boshop_n of_o rome_n be_v full_a of_o the_o spirit_n of_o antichrist_n excommunicate_v all_o the_o asian_a church_n as_o be_v fourteener_n and_o as_o judaizer_n afterward_o constantine_n the_o great_a call_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a to_o compose_v these_o difference_n in_o the_o church_n who_o think_v it_o best_a to_o keep_v it_o upon_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n resurrection_n but_o they_o have_v do_v better_a if_o they_o have_v utter_o abolish_v it_o as_o the_o great_a reform_a parliament_n do_v in_o england_n but_o thus_o we_o see_v what_o a_o bone_n of_o contention_n
3._o the_o priest_n must_v be_v free_a from_o gross_a deformity_n and_o blemish_n though_o he_o be_v subject_a to_o common_a humane_a infirmity_n leu._n 21_o 17._o say_v unto_o aaron_n whosoever_o it_o be_v that_o have_v any_o blemish_n let_v he_o not_o approach_v to_o offer_v sacrifice_n for_o whatsoever_o man_n it_o be_v that_o have_v any_o blemish_n he_o shall_v not_o approach_v a_o blind_a or_o lame_a or_o broken-footed_n or_o broken-handed_n etc._n etc._n he_o shall_v not_o come_v to_o offer_v the_o offer_n of_o the_o lord_n make_v by_o fire_n he_o have_v a_o blemish_n he_o shall_v not_o come_v nigh_o to_o offer_v the_o bread_n of_o his_o god_n these_o natural_a infirmity_n which_o the_o priest_n under_o the_o law_n must_v be_v free_a from_o teach_v we_o the_o absolute_a freedom_n of_o jesus_n christ_n from_o moral_a infirmity_n there_o be_v no_o blemish_n no_o spot_n find_v in_o he_o he_o want_v no_o part_n no_o gift_n or_o sufficiency_n to_o discharge_v his_o whole_a office_n and_o function_n for_o such_o a_o high_a priest_n become_v we_o who_o be_v holy_a harmless_a undefiled_a separate_a from_o sinner_n and_o make_v high_a than_o the_o heaven_n heb._n 7.26_o as_o they_o be_v to_o be_v free_a from_o those_o natural_a blemish_n and_o defect_n so_o be_v jesus_n christ_n free_a from_o all_o sinful_a defect_n and_o blemish_n that_o be_v a_o three_o rule_n as_o to_o the_o qualification_n of_o the_o priest_n 4._o they_o must_v be_v call_v unto_o this_o office_n and_o must_v not_o intrude_v and_o thrust_v themselves_o into_o it_o the_o lord_n say_v unto_o moses_n take_v aaron_n and_o his_o son_n with_o he_o from_o among_o the_o people_n that_o they_o may_v minister_v unto_o i_o in_o the_o priest_n office_n exod._n 28.1_o the_o apostle_n apply_v this_o also_o to_o jesus_n christ_n heb._n 5.4_o 5._o he_o do_v not_o take_v this_o honour_n to_o himself_o as_o no_o man_n shall_v take_v the_o honour_n of_o the_o priesthood_n to_o himself_o but_o he_o that_o be_v call_v as_o be_v aaron_n so_o jesus_n christ_n be_v call_v of_o god_n the_o father_n to_o this_o office_n as_o the_o priest_n be_v by_o moses_n to_o their_o levitical_a ministry_n christ_n glorify_v not_o himself_o to_o be_v make_v high_a priest_n but_o he_o that_o say_v unto_o he_o thou_o be_v my_o son_n 5._o the_o priest_n must_v abstain_v from_o the_o use_n of_o wine_n and_o strong_a drink_n when_o he_o be_v to_o do_v the_o service_n of_o god_n in_o the_o sanctuary_n and_o to_o minister_v before_o the_o lord_n leu._n 10.9_o and_o the_o lord_n speak_v unto_o aaron_n say_v do_v not_o drink_v wine_n nor_o strong_a drink_n thou_o nor_o thy_o son_n with_o thou_o when_o you_o go_v into_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o congregation_n lest_o he_o die_v etc._n etc._n so_o it_o be_v say_v in_o ezek._n 44.21_o neither_o shall_v any_o priest_n drink_v wine_n when_o they_o enter_v into_o the_o inner_a court_n the_o end_n of_o this_o be_v that_o they_o may_v be_v sure_a to_o administer_v and_o execute_v their_o office_n aright_o lest_o they_o drink_v and_o forget_v the_o law_n prov._n 31.5_o lest_o they_o shall_v err_v through_o wine_n and_o be_v out_o of_o the_o way_n through_o strong_a drink_n and_o stumble_v in_o judgement_n isai_n 28.7_o whoredom_n and_o wine_n and_o new_a wine_n take_v away_o the_o heart_n hos_fw-la 4.11_o thus_o they_o be_v to_o abstain_v from_o the_o use_n of_o wine_n and_o strong_a drink_n this_o represent_v that_o undisturbed_a sobriety_n and_o wisdom_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o whole_a execution_n of_o his_o office_n as_o the_o great_a high_a priest_n of_o his_o church_n he_o be_v never_o forgetful_a of_o or_o unready_a for_o any_o part_n of_o his_o office_n but_o he_o have_v clearness_n of_o judgement_n and_o wisdom_n at_o all_o time_n so_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n there_o be_v a_o secondary_a application_n of_o these_o thing_n to_o they_o though_o first_o and_o chief_o it_o be_v apply_v to_o jesus_n christ_n himself_o whatsoever_o be_v set_v forth_o concern_v jesus_n christ_n do_v secondary_o point_v at_o minister_n and_o christian_n in_o who_o the_o grace_n and_o excellency_n of_o jesus_n christ_n appear_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n must_v be_v sober_a and_o not_o man_n give_v to_o wine_n 1_o tim._n 3.3_o a_o bishop_n must_v not_o be_v give_v to_o wine_n no_o striker_n or_o give_v to_o filthy_a lucre_n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o apostle_n require_v it_o also_o in_o other_o place_n that_o they_o shall_v take_v heed_n of_o that_o sin_n they_o must_v be_v sober_a and_o watchful_a in_o all_o thing_n 2_o tim._n 4.5_o but_o watch_v thou_o in_o all_o thing_n endure_v affliction_n do_v the_o work_n of_o a_o evangelist_n make_v full_a proof_n of_o thy_o ministry_n so_o all_o believer_n likewise_o for_o it_o belong_v likewise_o to_o they_o they_o shall_v be_v sober_a and_o watch_v to_o the_o discharge_n of_o their_o christian_a duty_n be_v you_o therefore_o sober_a 1_o tim._n 4.7_o and_o watch_v unto_o prayer_n 1_o pet._n 5.8_o be_v sober_a be_v vigilant_a because_o your_o adversary_n the_o devil_n as_o a_o roar_a lion_n walk_v about_o seek_v who_o he_o may_v devour_v it_o be_v a_o woeful_a thing_n and_o a_o shameful_a thing_n when_o minister_n be_v give_v to_o wine_n and_o strong_a drink_n these_o be_v not_o god_n minister_n these_o be_v such_o as_o do_v not_o correspond_v with_o the_o type_n and_o it_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n upon_o a_o people_n when_o he_o set_v up_o such_o minister_n among_o they_o mich._n 2.11_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v prophesy_v of_o wine_n or_o of_o strong_a drink_n he_o shall_v be_v the_o prophet_n to_o this_o people_n isai_n 56.10_o 11_o 12._o his_o watchman_n be_v blind_a they_o be_v ignorant_a etc._n etc._n come_v say_v they_o we_o will_v fetch_v wine_n and_o fill_v ourselves_o with_o strong_a drink_n and_o to_o morrow_n shall_v be_v as_o this_o day_n and_o much_o more_o abundant_o it_o be_v usual_o the_o prologue_n and_o introduction_n to_o great_a desolation_n or_o land-devouring_a judgement_n when_o they_o have_v priest_n that_o love_v wine_n and_o strong_a drink_n it_o bring_v land-devouring_a judgement_n and_o that_o be_v a_o five_o rule_n concern_v these_o levitical_a priest_n that_o they_o must_v abstain_v from_o wine_n and_o strong_a drink_n when_o they_o be_v to_o minister_v before_o the_o lord_n 6._o the_o priest_n may_v not_o marry_v a_o widow_n or_o a_o divorce_a woman_n or_o a_o harlot_n but_o a_o virgin_n of_o his_o people_n this_o be_v another_o peculiar_a observation_n require_v of_o man_n in_o that_o order_n under_o the_o law_n leu._n 21.13_o 14._o and_o he_o shall_v take_v a_o wife_n in_o her_o virginity_n a_o widow_n or_o a_o divorce_a woman_n or_o profane_a or_o a_o harlot_n these_o shall_v he_o not_o take_v but_o he_o shall_v take_v a_o virgin_n of_o his_o own_o people_n to_o wife_n etc._n etc._n the_o same_o thing_n be_v speak_v also_o in_o ezek._n 44.22_o neither_o shall_v they_o take_v to_o wife_n a_o widow_n etc._n etc._n what_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o this_o it_o can_v be_v a_o moral_a precept_n it_o be_v not_o unlawful_a for_o a_o minister_n to_o marry_v a_o widow_n therefore_o look_v at_o the_o high_a priest_n herein_o the_o spouse_n of_o jesus_n christ_n ought_v to_o be_v a_o virgin_n chaste_a and_o undefiled_a who_o first_o and_o best_a love_n be_v to_o be_v bestow_v on_o he_o 2_o cor._n 11.2_o i_o be_o jealous_a over_o you_o with_o godly_a jealousy_n for_o i_o have_v espouse_v you_o to_o one_o husband_n that_o i_o may_v present_v you_o as_o a_o chaste_a virgin_n to_o christ_n and_o in_o matth._n 25._o we_o find_v that_o professor_n in_o some_o respect_n they_o be_v all_o virgin_n though_o there_o be_v foolish_a virgin_n as_o well_o as_o wife_n but_o it_o be_v especial_o apply_v to_o the_o sincere_a to_o the_o wise_a virgin_n rev._n 14.4_o these_o be_v they_o that_o be_v not_o defile_v with_o woman_n for_o they_o be_v virgin_n these_o follow_v the_o lamb_n whithersoever_o he_o go_v purity_n and_o holiness_n be_v the_o property_n of_o true_a believer_n a_o entire_a dedication_n of_o themselves_o to_o jesus_n christ_n alone_o the_o virgin_n love_v thou_o cant._n 1.3_o 7._o the_o seven_o rule_n and_o observation_n about_o the_o priesthood_n be_v this_o that_o he_o be_v not_o to_o mourn_v for_o the_o dead_a no_o not_o for_o his_o father_n and_o mother_n nor_o to_o attend_v their_o funeral_n or_o to_o go_v out_o of_o the_o sanctuary_n to_o intermit_v his_o ministry_n leu._n 21.10_o 11_o 12._o and_o he_o that_o be_v the_o high_a priest_n among_o his_o brethren_n he_o shall_v not_o uncover_v his_o head_n nor_o rend_v his_o clothes_n neither_o shall_v he_o go_v in_o to_o any_o dead_a body_n nor_o defile_v himself_o for_o his_o father_n or_o for_o his_o
the_o urim_n and_o thummim_n in_o the_o breastplate_n the_o golden_a plate_n in_o the_o mitre_n and_o whereas_o there_o be_v two_o girdle_n the_o one_o of_o they_o be_v sometime_o omit_v they_o be_v both_o the_o same_o in_o use_n and_o signification_n i_o shall_v speak_v to_o they_o as_o they_o be_v set_v down_o in_o this_o 8_o of_o leviticus_n because_o there_o i_o find_v the_o most_o complete_a and_o explicit_a enumeration_n of_o they_o all_o particular_o and_o distinct_o and_o there_o be_v nine_o particular_n here_o enumerate_v 1._o the_o first_o be_v the_o embroider_a coat_n of_o fine_a linen_n of_o which_o exod._n 28._o ver_fw-la 39_o call_v the_o embroider_a coat_n it_o be_v not_o of_o plain_a linen_n as_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o priest_n but_o of_o linen_n curious_o wrought_v we_o translate_v it_o embroider_v or_o wrought_v diaper-like_a with_o chequer-work_n or_o some_o such_o adorn_v this_o embroider_a coat_n be_v a_o long_a linen_n garment_n it_o come_v down_o to_o his_o foot_n that_o which_o antichrist_n retain_v and_o use_v under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o surplice_n be_v take_v from_o hence_o if_o it_o have_v its_o rise_n from_o any_o thing_n in_o scripture_n though_o some_o think_v the_o original_n of_o it_o be_v from_o paganish_a superstition_n the_o egyptian_a priest_n use_v such_o a_o garment_n perhaps_o the_o devil_n bring_v it_o in_o among_o the_o egyptian_n in_o a_o devilish_a imitation_n of_o this_o institution_n of_o go_n however_o at_o best_a to_o fetch_v our_o surplice_n from_o hence_o be_v as_o foolish_a as_o if_o minister_n shall_v hang_v bell_n at_o their_o skirt_n because_o aaron_n do_v so_o person_n of_o eminent_a worth_n and_o excellency_n be_v wont_v of_o old_a to_o be_v clothe_v in_o fine_a linen_n as_o joseph_n upon_o his_o advancement_n gen._n 41.42_o pharaoh_n array_v he_o in_o vesture_n of_o fine_a linen_n christ_n appear_v in_o such_o a_o habit_n rev._n 1.13_o and_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o seven_o candlestick_n i_o see_v one_o like_a unto_o the_o son_n of_o man_n clothe_v with_o a_o garment_n down_o to_o the_o foot_n and_o gird_v about_o the_o pap_n with_o a_o golden_a girdle_n it_o be_v a_o evident_a allusion_n to_o the_o garment_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n he_o have_v a_o vision_n of_o jesus_n christ_n as_o the_o great_a high_a priest_n of_o his_o church_n walk_v in_o the_o sanctuary_n for_o there_o stand_v the_o golden_a candlestick_n and_o clothe_v and_o apparel_v in_o priestly_a attire_n the_o mystical_a signification_n of_o this_o garment_n be_v the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n not_o only_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o own_o person_n but_o also_o wherewith_o he_o clothe_v believer_n christ_n be_v in_o this_o and_o other_o place_n describe_v not_o so_o much_o in_o what_o he_o be_v absolute_o in_o himself_o but_o what_o he_o be_v relative_o to_o and_o for_o his_o people_n vid._n brightman_n on_o rev._n 1.13_o therefore_o the_o saint_n themselves_o be_v describe_v and_o present_v in_o the_o like_a habit_n rev._n 7.9_o 13_o 14_o these_o be_v they_o which_o come_v out_o of_o great_a tribulation_n and_o have_v wash_v their_o robe_n and_o make_v they_o white_a in_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb_n that_o be_v the_o impute_a righteousness_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v yet_o more_o express_o explain_v rev._n 19.8_o and_o to_o she_o be_v grant_v that_o she_o shall_v be_v array_v in_o fine_a linen_n clean_a and_o white_a for_o the_o fine_a linen_n be_v the_o righteousness_n of_o saint_n there_o be_v a_o twofold_a righteousness_n both_o which_o may_v be_v here_o include_v 1._o there_o be_v a_o righteousness_n inherent_a in_o christ_n and_o impute_v to_o believer_n this_o be_v the_o righteousness_n of_o justification_n 2._o there_o be_v a_o righteousness_n inherent_a in_o believer_n but_o derive_v from_o christ_n and_o this_o be_v the_o righteousness_n of_o sanctification_n some_o have_v call_v they_o the_o upper_a garment_n of_o justification_n and_o the_o inner_a garment_n of_o sanctification_n they_o be_v both_o mention_v psal_n 45.13_o the_o king_n daughter_n be_v all_o glorious_a within_o and_o ver_fw-la 14._o she_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o king_n in_o a_o garment_n of_o needlework_n the_o meaning_n be_v the_o upper_a garment_n of_o justification_n and_o the_o under_o garment_n of_o sanctification_n beleiver_n therefore_o who_o be_v spiritual_a priest_n they_o shall_v not_o clothe_v themselves_o with_o the_o filthy_a rag_n of_o their_o own_o righteousness_n nor_o with_o the_o rot_a garment_n of_o counterfeit_a grace_n as_o hypocrite_n and_o justiciaries_n do_v but_o get_v on_o this_o priestly_a attire_n seek_v it_o of_o christ_n rev_n 3.18_o it_o be_v promise_v rev._n 3.4_o 5._o your_o faith_n shall_v rejoice_v and_o triumph_v in_o it_o see_v isai_n 61.10_o 2._o a_o girdle_n exod._n 28._o ver_fw-la 39_o and_o thou_o shall_v make_v the_o girdle_n of_o needlework_n exod._n 39_o ver_fw-la 29._o and_o a_o girdle_n of_o fine_a twine_v linen_n and_o blue_a and_o purple_a and_o scarlet_a of_o needlework_n as_o the_o lord_n command_v moses_n so_o christ_n as_o the_o great_a high_a priest_n appeareth_z rev._n 1.13_o gird_v about_o the_o pap_n with_o a_o golden_a girdle_n and_o believer_n have_v a_o spiritual_a girdle_n ephes_n 6.14_o have_v your_o loin_n gird_v about_o with_o truth_n this_o legal_a shadow_n the_o popish_a priest_n retain_v and_o call_v it_o a_o canonical_a girdle_n the_o girdle_n import_v three_o thing_n 1._o truth_n 2._o strength_n 3._o readiness_n for_o action_n all_o both_o in_o christ_n and_o christian_n 1._o truth_n ephes_n 6.14_o truth_n shall_v sit_v close_o to_o the_o heart_n like_o a_o girdle_n about_o the_o body_n so_o christ_n isai_n 11.5_o righteousness_n shall_v be_v the_o girdle_n of_o his_o loin_n and_o faithfulness_n the_o girdle_n of_o his_o reins_o many_o professor_n when_o the_o truth_n come_v to_o be_v persecute_v they_o do_v not_o gird_v it_o close_o to_o they_o but_o their_o girdle_n hang_v loose_a about_o they_o they_o be_v not_o valiant_a for_o truth_n upon_o the_o earth_n jer._n 9.3_o 2._o strength_n isai_n 22.21_o i_o will_v clothe_v he_o with_o thy_o robe_n and_o strengthen_v he_o with_o thy_o girdle_n prov._n 31.17_o she_o gird_v her_o loin_n with_o strength_n therefore_o isai_n 5.27_o their_o girdle_n shall_v not_o be_v loose_v that_o be_v god_n will_v strengthen_v they_o to_o be_v the_o executioner_n of_o his_o wrath_n upon_o a_o sinful_a people_n none_o shall_v be_v weary_a or_o stumble_v among_o they_o none_o shall_v slumber_v nor_o sleep_n neither_o shall_v the_o girdle_n of_o their_o loin_n be_v loose_v it_o signify_v therefore_o the_o strength_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o believer_n through_o he_o they_o be_v weak_a in_o themselves_o but_o strong_a in_o christ_n be_v gird_v with_o his_o strength_n 3._o readiness_n for_o action_n and_o expedition_n and_o perseverance_n therein_o for_o they_o use_v long_a garment_n when_o they_o go_v about_o any_o business_n they_o be_v wont_a to_o gird_v they_o up_o under_o their_o girdle_n hence_o it_o be_v say_v of_o elijah_n 1_o king_n 18._o ult_n and_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v on_o elijah_n and_o he_o gird_v up_o his_o loin_n and_o run_v before_o ahab_n etc._n etc._n and_o therefore_o the_o angel_n say_v to_o peter_n gird_v thyself_o and_o bind_v on_o thy_o sandal_n act_n 12.8_o and_o follow_v i_o and_o the_o master_n say_v to_o his_o servant_n in_o the_o parable_n luke_n 17.8_o gird_v thyself_o and_o serve_v i_o christ_n be_v always_o in_o procinctu_fw-la gird_v about_o with_o his_o golden_a girdle_n as_o ready_a for_o the_o work_n of_o his_o office_n to_o serve_v his_o father_n and_o to_o defend_v and_o mediate_v for_o his_o church_n and_o people_n and_o so_o shall_v the_o saint_n luke_n 12.35_o let_v your_o loin_n be_v gird_v about_o and_o your_o lamp_n be_v light_v that_o be_v as_o servants_z ready_a to_o serve_v and_o wait_v upon_o their_o master_n as_o it_o follow_v ver_fw-la 36._o and_o you_o yourselves_o like_v unto_o man_n that_o wait_v for_o their_o lord_n be_v in_o a_o ready_a posture_n 1_o pet._n 1.13_o wherefore_o gird_v up_o the_o loin_n of_o your_o mind_n be_v sober_a and_o hope_v to_o the_o end_n as_o christ_n be_v so_o minister_n and_o christian_n shall_v be_v always_o in_o readiness_n to_o go_v about_o any_o business_n the_o lord_n call_v they_o to_o they_o shall_v have_v their_o girdle_n about_o they_o 3._o the_o robe_n call_v the_o robe_n of_o the_o ephod_n exod._n 28.31_o because_o it_o be_v gird_v with_o the_o ephod_n which_o be_v put_v next_o upon_o it_o so_o junius_n and_o ainsworth_n in_o loc_n this_o be_v make_v all_o of_o blue_a ver_fw-la 31._o it_o be_v not_o so_o long_o as_o the_o fine_a linen_n coat_n beforementioned_a for_o that_o come_v to_o the_o foot_n but_o this_o to_o the_o knee_n to_o the_o gar●ering_a place_n or_o thereabouts_o of_o the_o superstitious_a garment_n
exod._n 28.4.30_o so_o joh._n 9.39_o for_o judgement_n be_o i_o come_v into_o this_o world_n that_o they_o that_o see_v not_o may_v see_v this_o be_v no_o act_n of_o punishment_n but_o of_o mercy_n yet_o call_v judgement_n so_o it_o be_v prophesy_v of_o christ_n isai_n 42.3_o 4._o that_o he_o shall_v bring_v forth_o judgement_n unto_o truth_n and_o shall_v not_o fail_v nor_o be_v discourage_v till_o he_o have_v set_v judgement_n in_o the_o earth_n that_o be_v he_o shall_v not_o faint_v nor_o be_v discourage_v till_o he_o have_v go_v through_o with_o the_o work_n of_o their_o salvation_n and_o set_v in_o order_n all_o the_o concernment_n of_o it_o that_o wise_a and_o prudent_a and_o judicious_a administration_n of_o thing_n by_o jesus_n christ_n whereby_o he_o rectify_v repair_v and_o set_v in_o good_a order_n the_o confuse_a and_o collapse_a estate_n of_o his_o church_n and_o people_n insomuch_o that_o all_o the_o concernment_n of_o their_o eternal_a good_a be_v set_v straight_o bring_v to_o their_o best_a constitution_n and_o carry_v on_o in_o a_o most_o exact_a and_o regular_a manner_n with_o admirable_a and_o infinite_a wisdom_n that_o as_o they_o mark_v 7._o ult_n be_v beyond_o measure_n astonish_v and_o they_o say_v he_o have_v do_v all_o thing_n well_o so_o shall_v all_o the_o saint_n say_v when_o they_o understand_v and_o review_v the_o way_n that_o christ_n have_v walk_v in_o for_o their_o salvation_n aaron_z do_v here_o represent_v this_o typical_o in_o this_o pectorale_fw-la judicii_fw-la this_o breastplate_n of_o judgement_n but_o christ_n have_v perform_v and_o do_v it_o real_o and_o indeed_o to_o unfold_v the_o mystery_n of_o these_o thing_n a_o little_a more_o particular_o 1._o the_o precious_a stone_n with_o the_o name_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n signify_v all_o the_o saint_n the_o whole_a church_n and_o people_n of_o god_n israel_n be_v a_o typical_a people_n therefore_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n be_v call_v israel_n gal._n 6.16_o as_o many_o as_o walk_v according_a to_o this_o rule_n peace_n be_v on_o they_o and_o mercy_n and_o upon_o or_o even_o upon_o the_o israel_n of_o god_n hence_o the_o same_o apostle_n distinguish_v of_o outward_a jew_n and_o inward_a jew_n rom._n 2._o two_o last_o and_o christ_n call_v nathaniel_n a_o israelite_n indeed_o joh._n 1.47_o and_o the_o saint_n be_v fit_o represent_v by_o precious_a stone_n because_o they_o be_v indeed_o precious_a and_o excellent_a with_o a_o spiritual_a excellency_n and_o that_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n though_o despise_v of_o the_o world_n isai_n 43.4_o since_o thou_o be_v precious_a in_o my_o fight_n thou_o have_v be_v honourable_a and_o i_o have_v love_v thou_o therefore_o will_v i_o give_v man_n for_o thou_o and_o people_n for_o thy_o life_n psal_n 16.3_o the_o saint_n 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v on_o earth_n the_o excellent_a in_o who_o be_v all_o my_o delight_n lam._n 4.7_o her_o nazarite_n and_o that_o religious_a order_n be_v typical_a as_o you_o have_v former_o hear_v be_v pure_a than_o snow_n they_o be_v white_a than_o milk_n they_o be_v more_o ruddy_a in_o body_n than_o ruby_n their_o polish_n be_v of_o saphire_n as_o these_o precious_a stone_n in_o the_o breastplate_n be_v divers_a and_o various_a there_o be_v twelve_o of_o they_o yet_o all_o of_o they_o precious_a and_o excellent_a and_o useful_a so_o the_o saint_n be_v indoe_v with_o variety_n of_o gift_n and_o grace_n yet_o all_o useful_a and_o excellent_a and_o as_o these_o stone_n be_v set_v in_o exact_a and_o comely_a order_n in_o the_o breastplate_n of_o aaron_n so_o there_o be_v a_o insition_n of_o the_o saint_n into_o christ_n and_o a_o comely_a order_n among_o themselves_o 2._o look_v as_o the_o high_a priest_n do_v bear_v the_o name_n of_o the_o twelve_o tribe_n of_o israel_n in_o his_o breastplate_n for_o a_o memorial_n before_o the_o lord_n so_o do_v jesus_n christ_n bear_v the_o name_n and_o the_o concernment_n of_o his_o people_n upon_o his_o heart_n before_o the_o lord_n that_o be_v in_o dear_a love_n and_o heart-affection_n see_v exod._n 28.29_o as_o he_o bear_v they_o upon_o the_o shoulder_n of_o his_o power_n in_o the_o two_o onyx-stone_n upon_o the_o shoulder-piece_n of_o the_o ephod_n of_o which_o before_o so_o now_o here_o he_o bear_v they_o upon_o his_o heart_n in_o dear_a love_n and_o favour_n see_v isai_n 49.15_o 16._o therefore_o the_o church_n pray_v cant._n 8.6_o set_v i_o as_o a_o seal_n upon_o thy_o heart_n as_o a_o seal_n upon_o thou_o arm._n these_o stone_n be_v engrave_v like_o the_o ingraving_n of_o a_o seal_n or_o of_o a_o signer_n 3._o the_o fasten_n of_o this_o breastplate_n of_o love_n to_o the_o shoulder-piece_n of_o the_o ephod_n speak_v the_o inseparable_a conjunction_n of_o the_o love_n and_o power_n and_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o great_a work_n of_o our_o salvation_n for_o the_o ephod_n be_v a_o holy_a and_o glorious_a garment_n signify_v as_o the_o rest_n do_v the_o glorious_a righteousness_n of_o christ_n the_o true_a high_a priest_n as_o have_v be_v former_o show_v the_o shoulder_n be_v strong_a to_o support_v the_o pectoral_a betoken_v love_n therefore_o that_o the_o pectoral_a be_v fasten_v to_o the_o shoulder_n speak_v that_o love_n and_o power_n be_v unite_v together_o in_o jesus_n christ_n for_o our_o salvation_n and_o all_o this_o upon_o the_o ephod_n the_o garment_n of_o his_o glorious_a righteousness_n wherein_o he_o appear_v for_o we_o and_o bear_v our_o name_n for_o a_o memorial_n before_o the_o lord_n continual_o how_o shall_v faith_n triumph_v in_o this_o be_v not_o our_o high_a priest_n in_o the_o sanctuary_n be_v he_o not_o clothe_v with_o garment_n of_o salvation_n and_o righteousness_n and_o do_v he_o not_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o his_o people_n upon_o his_o shoulder_n and_o upon_o his_o breast_n before_o the_o lord_n thy_o particular_a concernment_n if_o thou_o be_v a_o believer_n be_v write_v upon_o his_o heart_n with_o the_o pen_n of_o a_o diamond_n in_o such_o last_a letter_n of_o love_a kindness_n as_o shall_v never_o be_v blot_v out_o 7._o the_o seven_o piece_n of_o these_o sacerdotal_a vestment_n be_v the_o urim_n and_o thummim_n of_o which_o the_o text_n say_v also_o he_o put_v in_o the_o breastplate_n the_o urim_n and_o thummim_n and_o exod._n 28.30_o and_o thou_o shall_v put_v in_o the_o breastplate_n of_o judgement_n the_o urim_n and_o the_o thummim_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v upon_o aaron_n heart_n etc._n etc._n there_o be_v more_o of_o difficulty_n and_o controversy_n upon_o this_o then_o upon_o any_o other_o piece_n of_o all_o the_o pontifical_a attire_n i_o shall_v speak_v but_o brief_o to_o it_o in_o these_o four_o head_n 1._o whether_o they_o be_v any_o new_a material_n in_o the_o holy_a garment_n 2._o what_o kind_n of_o material_n they_o be_v 3._o what_o be_v the_o end_n and_o use_v of_o they_o 4._o what_o gospel-mystery_n be_v aim_v at_o therein_o 1._o whether_o the_o vrim_fw-he and_o thummim_n be_v visible_a and_o external_a material_n in_o the_o holy_a garment_n yea_o or_o no._n for_o some_o think_v they_o be_v only_o a_o expression_n of_o the_o end_n and_o use_v of_o the_o breastplate_n and_o not_o another_o distinct_a piece_n of_o attire_n but_o there_o be_v these_o reason_n against_o this_o reas_n 1._o because_o the_o text_n seem_v to_o speak_v of_o they_o as_o material_n for_o it_o speak_v of_o they_o in_o the_o same_o course_n and_o tenor_n of_o speech_n as_o it_o do_v of_o other_o thing_n as_o here_o in_o the_o text_n for_o instance_n all_o the_o rest_n of_o these_o three_o verse_n be_v only_a enumeration_n of_o the_o holy_a vestment_n he_o put_v on_o the_o coat_n gird_v he_o with_o the_o girdle_n put_v on_o he_o the_o breastplate_n all_o this_o be_v external_a material_a thing_n therefore_o why_o not_o also_o the_o next_o clause_n and_o he_o put_v in_o the_o breastplate_n the_o urim_n and_o thummim_n reas_n 2._o because_o we_o have_v a_o intimation_n of_o the_o loss_n of_o they_o in_o the_o captivity_n of_o babylon_n ezra_n 2.63_o nehem._n 7.65_o if_o the_o urim_n and_o thummim_n have_v be_v no_o other_o material_a but_o the_o breastplate_n itself_o with_o the_o precious_a stone_n therein_o as_o some_o think_v they_o may_v have_v consult_v with_o god_n and_o receive_v answer_n from_o god_n by_o it_o as_o former_o for_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n be_v blessed_v of_o god_n to_o such_o as_o use_v they_o sincere_o for_o those_o end_n for_o which_o they_o be_v appoint_v therefore_o so_o will_v the_o breastplate_n have_v be_v for_o counsel_n and_o answer_n to_o they_o if_o that_o have_v be_v the_o ordinance_n appoint_v for_o that_o end_n for_o they_o do_v not_o want_v the_o breastplate_n for_o they_o may_v and_o ought_v to_o make_v that_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n in_o exod._n 28._o but_o they_o have_v not_o the_o urim_n
all_o this_o point_a they_o to_o and_o be_v most_o eminent_o fulfil_v in_o jesus_n christ_n the_o only_a true_a high_a priest_n in_o and_z by_o who_o alone_a god_n speak_v his_o mind_n and_o work_v his_o image_n in_o we_o in_o he_o be_v hide_v all_o the_o treasure_n of_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n col._n 2.3_o and_o he_o be_v holy_a and_o harmless_a and_o separate_a from_o sinner_n heb._n 7.26_o for_o such_o a_o high_a priest_n become_v we_o who_o be_v holy_a harmless_a undefiled_a separate_a from_o sinner_n he_o wear_v the_o true_a urim_n and_o thummim_v always_o upon_o his_o heart_n illumination_n and_o perfection_n light_n and_o grace_n in_o the_o high_a and_o we_o have_v nothing_o of_o either_o but_o what_o we_o have_v from_o he_o our_o light_n be_v from_o he_o 2_o cor._n 4.6_o matth._n 11.27_o our_o grace_n be_v from_o he_o joh._n 1.16_o of_o his_o fullness_n have_v we_o all_o receive_v grace_n for_o grace_n for_o the_o law_n be_v give_v by_o moses_n ver_fw-la 17._o these_o legal_a shadow_n of_o terror_n and_o darkness_n but_o grace_n and_o truth_n come_v by_o jesus_n christ_n grace_n instead_o of_o legal_a terror_n and_o rigour_n truth_n that_o be_v accomplishment_n and_o performance_n instead_o of_o shadow_n and_o promise_n come_v by_o jesus_n christ_n it_o follow_v ver_fw-la 18._o no_o man_n have_v see_v god_n at_o any_o time_n that_o be_v by_o any_o light_n or_o grace_n or_o power_n of_o his_o own_o but_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n which_o be_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n he_o have_v declare_v he_o the_o true_a urim_n and_o thummim_n be_v in_o the_o pectoral_a of_o jesus_n christ_n all_o our_o illumination_n and_o perfection_n be_v in_o he_o 4._o whereas_o this_o vrim_fw-he and_o thummim_n be_v lose_v in_o the_o captivity_n in_o babylon_n and_o want_v in_o the_o second_o temple_n ezra_n 2.63_o nehem_n 7.65_o they_o want_v this_o as_o they_o do_v some_o other_o vessel_n and_o monument_n as_o the_o golden_a pot_n of_o manna_n aaron_n rod_n that_o bud_v some_o think_v also_o the_o ark_n and_o the_o two_o table_n of_o stone_n be_v want_v in_o the_o second_o temple_n but_o as_o to_o the_o urim_n and_o thummim_v those_o text_n seem_v clear_a for_o it_o nor_o have_v they_o the_o cloud_n of_o glory_n as_o in_o the_o tabernacle_n and_o in_o the_o first_o temple_n or_o fire_n from_o heaven_n the_o end_n of_o all_o this_o dispensation_n be_v to_o teach_v they_o to_o look_v and_o long_a the_o more_o earnest_o after_o jesus_n christ_n the_o true_a spiritual_a glory_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o church_n of_o god_n who_o come_v be_v now_o approach_v and_o draw_v on_o apace_o these_o abatement_n of_o that_o former_a outward_a glory_n be_v preparation_n for_o more_o spiritual_a dispensation_n under_o the_o gospel_n wherein_o those_o outward_a glory_n be_v not_o to_o be_v expect_v and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n they_o have_v the_o law_n of_o moses_n and_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o they_o be_v to_o cleave_v and_o stick_v close_o unto_o mal._n 4.4_o but_o when_o christ_n come_v he_o restore_v to_o his_o church_n in_o a_o more_o glorious_a manner_n the_o true_a urim_n and_o thummim_v light_n and_o grace_n be_v pour_v forth_o abundant_o even_o upon_o such_o who_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o long_a intermission_n of_o those_o extraordinary_a operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o hear_v whether_o there_o be_v a_o holy_a ghost_n or_o no._n act_n 19.2_o 6._o the_o jewish_a writer_n have_v a_o say_n and_o a_o tradition_n among_o they_o that_o after_o the_o latter_a prophet_n haggai_n zechariah_n and_o malachy_n the_o holy_a ghost_n go_v up_o and_o depart_v from_o israel_n they_o mean_v in_o those_o extraordinary_a operation_n of_o it_o and_o they_o reckon_v vrim_fw-he and_o thummim_a as_o one_o of_o the_o degree_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n inferior_a to_o the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n but_o superior_a to_o that_o bath-qol_a as_o they_o call_v it_o the_o daughter_n of_o a_o voice_n or_o a_o echo_n from_o heaven_n which_o be_v hear_v sometime_o in_o the_o second_o temple_n and_o which_o they_o say_v take_v place_n in_o the_o second_o temple_n when_o prophecy_n and_o urim_n cease_v we_o read_v of_o such_o voice_n from_o heaven_n to_o jesus_n christ_n matth._n 3.17_o joh_n 12.28_o 29._o 2_o pet._n 1.17_o 18._o and_o he_o add_v in_o the_o next_o verse_n we_o have_v a_o more_o sure_a word_n of_o prophecy_n this_o bath-qol_a or_o voice_n from_o heaven_n it_o be_v a_o prologue_n and_o a_o preface_n and_o type_n as_o it_o be_v of_o that_o true_a voice_n of_o the_o father_n the_o eternal_a word_n of_o god_n jesus_n christ_n who_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n by_o who_o god_n have_v in_o these_o last_o day_n speak_v to_o we_o who_o at_o sundry_a time_n and_o in_o divers_a manner_n speak_v in_o former_a time_n unto_o the_o father_n but_o now_o only_o by_o his_o son_n heb._n 1.1_o 2._o 8._o the_o eight_o piece_n of_o the_o holy_a pontifical_a attire_n be_v the_o mitre_n of_o which_o the_o text_n say_v and_o he_o put_v the_o mitre_n upon_o his_o head_n and_o it_o be_v say_v exod._n 28.39_o thou_o shall_v make_v the_o mitre_n of_o fine_a linen_n this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o last_o garment_n that_o be_v put_v on_o therefore_o zechariah_n desire_v this_o in_o the_o clothing_n of_o jehoshuah_n as_o the_o perfect_a of_o the_o mercy_n zech._n 3.5_o and_o i_o say_v let_v they_o set_v a_o fair_a mitre_n upon_o his_o head_n so_o they_o set_v a_o fair_a mitre_n upon_o his_o head_n as_o to_o the_o shape_n and_o fashion_n of_o this_o garment_n it_o be_v not_o unlike_a that_o which_o the_o other_o priest_n wear_v and_o be_v call_v a_o bonnet_n it_o be_v make_v of_o linnen-cloth_n wrap_v about_o the_o head_n in_o a_o round_a and_o high-crowned_n fashion_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o east_n some_o compare_v it_o to_o the_o turkish_a turban_n or_o tullibant_n some_o translate_v it_o a_o hat_n as_o to_o the_o outward_a form_n and_o inward_a mystery_n of_o it_o there_o be_v little_a difficulty_n for_o a_o mitre_n or_o a_o hat_n upon_o the_o head_n be_v a_o ornament_n of_o authority_n and_o superiority_n over_o other_o ezek._n 21.26_o remove_v the_o diadem_n job_n 29.14_o my_o judgement_n be_v as_o a_o diadem_n in_o which_o place_n be_v radical_o the_o same_o word_n as_o here_o in_o exod._n 28._o the_o mitre_n therefore_o be_v a_o ornament_n and_o ensign_n of_o illustrious_a sacred_a eminency_n and_o superiority_n in_o the_o high_a priest_n over_o other_o it_o point_v we_o to_o the_o princely_a dignity_n and_o kingly_a office_n of_o jesus_n christ_n he_o be_v the_o great_a high_a priest_n and_o indeed_o both_o priest_n and_o king_n of_o his_o church_n the_o true_a archbishop_n the_o chief_a shepherd_n as_o peter_n call_v he_o 1_o pet._n 5.4_o believer_n be_v call_v a_o royal_a priesthood_n 1_o pet._n 2.9_o but_o christ_n be_v so_o much_o more_o he_o be_v not_o only_o a_o priest_n but_o a_o prince_n and_o a_o prevailer_n with_o the_o lord_n on_o our_o behalf_n 9_o the_o nine_o and_o last_o piece_n of_o the_o holy_a priestly_a attire_n be_v the_o golden_a plate_n of_o which_o the_o text_n say_v also_o upon_o the_o mitre_n even_o upon_o his_o forefront_n do_v he_o put_v the_o golden_a plate_n the_o holy_a crown_n it_o be_v call_v exod._n 39.30_o the_o plate_n of_o the_o holy_a crown_n so_o call_v for_o that_o it_o be_v make_v say_v some_o somewhat_o like_o a_o crown_n compare_v exod._n 29.6_o the_o use_n and_o nature_n of_o it_o be_v describe_v full_o in_o exod._n 28.36_o 37_o 38._o the_o inscription_n quodesh_fw-mi la_fw-fr jehovah_n may_v be_v render_v more_o emphatical_o the_o holiness_n of_o jehovah_n it_o speak_v three_o thing_n 1._o the_o royal_a yea_o the_o divine_a holiness_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o absolute_a holiness_n whereby_o he_o sanctify_v both_o himself_o and_o we_o joh._n 17.19_o wherein_o he_o do_v that_o real_o which_o aaron_n do_v typical_o he_o be_v indeed_o the_o holiness_n of_o jehovah_n jehovah_n tsidkenu_fw-la the_o lord_n our_o righteousness_n be_v his_o name_n jer._n 23.6_o hence_o he_o often_o appear_v with_o a_o crown_n of_o gold_n upon_o his_o head_n as_o rev._n 14.14_o 2._o his_o bear_v our_o iniquity_n and_o take_v away_o our_o sin_n which_o be_v find_v even_o in_o our_o holy_a thing_n exod._n 28.38_o there_o be_v a_o mixture_n in_o the_o best_a we_o do_v many_o believer_n be_v apt_a to_o be_v discourage_v about_o it_o my_o prayer_n be_v so_o full_a of_o unbelief_n and_o deadness_n and_o wander_n they_o deserve_v abhorrence_n and_o not_o acceptance_n well_o but_o the_o high_a priest_n here_o bear_v the_o iniquity_n of_o all_o the_o holy_a thing_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n 3._o his_o cause_v we_o to_o be_v accept_v
2._o the_o occasion_n of_o their_o separation_n to_o this_o office_n and_o there_o be_v two_o or_o three_o occasion_n of_o it_o note_v 1._o the_o lord_n pass_v by_o the_o first-born_a of_o israel_n when_o he_o slay_v the_o first-born_a of_o egypt_n exod._n 13.2_o on_o which_o occasion_n the_o lord_n challenge_v the_o first-born_a to_o himself_o and_o require_v they_o shall_v be_v sanctify_v to_o he_o but_o afterward_o the_o lord_n be_v please_v to_o take_v the_o levite_n from_o among_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n instead_o of_o all_o the_o first-born_a see_v numb_a 3.11_o 12_o 13._o therefore_o the_o levite_n shall_v be_v i_o say_v god_n because_o all_o the_o first-born_a be_v my_o 2._o the_o faithfulness_n of_o the_o levite_n in_o a_o time_n of_o great_a apostasy_n and_o temptation_n the_o story_n whereof_o you_o have_v in_o exod._n 32.28_o 29._o and_o it_o be_v afterward_o remember_v by_o moses_n before_o the_o lord_n in_o his_o blessing_n of_o they_o deut._n 33.9_o 3._o the_o late_a rebellion_n of_o korah_n dathan_n and_o abiram_n with_o the_o lamentation_n and_o self-condemning_a complaint_n of_o the_o people_n upon_o that_o occasion_n compare_v cap._n 17._o of_o number_n the_o two_o last_o verse_n with_o the_o first_o verse_n of_o this_o 18_o chapter_n that_o complaint_n of_o the_o people_n behold_v we_o die_v we_o perish_v we_o all_o perish_v be_v a_o earnest_a deprecation_n of_o the_o danger_n for_o they_o be_v under_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o dread_n and_o majesty_n of_o the_o dreadful_a presence_n of_o god_n in_o his_o tabernacle_n and_o thereupon_o they_o thus_o speak_v from_o all_o which_o we_o may_v observe_v that_o such_o as_o god_n call_v to_o any_o work_n and_o office_n he_o do_v usual_o give_v many_o visible_a intimation_n of_o it_o he_o do_v design_n and_o prepare_v they_o to_o it_o by_o many_o fore-running_a providence_n 3._o the_o rite_n and_o manner_n of_o their_o separation_n and_o consecration_n to_o their_o office_n this_o be_v record_v and_o declare_v at_o large_a in_o numb_a 8._o where_o you_o will_v find_v it_o be_v by_o sprinkle_v they_o with_o water_n by_o shave_v their_o hair_n by_o wash_v their_o clothes_n and_o by_o offer_v sacrifice_n for_o they_o and_o last_o by_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n lay_n their_o hand_n upon_o they_o but_o i_o shall_v not_o speak_v to_o these_o thing_n though_o it_o will_v be_v worth_a the_o while_n because_o there_o have_v be_v occasion_n to_o speak_v to_o sundry_a of_o these_o rite_n in_o other_o place_n former_o 4._o their_o work_n and_o office_n which_o they_o be_v thus_o separate_v and_o set_v apart_o unto_o which_o be_v in_o general_a to_o be_v adjoin_v as_o subordinate_a minister_n to_o the_o priest_n in_o the_o outer_a service_n and_o ministration_n of_o the_o temple_n so_o here_o ver_fw-la 2._o that_o they_o may_v be_v join_v unto_o thou_o allude_v to_o the_o name_n of_o levi_n which_o bear_v that_o signification_n though_o the_o name_n be_v give_v upon_o another_o occasion_n i_o say_v outer_a because_o they_o be_v exclude_v from_o the_o ministration_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n and_o the_o altar_n ver_fw-la 3._o their_o work_n may_v be_v distinguish_v into_o synagogue-work_n and_o temple-work_n into_o temporary_a or_o occasional_a and_o stand_a work_n but_o i_o shall_v put_v all_o together_o in_o seven_o head_n 1._o they_o be_v to_o bear_v the_o tabernacle_n and_o all_o the_o holy_a vessel_n numb_a 4.15_o so_o christ_n support_v and_o bear_v the_o church_n but_o this_o work_n be_v but_o temporary_a and_o occasional_a while_o the_o tabernacle_n be_v in_o that_o ambulatory_a posture_n but_o when_o the_o flit_a move_a tabernacle_n be_v change_v into_o a_o fix_a temple_n than_o this_o part_n of_o their_o ministration_n be_v at_o a_o end_n 2._o the_o levite_n be_v to_o assist_v the_o priest_n in_o offer_v sacrifice_n 1_o chron._n 23_o 28-31_a 2_o chron._n 29.34_o and_o 2_o chron._n 30.16_o to_o burn_v they_o on_o the_o altar_n and_o sprinkle_v the_o blood_n be_v peculiar_a to_o the_o priest_n but_o the_o levite_n may_v help_v in_o kill_v they_o and_o other_o preparatory_a administration_n as_o to_o the_o gospel_n of_o this_o you_o know_v the_o true_a sacrifice_n be_v christ_n and_o he_o be_v the_o priest_n and_o the_o levite_n too_o he_o do_v all_o himself_o alone_o without_o any_o 〈◊〉_d assistance_n 3._o the_o levite_n be_v to_o teach_v the_o people_n in_o the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n therefore_o scatter_v and_o disperse_v in_o their_o habitation_n up_o and_o down_o among_o they_o deut._n 33.10_o they_o shall_v teach_v israel_n thy_o law_n mal._n 2._o ver_fw-la 7._o the_o priest_n lip_n shall_v keep_v knowledge_n and_o and_o they_o shall_v seek_v the_o law_n at_o his_o mouth_n for_o he_o be_v the_o messenger_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n 2_o chron._n 17.7_o 8_o 9_o jehosophat_n send_v levites_n to_o teach_v it_o be_v the_o magistrate_n duty_n to_o provide_v for_o the_o teach_n and_o instruct_v of_o his_o subject_n in_o the_o good_a knowledge_n of_o the_o lord_n this_o christ_n do_v and_o this_o gospel-minister_n also_o do_v they_o shall_v teach_v the_o people_n what_o the_o lord_n have_v teach_v they_o 4._o they_o be_v to_o judge_v of_o cause_n and_o to_o determine_v controversy_n among_o the_o people_n deut._n 17.8_o 9-12_a the_o supreme_a judgement_n lie_v in_o the_o high_a priest_n ver_fw-la 11._o amaziah_n the_o priest_n in_o those_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o god_n shall_v preside_v 2_o chron._n 19.8_o 10._o so_o there_o be_v spiritual_a judgement_n of_o discipline_n in_o the_o church_n under_o the_o gospel_n ezek._n 44.23_o 24._o 1_o cor._n 5.12_o 5._o they_o be_v to_o sing_v the_o song_n of_o the_o temple_n that_o business_n of_o the_o temple-musick_n be_v commit_v to_o they_o partly_o as_o to_o the_o psaltery_n harp_n and_o viol_n though_o the_o priest_n be_v to_o sound_v the_o trumpet_n 1_o chron._n 15.16_o 17._o 2_o chron._n 5.12_o 13._o that_o which_o answer_v this_o be_v the_o inward_a melody_n of_o the_o joy_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n spirit_n 6._o other_o of_o they_o be_v treasurer_n 1_o chron._n 26.20_o 22_o 24_o 26_o 27_o 28._o there_o be_v a_o treasure_n also_o in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n for_o which_o the_o lord_n have_v appoint_v deacon_n who_o he_o have_v entrust_v with_o it_o 7._o other_o be_v porter_n to_o keep_v and_o watch_v the_o gate_n of_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o they_o do_v both_o by_o day_n to_o keep_v back_o unclean_a person_n that_o they_o may_v nor_o enter_v into_o the_o temple_n so_o we_o find_v in_o jehoiada_n time_n 2_o chron._n 23.19_o ezek._n 22.26_o and_o ezek._n 44.7_o 8._o and_o by_o night_n psal_n 134.1_o these_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v as_o the_o priest_n and_o singer_n be_v divide_v into_o four_o and_o twenty_o course_n 1_o chron._n 23.4_o 5_o 6._o 2_o chron._n 8.14_o so_o the_o gate_n of_o the_o gospel-churche_n shall_v be_v keep_v and_o guard_v that_o enemy_n and_o unclean_a person_n may_v not_o enter_v in_o rev._n 21.27_o 3._o the_o three_o sort_n of_o temple-officer_n be_v the_o nethinim_n or_o gibeonite_n josh_n 9_o for_o the_o servile_a work_n of_o the_o temple_n ver_fw-la 21_o 23_o 27._o and_o joshua_n give_v they_o that_o day_n to_o be_v hewer_n of_o wood_n and_o drawer_n of_o water_n for_o the_o congregation_n and_o for_o the_o altar_n of_o the_o lord_n hence_o they_o be_v call_v nethinim_n from_o nathan_n dedit_fw-la they_o be_v afterward_o methodise_v by_o david_n for_o the_o temple-service_n ezra_n 8.20_o and_o have_v lodging_n near_o the_o temple_n nehem._n 3.26_o though_o their_o dwelling_n be_v in_o their_o own_o town_n and_o city_n nehem._n 7.73_o the_o nethenim_n dwell_v in_o their_o city_n their_o come_n to_o the_o israelite_n be_v to_o save_v their_o own_o life_n a_o lawful_a end_n but_o the_o mean_v they_o use_v be_v very_o evil_a for_o they_o come_v with_o a_o lie_n in_o their_o mouth_n as_o you_o all_o know_v the_o story_n josh_n 9_o and_o as_o their_o mean_n be_v bad_a so_o the_o motive_n be_v but_o low_o for_o they_o be_v under_o a_o legal_a work_n of_o fear_n and_o terror_n and_o under_o guilt_n and_o guile_n of_o spirit_n as_o indeed_o guilt_n be_v usual_o accompany_v with_o guile_n and_o deceitfulness_n of_o heart_n yet_o out_o of_o this_o legal_a principle_n this_o legal_a fear_n and_o terror_n they_o come_v to_o make_v their_o peace_n i_o may_v call_v it_o in_o a_o sense_n their_o peace_n with_o god_n for_o it_o be_v with_o the_o people_n of_o god_n with_o the_o people_n of_o the_o true_a god_n and_o god_n by_o his_o providence_n do_v so_o order_v it_o that_o their_o life_n be_v preserve_v and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o they_o be_v devote_v though_o in_o a_o very_a low_a and_o mean_a way_n to_o the_o service_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o true_a and_o
great_a sin_n than_o people_n do_v imagine_v the_o retain_v of_o such_o legal_a shadow_n be_v a_o implicit_a denial_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o man_n consider_v not_o the_o meaning_n of_o their_o own_o action_n 7._o the_o last_o occasional_a typical_a thing_n which_o the_o lord_n give_v to_o his_o people_n of_o old_a be_v those_o heal_a water_n of_o the_o pool_n of_o bethesda_n which_o indeed_o be_v not_o mention_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n but_o in_o the_o new_a john_n 5._o it_o be_v a_o miracle_n but_o yet_o it_o have_v also_o a_o symbolical_a use_n as_o many_o other_o miracle_n have_v to_o lead_v they_o from_o the_o consideration_n of_o earthly_a thing_n unto_o heavenly_a thing_n heal_v water_n be_v often_o speak_v of_o in_o the_o scripture_n with_o a_o reference_n to_o spiritual_a heal_n as_o ezek._n 47.1_o 8_o 9_o 11_o rev._n 21.1_o so_o christ_n speak_v of_o river_n of_o water_n flow_v out_o of_o the_o heart_n of_o a_o believer_n joh._n 7.38_o which_o can_v be_v mean_v of_o literal_a water_n but_o be_v mean_v of_o metaphorical_a and_o spiritual_a water_n this_o in_o general_n but_o to_o unfold_v the_o allegory_n a_o little_a more_o particular_o that_o we_o may_v see_v more_o full_o what_o instruction_n we_o may_v learn_v out_o of_o it_o 1._o those_o heal_a water_n of_o that_o pool_n of_o bethesda_n may_v fit_o represent_v the_o ordinance_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o church_n which_o be_v indeed_o bethesda_n a_o house_n of_o mercy_n for_o so_o the_o word_n may_v be_v interpret_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d beth_n chesda_v domus_fw-la misericordiae_fw-la though_o other_o expound_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d domus_fw-la effusionis_fw-la the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v indeed_o a_o spiritual_a hospital_n a_o house_n of_o mercy_n to_o the_o sick_a to_o poor_a disease_a soul_n where_o there_o be_v the_o choice_a water_n the_o water_n of_o life_n and_o all_o other_o medicine_n of_o spiritual_a help_n and_o heal_n 2._o the_o heal_a virtue_n of_o the_o water_n may_v hold_v forth_o to_o we_o the_o spiritual_a good_a of_o ordinance_n the_o heal_n of_o our_o soul_n this_o be_v frequent_a in_o the_o scripture_n as_o be_v say_v before_o for_o bodily_a heal_n to_o teach_v and_o represent_v spiritual_a 3._o the_o motion_n of_o the_o angel_n lead_v we_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o effectual_a operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n in_o and_o by_o the_o ordinance_n in_o the_o time_n of_o love_n it_o be_v not_o the_o mean_n it_o be_v not_o the_o ordinance_n but_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o covenant_n by_o his_o spirit_n move_v and_o work_v in_o they_o that_o heal_v and_o do_v good_a to_o soul_n the_o ordinance_n be_v not_o effectual_a at_o all_o time_n but_o only_o when_o and_o as_o they_o be_v move_v and_o influence_v by_o the_o spirit_n for_o it_o be_v a_o place_n much_o frequent_v as_o appear_v by_o the_o five_o porch_n and_o its_o nearness_n to_o the_o temple_n and_o the_o text_n say_v many_o sick_a lay_v there_o he_o can_v have_v heal_v all_o as_o well_o as_o some_o verùm_fw-la ut_fw-la miracula_fw-la suum_fw-la habent_fw-la finem_fw-la ita_fw-la &_o modum_fw-la habere_fw-la debent_fw-la calvin_n in_o loc_n as_o when_o there_o be_v so_o many_o dead_a and_o but_o one_o raise_v 2_o king_n 4.32_o so_o many_o widow_n and_o the_o prophet_n send_v but_o to_o one_o 1_o king_n 17.9_o luk._n 4.25_o 26._o who_o will_v have_v look_v for_o help_n and_o heal_n from_o trouble_a water_n we_o must_v follow_v god_n against_o our_o own_o reason_n the_o judgement_n of_o reason_n be_v often_o contrary_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o god_n 2_o king_n 5.10_o naaman_n think_v wash_v in_o jordan_n a_o unlikely_a mean_n to_o recover_v the_o leper_n elisha_n 2_o king_n 2.20_o heal_v the_o water_n by_o cast_v in_o salt_n a_o unlikely_a mean_n for_o salt_n be_v wont_v rather_o to_o cause_v barrenness_n the_o water_n here_o do_v it_o not_o for_o than_o it_o will_v have_v heal_v all_o and_o at_o all_o time_n one_o as_o well_o as_o another_o he_o single_v out_o one_o who_o condition_n be_v most_o deplorable_a his_o disease_n inveterate_a incurable_a 38._o year_n so_o he_o that_o be_v bear_v blind_a and_o have_v be_v so_o till_o he_o grow_v up_o to_o man_n estate_n cap._n 9.1_o so_o lazarus_n when_o dead_a bury_v four_o day_n joh._n 11.39_o the_o woman_n twelve_o year_n mat._n 9.20_o another_o eighteen_o year_n luk._n 13.11_o 4._o these_o time_n be_v unknown_a and_o uncertain_a to_o the_o people_n they_o know_v not_o when_o the_o angel_n will_v come_v to_o move_v the_o water_n so_o be_v the_o day_n of_o grace_n and_o the_o opportunity_n of_o salvation_n to_o soul_n because_o man_n know_v not_o his_o time_n therefore_o be_v he_o snare_v in_o a_o evil_a time_n when_o it_o fall_v sudden_o upon_o he_o eccl._n 9.12_o oh_o that_o thou_o have_v know_v luk._n 19.41_o 42._o therefore_o eccl._n 11.6_o in_o the_o morning_n sow_v thy_o seed_n and_o in_o the_o evening_n withhold_v not_o thy_o hand_n for_o thou_o know_v not_o whether_o shall_v prosper_v either_o this_o or_o that_o or_o whether_o they_o both_o shall_v be_v alike_o good_a lay_v hold_n upon_o all_o opportunity_n 5._o these_o excellent_a water_n do_v not_o heal_v all_o but_o only_o he_o that_o be_v put_v first_o into_o they_o which_o be_v for_o our_o instruction_n that_o we_o may_v learn_v to_o lay_v hold_v betimes_o upon_o season_n and_o opportunity_n for_o our_o spiritual_a good_a they_o that_o seek_v i_o early_o shall_v find_v i_o prov._n 8.17_o be_v at_o work_n for_o god_n and_o your_o soul_n betimes_o lest_o you_o come_v too_o late_o christ_n ask_v he_o vers_fw-la 6._o will_v thou_o be_v make_v whole_a he_o prevent_v he_o before_o he_o express_v any_o desire_n to_o christ_n not_o as_o though_o christ_n be_v ignorant_a of_o his_o desire_n but_o to_o excite_v and_o stir_v up_o desire_n and_o expectation_n in_o he_o and_o to_o stir_v up_o the_o attention_n of_o those_o who_o be_v providential_o present_a at_o that_o time_n that_o they_o may_v mind_v and_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o miracle_n verse_n 8._o jesus_n say_v to_o he_o rise_z take_v up_o thy_o bed_n and_o walk_v he_o can_v have_v say_v be_v whole_a but_o he_o choose_v rather_o to_o express_v it_o by_o a_o infallible_a effect_n and_o fruit_n of_o it_o to_o the_o maid_n arise_v mark_n 5.42_o to_o lazarus_n come_v forth_o joh._n 11.43_o and_z vers_n 44._o let_v he_o go_v to_o the_o paralytic_a mat._n 9.6_o arise_v take_v up_o thy_o bed_n and_o go_v unto_o thy_o house_n on_o the_o sabbaoth_v day_n that_o so_o it_o may_v be_v the_o more_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o people_n will_v wonder_v to_o see_v a_o man_n carry_v his_o bed_n abroad_o and_o so_o inquire_v about_o it_o there_o be_v beside_o these_o we_o have_v now_o handle_v some_o other_o occasional_a typical_a thing_n as_o noah_n ark_n but_o that_o be_v speak_v to_o in_o the_o history_n of_o noah_n and_o some_o other_o may_v occur_v afterward_o but_o these_o be_v all_o i_o shall_v speak_v unto_o here_o let_v i_o conclude_v with_o a_o few_o word_n of_o use_n to_o help_v you_o to_o a_o practical_a improvement_n of_o all_o that_o have_v be_v say_v upon_o these_o typical_a thing_n 1._o we_o may_v here_o see_v the_o complete_a and_o perfect_a fullness_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n to_o all_o the_o necessity_n of_o our_o soul_n that_o spiritual_a ladder_n represent_v he_o as_o the_o mediator_n and_o mean_n of_o all_o the_o intercourse_n between_o heaven_n and_o earth_n between_o god_n and_o we_o the_o burn_a bush_n show_v his_o presence_n with_o and_o protection_n of_o his_o church_n and_o people_n in_o the_o fire_n of_o persecution_n and_o affliction_n the_o pillar_n of_o cloud_n and_o fire_n hold_v forth_o that_o everlasting_a bless_a conduct_n and_o guidance_n of_o his_o people_n by_o his_o word_n and_o spirit_n through_o the_o wilderness_n of_o this_o world_n to_o their_o eternal_a rest_n the_o manna_n and_o water_n out_o of_o the_o rock_n hold_v he_o forth_o as_o our_o spiritual_a food_n and_o now_o last_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n and_o the_o pool_n of_o bethesda_n teach_v we_o that_o here_o be_v heal_v also_o so_o that_o he_o be_v both_o meat_n and_o medicine_n the_o same_o thing_n be_v hold_v forth_o also_o under_o other_o metaphor_n rev._n 22.2_o the_o leave_n of_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n be_v for_o heal_v of_o the_o nation_n so_o that_o christ_n be_v all_o in_o all_o 2._o learn_v from_o hence_o not_o to_o despise_v these_o truth_n concern_v the_o type_n how_o weak_o soever_o they_o may_v be_v hold_v forth_o by_o he_o that_o speak_v unto_o you_o for_o you_o see_v they_o be_v full_a of_o gospel_n marrow_n and_o mystery_n any_o thing_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v sweet_a and_o precious_a and_o it_o be_v so_o
〈◊〉_d flay_v and_o cut_v up_o heb._n 4.12_o 13._o so_o all_o thing_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d before_o he_o with_o who_o we_o have_v to_o do_v the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n search_v the_o heart_n as_o the_o sacrifice_v knife_n do_v the_o bowel_n of_o the_o beast_n there_o be_v no_o skin_n no_o cloak_n of_o hypocrisy_n that_o can_v hide_v thou_o from_o the_o lord_n 4._o the_o skin_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n go_v to_o the_o priest_n it_o be_v part_n of_o his_o maintenance_n see_v cap._n 7._o 8._o and_o the_o priest_n that_o offer_v any_o man_n burn_v offer_v even_o the_o priest_n shall_v have_v to_o himself_o the_o skin_n of_o the_o burn_a offer_v which_o he_o have_v offer_v as_o before_o the_o law_n the_o sacrificer_n have_v the_o skin_n he_o enjoy_v the_o benefit_n of_o that_o either_o to_o clothe_v he_o as_o adam_z and_o eve_n gen._n 3.21_o the_o lord_n god_n make_v they_o coat_n of_o skin_n and_o clothe_v they_o or_o to_o buy_v clothing_n with_o or_o what_o else_o he_o need_v and_o under_o the_o law_n there_o be_v hardly_o any_o sacrifice_n of_o which_o the_o priest_n have_v not_o his_o part_n it_o teach_v we_o that_o they_o that_o serve_v at_o the_o altar_n shall_v live_v of_o the_o altar_n 1_o cor._n 9.13_o 14._o from_o whence_o the_o apostle_n argue_v to_o the_o care_n that_o shall_v be_v take_v for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o minister_n under_o the_o gospel_n so_o much_o for_o the_o five_o ceremony_n about_o the_o burnt-offering_a namely_o the_o flay_v it_o and_o cut_n it_o in_o piece_n 6._o the_o piece_n be_v to_o be_v salt_v this_o indeed_o be_v not_o express_v in_o cap_n 1._o but_o you_o will_v find_v it_o in_o other_o place_n for_o as_o i_o say_v at_o first_o we_o must_v borrow_v light_n from_o other_o scripture_n leu._n 2.13_o every_o oblation_n of_o thy_o meat-offering_a shall_v thou_o season_v with_o salt_n neither_o shall_v thou_o suffer_v the_o salt_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o thy_o god_n to_o be_v lack_v ezek._n 43.24_o the_o priest_n shall_v cast_v salt_n upon_o they_o the_o rule_n be_v general_a to_o all_o sacrifice_n as_o well_o burn_v as_o meat-offering_n mark_v 9.49_o every_o sacrifice_n shall_v be_v salt_v with_o salt_n i_o find_v by_o conference_n with_o other_o scripture_n a_o twofold_a mystery_n hint_v and_o aim_v at_o in_o this_o 1._o salt_n do_v preserve_v thing_n and_o keep_v they_o from_o putrefaction_n this_o therefore_o signify_v and_o shadow_n forth_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n hence_o be_v that_o emphatical_a expression_n in_o the_o text_n leu._n 2.13_o the_o salt_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o thy_o god_n so_o salt_n be_v use_v numb_a 18.19_o it_o be_v a_o covenant_n of_o salt_n for_o ever_o before_o the_o lord_n unto_o thou_o and_o to_o thy_o seed_n with_o thou_o that_o be_v say_v the_o margin_n sure_a stable_a and_o incorruptible_a so_o 2_o chron._n 13.5_o ought_v you_o not_o to_o know_v that_o the_o lord_n god_n of_o israel_n give_v the_o kingdom_n over_o israel_n to_o david_n for_o ever_o even_o to_o he_o and_o to_o his_o son_n by_o a_o covenant_n of_o salt_n that_o be_v perpetual_a because_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v salt_v be_v preserve_v from_o corruption_n say_v the_o geneva_n note_v upon_o the_o place_n 2._o salt_n make_v thing_n savoury_a and_o wholesome_a which_o without_o salt_n will_v stink_v and_o putrify_v col._n 4.6_o let_v your_o speech_n be_v season_v with_o salt_n that_o be_v contrary_a to_o that_o corrupt_a communication_n ephes_n 4.29_o wise_a and_o savoury_a and_o gracious_a speech_n mark_n 9.49_o 50._o when_o there_o be_v no_o salt_n no_o savour_n in_o a_o man_n word_n his_o speech_n stink_v and_o be_v corrupt_a the_o sacrifice_n be_v unsalted_a and_o so_o it_o stink_v 7._o the_o leg_n and_o inward_o must_v be_v wash_v verse_n 12._o the_o foot_n and_o the_o inward_o be_v the_o foul_a part_n of_o a_o beast_n wash_v away_o the_o filth_n signify_v spiritual_a wash_n and_o cleanse_v so_o the_o body_n of_o believer_n be_v say_v to_o be_v wash_v with_o pure_a water_n and_o their_o heart_n sprinkle_v from_o a_o evil_a conscience_n heb._n 10.22_o they_o be_v make_v clean_o both_o within_o and_o without_o and_o their_o filthiness_n wash_v away_o through_o jesus_n christ_n 8._o the_o several_a part_n of_o the_o offer_n must_v be_v lay_v upon_o the_o altar_n and_o burn_v with_o fire_n till_o it_o be_v consume_v and_o burn_v to_o ash_n see_v the_o fire_n which_o once_o fall_v from_o heaven_n leu._n 9.24_o be_v to_o be_v continual_o keep_v and_o preserve_v upon_o the_o altar_n leu._n 6.12_o and_o the_o use_n of_o all_o other_o fire_n forbid_v in_o sacrifice_n leu._n 10.1_o put_v of_o fire_n upon_o the_o altar_n in_o this_o place_n can_v signify_v nothing_o but_o kindle_v of_o it_o deodat_n in_o leu._n 1.7_o see_v leu._n 6.9_o the_o fire_n burn_v all_o night_n the_o wrath_n of_o god_n be_v the_o fire_n and_o sin_n the_o wood_n or_o fuel_n that_o feed_v it_o this_o be_v the_o fire_n of_o the_o justice_n and_o wrath_n of_o god_n from_o heaven_n which_o seize_v upon_o christ_n and_o every_o part_n of_o he_o as_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o offer_n be_v burn_v his_o head_n crown_v with_o thorn_n his_o side_n pierce_v with_o the_o spear_n his_o hand_n and_o foot_n with_o nail_n his_o whole_a body_n do_v sweat_v drop_n of_o blood_n yea_o his_o soul_n be_v heavy_a unto_o the_o death_n yea_o burn_v to_o ash_n as_o it_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o utmost_a extremity_n of_o misery_n his_o saint_n also_o endure_v the_o fiery_a trial_n 1_o pet._n 4.12_o though_o they_o be_v not_o a_o fire_n of_o expiation_n as_o christ_n be_v heb._n 12.10_o but_o only_o a_o fire_n of_o purgation_n which_o they_o pass_v through_o in_o this_o life_n to_o prepare_v and_o fit_v they_o for_o heaven_n but_o after_o this_o life_n there_o be_v no_o purgatory_n as_o the_o papist_n dream_n 9_o the_o ash_n must_v be_v carry_v out_o of_o the_o camp_n into_o a_o clean_a place_n leu._n 6.10_o 11._o the_o contrary_n be_v say_v of_o the_o rubbish_n of_o a_o leprous_a house_n that_o the_o dust_n and_o stone_n thereof_o shall_v be_v pour_v forth_o into_o a_o unclean_a place_n leu._n 14.40_o 41._o for_o they_o come_v from_o a_o pollute_a house_n but_o these_o from_o the_o lord_n holy_a dwell_v place_n and_o be_v the_o relic_n of_o a_o holy_a thing_n which_o the_o lord_n here_o manifest_v that_o he_o have_v a_o special_a regard_n of_o this_o ceremony_n be_v apply_v by_o the_o apostle_n to_o christ_n heb._n 13.11_o 12_o 13._o look_v as_o the_o ash_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v burn_v signify_v the_o dead_a body_n of_o christ_n so_o the_o carry_v of_o the_o ash_n out_o of_o the_o camp_n signify_v how_o his_o crucify_a body_n shall_v not_o be_v bury_v within_o the_o city_n but_o carry_v into_o a_o clean_a place_n into_o a_o new_a sepulchre_n where_o never_o any_o man_n lie_v before_o joh._n 19.41_o so_o the_o dead_a body_n of_o all_o his_o saint_n when_o they_o be_v spend_v and_o consume_v to_o ash_n they_o be_v regard_v and_o preserve_v in_o the_o dust_n by_o god_n as_o sacred_a relic_n and_o he_o will_v raise_v they_o up_o again_o unto_o eternal_a life_n so_o much_o for_o the_o burn_v offer_v of_o the_o herd_n and_o the_o ceremony_n appertain_v to_o it_o there_o be_v also_o some_o other_o action_n about_o it_o as_o that_o in_o psal_n 118.27_o of_o bind_v the_o sacrifice_n with_o cord_n even_o unto_o the_o horn_n of_o the_o altar_n but_o this_o as_o it_o be_v not_o mention_v in_o this_o chapter_n so_o it_o seem_v rather_o to_o be_v a_o action_n of_o natural_a necessity_n unto_o such_o a_o work_n as_o the_o slay_v of_o a_o beast_n then_o to_o have_v any_o special_a mystery_n in_o it_o therefore_o let_v this_o suffice_v for_o the_o burnt-offering_a of_o the_o great_a sort_n of_o cattle_n now_o the_o other_o two_o sort_n that_o follow_v be_v the_o burnt-offering_a of_o the_o flock_n that_o be_v lesser_a cattle_n sheep_n or_o goat_n vers_fw-la 10._o and_o of_o fowl_n viz._n turtle_n dove_n and_o young_a pigeon_n vers_fw-la 14._o quest_n why_o the_o lord_n appoint_v these_o lesser_a sacrifice_n ans_fw-fr he_o do_v it_o that_o so_o none_o may_v be_v able_a to_o plead_v excuse_n to_o be_v exempt_v from_o his_o service_n for_o you_o know_v man_n be_v very_o apt_a to_o make_v excuse_n if_o the_o lord_n have_v only_o appoint_v ox_n and_o sheep_n some_o may_v have_v pretend_v poverty_n and_o have_v say_v we_o will_v offer_v sacrifice_n but_o we_o be_v not_o able_a therefore_o these_o lesser_a sacrifice_n be_v ordain_v that_o so_o both_o rich_a and_o poor_a may_v serve_v the_o lord_n so_o that_o here_o be_v no_o room_n
be_v no_o gospel-mystery_n therefore_o no_o need_n it_o shall_v be_v typify_v by_o so_o great_a a_o type_n if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n of_o old_a that_o may_v any_o way_n relate_v to_o it_o it_o must_v be_v some_o small_a circumstance_n of_o some_o tie_n but_o not_o such_o a_o great_a and_o principal_a a_o type_n as_o the_o altar_n 2._o the_o altar_n be_v great_a than_o the_o gist_n matth._n 23.19_o but_o the_o wooden_a cross_n be_v not_o great_a or_o more_o excellent_a than_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n which_o he_o give_v for_o we_o nor_o do_v it_o sanctify_v or_o make_v jesus_n christ_n accept_v therefore_o the_o wooden_a cross_n be_v not_o the_o altar_n there_o have_v be_v also_o another_o weak_a and_o impertinent_a application_n of_o it_o which_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o some_o book_n of_o devotion_n viz._n the_o altar_n of_o our_o heart_n but_o wherein_o the_o heart_n be_v like_o a_o altar_n i_o can_v tell_v the_o same_o argument_n confute_v this_o also_o it_o be_v not_o thy_o heart_n that_o sanctify_v thou_o or_o thy_o service_n but_o then_o what_o be_v the_o altar_n the_o answer_n be_v that_o the_o altar_n be_v christ_n himself_n so_o the_o holy_a ghost_n himself_o expound_v it_o heb._n 13.10_o quest_n but_o how_o do_v the_o altar_n represent_v christ_n answer_n in_o two_o respect_n in_o regard_n of_o his_o deity_n and_o priestly_a office_n 1._o it_o be_v christ_n in_o regard_n of_o his_o divine_a nature_n reas_n 1._o because_o his_o humane_a nature_n be_v the_o sacrifice_n therefore_o his_o deity_n be_v the_o altar_n for_o in_o offer_v sacrifice_n there_o must_v be_v both_o a_o sacrifice_n and_o a_o altar_n and_o so_o in_o christ_n there_o be_v two_o nature_n his_o deity_n and_o humanity_n whereof_o the_o humane_a nature_n be_v the_o sacrifice_n that_o be_v slay_v and_o offer_v for_o we_o it_o remain_v that_o his_o other_o nature_n be_v the_o altar_n reas_n 2._o because_o it_o be_v the_o altar_n that_o sanctify_v the_o gift_n matth._n 23.19_o exod._n 29.37_o but_o it_o be_v the_o deity_n of_o christ_n that_o give_v that_o infinite_a virtue_n and_o value_n to_o his_o suffering_n it_o be_v his_o deity_n that_o sanctify_v his_o humane_a nature_n to_o be_v such_o a_o acceptable_a sacrifice_n to_o the_o lord_n reas_n 3._o because_o the_o altar_n do_v support_v and_o bear_v up_o the_o sacrifice_n but_o it_o be_v his_o divine_a nature_n that_o do_v support_v his_o humane_a nature_n in_o those_o unutterable_a suffering_n heb._n 9.14_o through_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n he_o offer_v up_o himself_o unto_o god_n what_o do_v that_o piece_n of_o wood_n do_v it_o do_v but_o cruciate_v and_o torture_v his_o bless_a body_n it_o do_v not_o bear_v up_o his_o spirit_n it_o be_v true_a that_o tree_n do_v lift_v up_o his_o body_n from_o the_o earth_n but_o it_o be_v another_o manner_n of_o support_n that_o be_v necessary_a to_o our_o salvation_n 2._o the_o altar_n typify_v christ_n in_o regard_n of_o his_o priestly_a office_n you_o know_v he_o have_v a_o threefold_a office_n he_o be_v a_o prophet_n priest_n and_o king_n the_o altar_n look_v chief_o at_o his_o priestly_a office_n and_o the_o concernment_n of_o that_o for_o as_o a_o priest_n he_o offer_v sacrifice_n and_o it_o be_v the_o altar_n that_o do_v support_v and_o sanctify_v the_o sacrifice_n both_o the_o nature_n of_o christ_n have_v a_o influence_n into_o all_o his_o office_n and_o so_o into_o his_o priestly_a by_o which_o he_o make_v satisfaction_n for_o our_o sin_n to_o open_v it_o a_o little_a more_o particular_o all_o the_o concernment_n of_o the_o altar_n be_v full_a of_o mystery_n and_o teach_n i_o shall_v instance_n in_o seven_o particular_n about_o it_o wherein_o you_o may_v see_v something_o of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o gospel_n 1._o there_o be_v but_o one_o altar_n the_o lord_n forbid_v all_o other_o though_o intend_v to_o himself_o 2_o king_n 18.22_o so_o there_o be_v but_o one_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n 1_o tim._n 2.5_o the_o papist_n have_v other_o mediator_n saint_n and_o angel_n etc._n etc._n this_o be_v to_o have_v many_o altar_n whereas_o the_o lord_n accept_v none_o but_o this_o nor_o no_o sacrifice_n but_o what_o be_v offer_v upon_o this_o altar_n 2._o the_o altar_n have_v four_o horn_n upon_o the_o four_o corner_n of_o it_o they_o be_v call_v horn_n because_o they_o be_v make_v like_o horn_n upward_o but_o bend_v towards_o the_o top_n ezek._n 43.15_o upward_o shall_v be_v the_o four_o horn_n the_o use_n of_o they_o be_v not_o only_o for_o ornament_n but_o to_o keep_v thing_n from_o fall_v off_o the_o altar_n and_o to_o bind_v the_o sacrifice_n to_o they_o when_o they_o be_v to_o slay_v it_o as_o psal_n 118.27_o horn_n be_v a_o emblem_n of_o power_n jer._n 48.25_o the_o horn_n of_o moab_n be_v cut_v off_o that_o be_v his_o strength_n and_o power_n say_v your_o marginal_a note_n lam._n 2.3_o he_o have_v cut_v off_o in_o his_o fierce_a anger_n all_o the_o horn_n of_o israel_n 1_o sam._n 2.1_o my_o horn_n be_v exalt_v in_o the_o lord_n it_o be_v apply_v to_o god_n hab._n 3.4_o he_o have_v horn_n come_v out_o of_o his_o hand_n and_o there_o be_v the_o hide_v of_o his_o power_n these_o four_o horn_n of_o the_o altar_n signify_v the_o power_n and_o glory_n of_o christ_n priesthood_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o his_o church_n gather_v together_o from_o the_o four_o corner_n of_o the_o earth_n ainsw_n in_o exod._n 27.1_o if_o the_o altar_n be_v his_o deity_n the_o horn_n of_o this_o altar_n be_v the_o power_n of_o his_o deity_n the_o horn_n of_o a_o almighty_a power_n fly_v for_o refuge_n thither_o and_o thou_o be_v safe_a enough_o joab_n flee_v to_o the_o horn_n of_o the_o altar_n but_o he_o be_v pluck_v from_o thence_o and_o slay_v 1_o king_n 2.31_o according_a to_o the_o law_n exod._n 21.14_o but_o he_o that_o fly_v to_o christ_n and_o hang_v upon_o the_o horn_n of_o this_o altar_n shall_v never_o be_v pluck_v thence_o he_o that_o come_v to_o i_o i_o will_v in_o no_o wise_a cast_v out_o joh._n 6.37_o 3._o the_o altar_n be_v anoint_v and_o so_o sanctify_v unto_o its_o office_n numb_a 7.1_o exod._n 40.9_o this_o be_v the_o sanctification_n or_o inauguration_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n into_o his_o office_n he_o be_v anoint_v with_o the_o spirit_n above_o measure_n not_o only_o the_o grace_n thereof_o in_o his_o humane_a nature_n but_o that_o glorious_a person_n himself_o go_v forth_o by_o commission_n from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n as_o the_o son_n by_o commission_n from_o the_o father_n to_o reconcile_v and_o save_v sinner_n 4._o there_o be_v divers_a vessel_n of_o the_o altar_n belong_v to_o it_o for_o the_o use_n and_o service_n of_o it_o numb_a 4.14_o of_o brass_n 1_o king_n 7.47_o of_o gold_n 1_o chron._n 28.17_o also_o pure_a gold_n for_o the_o fleshhook_n of_o which_o they_o be_v necessary_a instrument_n for_o the_o work_n of_o sacrifice_v we_o need_v not_o seek_v a_o particular_a mystery_n and_o signification_n in_o every_o vessel_n only_o in_o general_a some_o apply_v they_o to_o the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o mean_n of_o grace_n which_o do_v attend_v upon_o the_o altar_n upon_o the_o service_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o his_o church_n as_o we_o have_v a_o altar_n under_o the_o gospel_n so_o we_o have_v vessel_n belong_v to_o this_o ordinance_n gospel-ordinance_n whereof_o there_o be_v great_a use_n as_o the_o priest_n can_v not_o sacrifice_v and_o officiate_v about_o the_o altar_n without_o knife_n and_o fleshhook_n and_o shovel_n etc._n etc._n so_o we_o can_v have_v communion_n with_o christ_n without_o mean_n and_o ordinance_n 5._o the_o altar_n be_v furnish_v with_o fire_n from_o heaven_n which_o be_v to_o be_v keep_v always_o burn_v now_o what_o be_v the_o mystery_n of_o this_o sacred_a fire_n 1._o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n against_o sin_n he_o be_v a_o consume_a fire_n a_o everlasting_a burn_a against_o sin_n and_o sinner_n heb._n 12._o ult_n isai_n 33.16_o 2._o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v compare_v to_o fire_n matth._n 3.11_o he_o shall_v baptize_v you_o with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o with_o fire_n isai_n 4.4_o when_o he_o shall_v have_v purge_v the_o blood_n of_o jerusalem_n from_o the_o midst_n thereof_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o judgement_n and_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o burn_a and_o it_o be_v a_o sacred_a fire_n that_o never_o go_v out_o we_o shall_v be_v careful_a to_o keep_v this_o fire_n burn_v take_v heed_n of_o grieve_v of_o quench_v the_o spirit_n 1_o thess_n 5.19_o 3._o the_o word_n and_o ordinance_n be_v like_a unto_o fire_n jer._n 23.29_o they_o will_v burn_v up_o and_o consume_v what_o oppose_v they_o rev_n 11.5_o it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o two_o witness_n that_o fire_n go_v